summaryrefslogtreecommitdiff
diff options
context:
space:
mode:
-rw-r--r--.gitattributes4
-rw-r--r--LICENSE.txt11
-rw-r--r--README.md2
-rw-r--r--old/51540-0.txt8683
-rw-r--r--old/51540-0.zipbin152593 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/51540-h.zipbin345839 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/51540-h/51540-h.htm12638
-rw-r--r--old/51540-h/images/cover.jpgbin91442 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/51540-h/images/emblem.jpgbin9557 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/51540-h/images/i_title.jpgbin81561 -> 0 bytes
10 files changed, 17 insertions, 21321 deletions
diff --git a/.gitattributes b/.gitattributes
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..d7b82bc
--- /dev/null
+++ b/.gitattributes
@@ -0,0 +1,4 @@
+*.txt text eol=lf
+*.htm text eol=lf
+*.html text eol=lf
+*.md text eol=lf
diff --git a/LICENSE.txt b/LICENSE.txt
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..6312041
--- /dev/null
+++ b/LICENSE.txt
@@ -0,0 +1,11 @@
+This eBook, including all associated images, markup, improvements,
+metadata, and any other content or labor, has been confirmed to be
+in the PUBLIC DOMAIN IN THE UNITED STATES.
+
+Procedures for determining public domain status are described in
+the "Copyright How-To" at https://www.gutenberg.org.
+
+No investigation has been made concerning possible copyrights in
+jurisdictions other than the United States. Anyone seeking to utilize
+this eBook outside of the United States should confirm copyright
+status under the laws that apply to them.
diff --git a/README.md b/README.md
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..0a0ecf9
--- /dev/null
+++ b/README.md
@@ -0,0 +1,2 @@
+Project Gutenberg (https://www.gutenberg.org) public repository for
+eBook #51540 (https://www.gutenberg.org/ebooks/51540)
diff --git a/old/51540-0.txt b/old/51540-0.txt
deleted file mode 100644
index f6cf757..0000000
--- a/old/51540-0.txt
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,8683 +0,0 @@
-The Project Gutenberg EBook of Fun for the Household, by Emma J. Gray
-
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and most
-other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
-whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms of
-the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online at
-www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the United States, you'll have
-to check the laws of the country where you are located before using this ebook.
-
-Title: Fun for the Household
- A Book of Games
-
-Author: Emma J. Gray
-
-Release Date: March 24, 2016 [EBook #51540]
-
-Language: English
-
-Character set encoding: UTF-8
-
-*** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK FUN FOR THE HOUSEHOLD ***
-
-
-
-
-Produced by Chris Curnow, Emmy and the Online Distributed
-Proofreading Team at http://www.pgdp.net (This file was
-produced from images generously made available by The
-Internet Archive)
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-Fun for the Household.
-
-A BOOK OF GAMES.
-
-
-[Illustration]
-
- BY
-
- EMMA J. GRAY.
-
-
- PUBLISHED BY
- THE CHRISTIAN HERALD.
- LOUIS KLOPSCH, Proprietor,
- BIBLE HOUSE, NEW YORK.
-
-
-
-
- Copyright 1897
- BY LOUIS KLOPSCH.
-
-[Illustration: PRESS·OF·J·J·LITTLE·&·CO
-
-ASTOR PLACE·NEW·YORK]
-
-
-
-
-CONTENTS.
-
-
- PAGE
- Introductory 7
- Little Folks 9
- Boys and Girls 29
- Grown-Ups 102
- Special Fêtes 128
- Methods of Choosing Partners 184
- Tangles and Forfeits 187
- In the Adirondacks 204
- The Flower Test 220
- Hours with the Poets 235
- “Thank You!” 239
- A Story within a Story 244
- Orrin the Bootblack 258
- Breakfast Table Decorations 270
- How they Planted the Nasturtiums 273
- A Garden Party 276
- The King’s Children 281
- For the Boys 287
- I wish I were a General 293
- A Hebrew Christian 298
- The Baby’s Lesson 305
- Parlor Fortune Telling 308
- Church Courtesy 314
- A Brave Boy 317
-
-
-
-
-INTRODUCTORY.
-
-
-When children have passed beyond the rattle age, they reach out their
-hands for baa-lambs, woolly sheep, cows with bells, cats that meaw, and
-dogs that say bow-wow.
-
-The next advance in amusement is to play with a toy that goes on
-wheels, and therefore for a half hour at a time, little folk will be
-content by drawing around the nursery such toys as trains of cars,
-horses with long tails, express wagons, etc., etc.; and then follows
-the period when pretty lady dolls must go out to drive in a pretty
-carriage accompanied by mistress baby, whose chubby hands push the
-doll’s carriage ahead, and nurse’s ever vigilant eyes keep watch, so
-that neither baby nor the baby’s doll, like the historic Jack and Jill,
-fall down and break their crown. And mechanical dollies are also in
-demand,—lady dolls that lift their veils, smile and bow; gentlemen
-dolls that are orchestrian leaders; boy dolls that can turn somersaults
-and effect other athletic feats. And about this time if nurse is
-careful to keep sharp eyes on the scissors, colored pictures may be
-cut out and pasted in scrapbooks, or paper dolls may be arrayed as
-their youthful mothers desire. Or bright pieces of silk may be sewed
-together, provided the thread is tied into the needle’s eye, so that
-it cannot be pulled out. Or wonderful castles may be built with packs
-of cards, or towers and steeples with building blocks. Noah’s ark will
-do great service, as will also tops that spin, and hoops that may be
-rolled or twirled, and drums that may be beat, and whistles and horns
-that may be blown.
-
-But, notwithstanding all the toys and amusement therefrom, there will
-be heard the oftentimes plaintive wail, “Play with me, please play
-with me.” And then it is that the wise mother or nurse will introduce
-a simple game. Perhaps Puss in the Corner, or Blind Man’s Buff, or
-perhaps hide behind a large chair or screen and call aloud, “Where am
-I?” and such a mischievous laugh will follow when the toddling child
-finds the one who has thus hidden!
-
-From this period game follows game, just as naturally as year follows
-year, and even when the little tot has grown to womanhood or manhood,
-the cry is still heard, “Play with me, please play with me,” thus
-illustrating the trite words, men and women are only children grown up.
-
-Therefore the variety of games within this book: Games suitable for
-all ages, for all temperaments; games for the house, and games for the
-field; games for the girls, and, games for the boys; games for the
-young, and games for the old; games for St. Valentine’s Day, games for
-Christmas Day,—games for all seasons, games for all climes. Thus may
-the year be filled with jollity.
-
-Several games in this volume were originally published in the
-periodicals of Messrs. Harper & Brothers, and are reprinted by their
-kind permission.
-
- EMMA J. GRAY.
-
-
-
-
-FUN FOR THE HOUSEHOLD.
-
-
-
-
-LITTLE FOLKS.
-
-A LITTLE CHILD’S PARTY.
-
-
-Invite both boys and girls for a short frolic. Between three and five
-o’clock in the afternoon would be excellent hours.
-
-Provide for their entertainment, flowers, birds, worsted and rubber
-balls, dolls, tea-services, horses, whips, and music. If you have a
-music-box it will prove very serviceable. The children will be much
-interested; some of the shorter ones will stand on tiptoe, the better
-to discover the way the wheels go around.
-
-Two or more grown people should be present; those who understand little
-children, and have a knack in amusing them.
-
-The toys will greatly aid in getting the children acquainted. Play
-ball with the boys, throwing it lightly back and forth. Set out the
-tea-services. Show off the dollies. Put a small boy on a hobby horse,
-and start the horse on a trot, and after he has his ride, give another
-boy his turn. After a while play polkas and waltzes, and then
-
- What a merry rout,
- See the wee ones dance about!
-
-Change the amusement. Show them flowers, canary birds, butterflies,
-anything you may have to attract, always remembering the toys and going
-back to them again and again.
-
-Low chairs and hassocks will make it easier for the little people than
-to have to climb into the great chairs and sofas used by older folks.
-
-Refreshments should be exceedingly simple, and a souvenir, such as a
-cornucopia or handful of motto-papers, gayly tinted and full of candy,
-will be much appreciated.
-
-
-THE FARMER’S SONG.
-
-_A Motion Game._
-
- As over the field the farmer goes,
- And grain by grain he sows in the rows,
- He sings and shouts, Oh, you crows, you crows,
- Keep away from my rows, away from my rows.
-
- This is the way the glad farmer reaps
- His wheat, and when it is bunched he keeps
- An eye on all his workers around,
- And laughs at their faces, merry and round.
-
- This is the way the glad farmer binds
- All the ripe sheaves he’s able to find,
- And when no more wheat is on the ground,
- He laughs ha, ha, ha, and turns all around.
-
- Hurrah, hurrah for the farmer bold
- He laughs and is merry e’en when ’tis cold,
- He shouts ha, ha, on an August day,
- And gathers his wheat as if ’twas his play.
-
- Oh, who would not be a farmer lad,
- And clap one’s hands hard and never be sad,
- And sing, while working all the day long,
- I’m jolly and happy and brave and strong?
-
-Let all the players form a ring, with a boy in the centre for farmer.
-After the song is sung through, the farmer must choose two players to
-clasp their hands and raise them, thus forming an arch. The ring having
-broken, now forms a long line, and one by one each individual passes
-under the arch, singing as they go,
-
- Oh, who would not be a farmer lad,
-
-and with the last word of the verse the arch falls, and thus some one
-is caught, and he or she is now farmer. A ring is then again formed,
-and the game proceeds as before.
-
-This being a motion game, the words of the song must be acted. Every
-child has seen farmers sow, reap and bind, and while singing those
-words they must copy the farmer (the boy in the ring) as nearly as
-possible, also remember to clap the hands, turn around, etc., at the
-proper time, indeed lose no opportunity to act the words as well as to
-sing them. Tune, “Oats, peas, beans, and barley grows.”
-
-
-THE PIE-MAN’S SONG.
-
-_A Motion Game._
-
- Solo.
- If a body meet a body, coming to my fire,
- If a body greet a body, why should I have ire?
- All the lassies and the laddies
- Come to me and buy
- Buns and bread and muffins sweet,
- And all my jelly pie.
-
- Chorus.
- This is the way the pie-man takes
- The roller to smooth the crust he makes;
- Then putting the crust in a bright tin pan.
- He fills it with quince and raspberry jam.
-
- This way the pie-man carries bread,
- Holding the board on top of his head;
- While to the oven he hurries along,
- All the time merrily singing his song.
-
- Solo.
- If a body meet a body, coming to my fire,
- If a body greet a body, why should I have ire? etc.
-
- Chorus.
- This is the way we eat the cakes,
- And pies and buns the pie-man makes,
- And when we are through we ask yet for more,
- While we dance on the baker’s clean wood floor.
-
- Then we run as fast as we can,
- And leave this jolly baker man,
- While to the oven he hurries along,
- All the time merrily singing his song.
-
- Solo.
- If a body meet a body, coming to my fire,
- If a body greet a body, why should I have ire? etc.
-
-The verses may be sung to the tune, “Pop Goes the Weasel.” The solo is
-sung by the baker, to the tune, “Coming Through the Rye.”
-
-All the children should sing and imitate the pieman, who illustrates
-each action that is mentioned.
-
-
-FLY SOUTH.
-
-Very small children would delight in playing Fly South.
-
-All the players should sit around a table, and each having put their
-right hand on it, the leader should exclaim, “Fly South, Sparrow.” The
-second that this is said everybody must lift their hand, and then at
-once put it down as before. Again the leader speaks, perhaps to say,
-“Fly South, Pigeon,” and instantly the players must act as at the first
-command.
-
-But if on the contrary something is named that cannot fly, such as,
-“Fly South, Bear,” or “Fly South, Cat,” the players must keep their
-hands on the table. All removing them at the wrong time should pay a
-forfeit.
-
-The leader should speak rapidly, in order to catch all he can.
-
-
-THREE BLIND MICE.
-
-Ask three small boys to be blindfolded. When this is done, and they
-each state that they cannot see, even the least little bit, a big
-sister or mother should say, “You are three blind mice and I am the
-farmer’s wife, and I am going to run, and as soon as I count three you
-must run after me. Whoever catches me first shall have a big apple;
-whoever catches me second shall have two big apples; and when I am
-caught by the third I shall present that blind mouse with three big
-apples.”
-
-Having made the above explanation, the farmer’s wife deliberately
-counts one, two, three, and on the instant three is spoken, the blind
-mice run.
-
-As soon as the running starts, all others sing,
-
- Three blind mice, see how they run,
- They all ran after the farmer’s wife.
-
-This may be sung over and over until the blind mice succeed. Having run
-a few moments, the farmer’s wife should allow herself to be caught, as
-this game being particularly suited to little children, they would not
-have the skill in catching known to older people.
-
-If it is not convenient to give apples as reward, substitute something
-else. Almost any trifling gift would do.
-
-While running is in continuance, be careful the children do not trip.
-
-
-THE HOLIDAY CALENDAR.
-
-“I have a holiday calendar,” a little boy should say to a little girl.
-
-“Where is it?”
-
-“Here.” And directly he holds up his hand with fingers spread towards
-her.
-
-“See my five fingers. They stand for our five holidays.” Then touching
-his thumb he should continue,
-
-“This is for Mayday, so sweet,” and then touching the finger next,
-“Jolly Fourth, with its noise,” afterwards indicating the middle
-finger, “Thanksgiving and pumpkin pies,” and touching the next finger,
-“Christmas, for girls and boys,” and holding up his little finger
-concludes, “Happy New Year to all.”
-
-
-THE SEA AND HER CHILDREN.
-
-The players, with the exception of one sent from the room, must be
-seated in a circle. The person having left will represent the Sea. All
-others must now decide on an assumed name, which is also the name of
-a fish; for example, trout, red snapper, pickerel. This done, the Sea
-returns and walks slowly around the outside of the ring, calling her
-children, one after another, by the different names they have selected,
-until all have risen and followed her. Then the Sea must run with a
-varied motion, sometimes rapid, sometimes slow, exclaiming, “The Sea
-is troubled! the Sea is troubled!” Suddenly she seats herself, and her
-example is followed by her children. The unfortunate individual who is
-unable to secure a chair becomes the Sea, and the game is continued as
-before.
-
-
-CINDERELLA’S SLIPPER.
-
-Every child has heard the pretty story of Cinderella and her glass
-slipper. Now learn who will have bright enough eyes to find it.
-
-The fairy godmother cannot really let you have Cinderella’s slipper,
-but she allows any of the children to hunt for a slipper that is made
-of fur, or trimmed with fur. This slipper should have Cinderella’s card
-pinned to it, and whoever finds the slipper should be given the card as
-a souvenir.
-
-Cinderella’s slipper should be well hidden, but not where little people
-could not reach. While the hunt is in progress, whoever has hidden the
-slipper should call “Warm, Warmer, Cold, Colder,” as the children get
-nearer or further away.
-
-
-THE MAN IN THE MOON.
-
-Have a circle two feet in diameter cut out of plain white paper. At
-the time the game is to be played some one should pin this on the back
-of the Lord of Misrule. He must then whistle and caper all about the
-room, thus attracting attention, and seat himself at the piano, and
-sing at the top of his lungs,
-
- Girls and boys, come out to play.
-
-As soon as he sings the word _play_, every girl and boy rushes forward
-and catching each other by the hand, they dance and skip about to the
-tune played by the Lord of Misrule, while all sing,
-
- Girls and boys come out to play,
- The moon doth shine as bright as day,
- Leave your supper and leave your sleep,
- And meet your playfellows in the street,
- Come with a whoop and come with a call.
-
-The second the words whoop and call are uttered the most
-throat-splitting whoops and calls should be given; such as cat calls,
-wild beast groans, crying, barking, bird notes, etc. The circle
-disbands during the laughter and confusion, but the game may be played
-over and over as long as the Man of the Moon shall will.
-
-
-HOW MANY?
-
-This is really a game of guess. Shake a small bag full of beans before
-the children, and ask each to guess how many beans are inside.
-
-It will be amusing to watch the eagerness which all will show, and how
-far apart the guesses will be.
-
-Whoever comes nearest to the correct number should be presented with
-the bag of beans. And this gift will immediately afford healthful and
-jolly entertainment, because the bean-bag should be tossed and caught
-by one and another until the rosy-cheeked and out-of-breath children
-call a halt.
-
-
-ALPHABETICAL PLAY.
-
-Cut out a square of cardboard, six inches wide by six inches long.
-Put an eyelet in each of the two upper corners and run tape or ribbon
-through. Cut it of sufficient length to go over a child’s head. The
-children should wear the cardboard as if it was a breastplate.
-
-You should have twenty-six children, and you will therefore require
-twenty-six pieces of cardboard. In the centre of each piece, paint a
-letter of the alphabet. Should you have fewer children, paint two or
-more letters on each cardboard, for you must use the entire alphabet.
-
-The children should first march up and down in alphabetical order,
-keeping time to music. They may then join hands in couples and skip or
-waltz or whatever pleasing movements may be suggested.
-
-After these exercises call for words, being careful which words you
-will require if you have doubled or trebled the letters. As each word
-is called, the child wearing the first letter steps forward, then the
-one wearing the second letter comes and stands by her side, and so on,
-until the word is spelled.
-
-Very short and simple words should be called if the children are not
-sufficiently advanced to allow for longer or more difficult ones. Dog,
-Cat, Bird, will furnish just as much amusement as Prodigy, Yclept, Bask.
-
-Intersperse the word exercises with marches and other movements, such
-as “Right-about-face,” to be done by a chord, or “wheel to the left,”
-to be done by another. Form squares and circles. Join hands, thus
-making a ring. Into this ring the letter A goes, the others skip around
-her, until she makes a motion like something commencing with A; for
-example, Apple, which she pretends to eat. One or more of the company
-guesses what word she represents, and then B enters the ring, and so on
-as long as the game amuses.
-
-
-BLINDFOLDED PLATTER TWIRLING.
-
-This game is similar to the old-time favorite.
-
-All players should sit in a circle, and each number themselves in
-rotation.
-
-Two of the party should be blindfolded. They are then each given a
-platter, and they enter the ring.
-
-The others call, one, two, three. As soon as three is called, those
-inside the ring twirl the platters, and at the same moment they each
-shout a number which corresponds to two of the players in the circle.
-Should either of the bearers of the numbers catch his platter before it
-falls, the original twirler must try over again and continue to twirl
-and call until the platter is not caught.
-
-But should the platter have fallen before the child bearing the number
-called has caught it, he must not only change places with the one who
-has twirled the platter, but also pay a forfeit.
-
-Much amusement is derived, not only from catching the platter, but in
-watching the ridiculous movements of those who are blindfolded.
-
-
-THE WILD BEAST EXHIBIT.
-
-By the side of a pier-glass stand a lamp, and before both put a screen.
-
-The one in charge stands in front, and having stated that he is ready
-to exhibit his wild beasts to any one present who will not tell what he
-has seen, asks who would like to come to the exhibition, all desiring
-to, please rise. He then takes them in turn, always exacting the
-promise of secrecy, and asks the name of the animal each would like to
-see.
-
-On learning the name, the showman describes the animal as funnily
-as possible, making all manner of sport, and engaging every one’s
-attention to the individual who is to go to the show. As for example,
-if the person be a boy, and says he would like to see a lion, when the
-boy laughs, the showman will say, “And the lion roars _just like you_.”
-After this he is admitted, and sees himself in the looking-glass.
-
-
-NEW TAG.
-
-The tallest player should begin the game.
-
-This person turning to the first right hand player should say “Yes”; to
-the second, “No”; and so on all around, saying yes or no, as the case
-may be, to yourself last. Whoever is the last person to whom “No” is
-said, however, is out of the game, and the one who commenced the game,
-again goes around the ring. If she has said “Yes” to herself last,
-then the one to her right hand is now told “No,” and thus “Yes,” “No,”
-is said all around again and again and so on, until there are but two
-players. Whichever one is Yes, must then be “It.”
-
-All the players now stand at a given distance from “It,” and a tree or
-object being selected as a place of safety, they are ready to begin.
-
-“It” calls to the others, “One foot off,” then each player raises one
-of their feet. “Two feet on,” at which order everybody’s feet are
-immediately upon the sidewalk. “Two feet off,” may then be called, at
-which order all rush at their utmost speed, and “It” after them. Should
-anybody be caught before reaching the tree of safety, that person must
-change places with “It,” and the game continues as before.
-
-The orders, “One foot off,” “Two feet on,” etc., should be called very
-rapidly, so that everybody is mixed up and will not suspect when two
-feet off will be called. Sometimes the orders are repeated over and
-over, and again, “Two feet off” may be said the first time.
-
-
-THE GREENGROCER.
-
-Any boy may start the game, by saying, “I am a greengrocer and I sell
-O.” All of the children must now guess what the grocer would have for
-sale that would commence with the letter O.
-
-He means he has onions for sale. Whoever is the first to guess, whether
-it is a girl or a boy, now becomes the greengrocer and uses the
-same words as before, only substituting another letter. Perhaps the
-greengrocer has cucumbers or carrots for sale; in that case he would
-sell C.
-
-This game is capable of a variety of changes, for example, “I am a
-milliner, and I am going to put F on your hat.” All the girls must now
-guess what a milliner could put on a hat that would commence with F,
-and some one is not long in deciding that the milliner means “Flowers.”
-
-The next milliner may say, “I am a milliner and I am going to put D
-flowers on your hat.”
-
-And all must think what varieties of flowers commence with the letter
-D, and in a second some one calls out, “Daisies.”
-
-
-This being correct, the one who has guessed becomes milliner.
-
-In like manner a boy may say, “I am a New York jeweler, and I sell G,”
-and all the players must think what a jeweler could offer for sale that
-would commence with the letter G.
-
-Soon a voice asks, “Is it Gold?” But that is not correct, this jeweler
-is selling Garnets.
-
-Or the game may be confined to a country. Example: “I am a Japanese
-merchant and I sell S.”
-
-The players must think what the merchant has for sale that comes from
-Japan, and that commences with the letter S.
-
-Thus with care this game may be played by a small child with as much
-success as by an adult.
-
-
-RUBIES AND EMERALDS.
-
-Two players decide as to which one will represent rubies and which
-emeralds, without telling the others.
-
-They then join hands to form an arch. All the rest take hold of each
-other’s jackets or frocks, and while going through the arch they sing,
-
- All of a row,
- Bend the bow,
- Shot at a pigeon
- And killed a crow.
- The cock doth crow
- To let you know,
- If you be well.
-
-The second that the last word is sung, those who have formed the arch
-drop their arms around the neck of the child just passing under.
-Then they inquire in a whisper which he would rather have, Rubies or
-Emeralds. When he decides, he must whisper the answer, and he will then
-be told to go back of the player that represents that stone.
-
-When all have been caught, those back of the stone that has had the
-most admirers now hide, while the others seek for them. Should the
-rubies have precedence, the emeralds are the ones to hunt, or if the
-emeralds, the rubies are the ones to hunt. Whichever stone is in the
-minority must seek for the others. Whoever finds the most rubies or
-emeralds, as the case may be, is counted the richest, as this player
-possesses the most treasure.
-
-The players who have formed the arch keep watch that all is done fairly.
-
-
-WHAT THE DANDELIONS SAID
-
-Is the old game familiar to all from babyhood—that of blowing the soft
-down of the ripened dandelion to learn, “How old am I?” Blow once, one
-year old; blow twice, two years, and so on, until all the downy stuff
-has gone. The number of times the blows have been given before the down
-has altogether disappeared indicates the age.
-
-Or, “What time is it?”
-
-This is indicated in the same way. Blow once, and if all the down is
-gone, it is one o’clock, twice, two o’clock, and so on.
-
-
-DAISY CATCH.
-
-All the boys and girls should stand in a group, with the exception
-of one girl, and to her is given a bunch of daisies. She is known as
-“Daisy Girl.” A tree is selected as a place of safety and the other
-girls count ten, allowing ten seconds for the count. During the
-counting, Daisy Girl runs wherever she pleases, but the moment ten is
-spoken, the boys and girls may race after her. The idea is to tag her
-while the flowers are in her hand. If she is tagged the girl must then
-throw the daisies as if they were a ball to the boy or girl tagging
-her. If they are caught the game proceeds as before, by reversing the
-players, but if the flowers are not caught, Daisy Girl may try again.
-She may also demand another chance, if, when fearing she would be
-tagged, she throws the daisies away, and catches them again before any
-of the other players. When the game is repeated it commences regularly
-from the beginning, the players taking the same position as at the
-start.
-
-
-DIBBS.
-
-This is the English name for Jack-Stones.
-
-Where a number of children are playing together, test who can pick up
-the greater number without dropping any, within ten minutes.
-
-The oldest child should keep count, and also watch the time, in order
-that no mistakes occur. The counter should have each of the players’
-names written on a slate or piece of paper, with sufficient room for
-his scores. When a Dibb or Jack-Stone has been dropped, this party must
-commence afresh. He, however, may yet win; for his opponents may drop
-many more Dibbs than he. The only score to count is after the last Dibb
-has been dropped. A player might have reached a score of thirty or
-more, but having failed to catch his Dibb, it drops and he must now
-count one, two, and so on without regard to former count.
-
-When the ten minutes have expired, the counter should call “Game,” and
-the players must stop on the second.
-
-
-TOUCH.
-
-This game is for little children, though it may be played by children
-of all ages. It is at its best as an out-of-door recreation.
-
-Chalk off a part of a lawn or use a small grass plot. On this put a
-number of paper-covered packages. Then blindfold one of the children,
-and, in the sight of all the others, touch a package. When this is
-done the blindfold may be removed, and the child told he may have all
-the packages for his own, until he takes the one touched, then he must
-stop. Sometimes the player is unfortunate enough to pick up the touched
-package first, if so, he must surrender this also, unless the players
-vote he may try again. No one may try more than twice.
-
-On the contrary an occasional child may pick up every package before
-the one touched, when that happens the touched package is also added as
-a reward.
-
-This game interests all, and when the touched package is picked up, the
-children scream with laughter. The contents of the packages may be a
-little candy, inexpensive toys, an apple, pear or other fruits, also
-nuts. Each present is temptingly wrapped, and as this game is played
-over and over no one gift should cost beyond a penny or two. It makes
-great fun to undo the packages, and generous children always divide
-with the unfortunate.
-
-
-SNAPPING-ROPES.
-
-This is a Scotch game, usually played by girls, but there is no reason
-why boys should not play also.
-
-Two skipping-ropes are required. Two players turn the pair of ropes,
-holding the ends of both ropes in one hand precisely the same as if
-they were turning a single rope, and the third player stands between
-and jumps. Whoever is jumper cannot be lazy, as that party has to jump
-twice as rapidly as if jumping in a single rope.
-
-
-
-
-BOYS AND GIRLS.
-
-
-SILHOUETTES.
-
-Place a lighted candle behind a tall screen covered with white linen.
-The hostess should sit before it and each of the company must in turn
-pass between the candle and the screen. The game is to guess the person
-behind the screen by means of their shadow.
-
-The guesser should leave the room while the one to be named is
-selected, and on returning, he should not look to find out who is
-missing, but honestly guess from the silhouette.
-
-Sometimes it adds to the fun to use a disguise, as at a masquerade,
-for example, put on a long skirt, fasten up the hair, etc., in no case
-cover the face, as it is difficult to give the right name, with every
-advantage.
-
-
-THE SURPRISE.
-
-Learn what you can do with five pieces of paper. The margin of a
-newspaper may be utilized if no other paper is convenient. These pieces
-should be one inch long by half an inch wide. The scheme is to shape
-them into squares, triangles, etc., the one who wins the game is the
-one who can accomplish the most with his five pieces.
-
-He need not use the entire five each time, but he cannot add to the
-number of papers, nor can he mark them with pen, pencil or any other
-thing.
-
-As a matter of fact the whole alphabet can be formed with them, and so
-many other unique designs that this game fully merits its name.
-
-
-HAPHAZARD READING.
-
-To be played by nine people; should there be more present, draw for the
-players. And, as but one of the party will read, draw to decide which
-one.
-
-The reader then, having a pencil and paper, writes the parts of speech,
-as the players in turn whisper to him:
-
-No. 1. An Article.
-
-No. 2. An Adjective.
-
-No. 3. A Noun.
-
-No. 4. A Verb.
-
-No. 5. An Adverb.
-
-No. 6. A Number.
-
-No. 7. An Adjective.
-
-No. 8. A Noun.
-
-These having been written, the sentences must then be read aloud:
-
-Example:
-
-No. 1 whispers the article The.
-
-No. 2, the adjective Pink.
-
-No. 3, the noun Hawthorn.
-
-No. 4, the verb Plays.
-
-No. 5, the adverb Prettily.
-
-No. 6, the number Three hundred and three.
-
-No. 7, the adjective Fantastic.
-
-No. 8, the noun Operas.
-
-The sentence to be read, therefore, is, The pink hawthorn plays
-prettily three hundred and three fantastic operas.
-
-The easiest way to draw will be to provide several slips of paper,
-of exact size and shape. Some of the papers must be blank, others
-numbered, 1, 2, 3, and so on, making nine in all. Put these papers on
-a tray and pass to all in the room. The one drawing the number 9 must
-be the reader, the other numbers decide whether that individual must
-whisper an article or an adjective, according to the example given.
-Those having blank papers do not play.
-
-
-SING, BIRDIE, SING.
-
-This game provokes laughter from the most solemn individual. The
-company should be seated in a ring. The one in command enters the ring
-and makes much ceremony in giving each player the name of a bird;
-which may be, for example, heron, kingfisher, bluebird, cat-bird,
-wood-thrush. When each have been named, the commander then whispers
-something to every person. What he whispers is a motion or sound or
-both, which he wishes the person to give. When everybody has received
-their cue, the commander steps to the centre of the ring and calls,
-“One, two, three.” The moment “Three” is spoken, each of the company
-rise, and running round the circle of empty chairs, flap their arms in
-imitation of wings, sing or call as they have been directed. The heron
-should make a motion as though trying to get little fish out of holes
-in the bottom of a pond, or he should stand on one leg and appear to
-be asleep. The kingfisher should brush up his hair, making it rough on
-the top, and then act as if diving for minnows. The bluebird should
-warble a sweet song. The cat-bird should appear full of fun and make
-melodious notes, but he should also add the complaining _mee-aa_; for
-the cat-bird is sometimes a wonderful songster, but after nesting gives
-a sound that is decidedly cat-like. The wood-thrush should sing a most
-tender melody, and the more melancholy the better. Hawks, wood-peckers,
-chickadees, parrots, screech-owls, ducks, geese and many other birds
-might be added. The greater variety introduced the better.
-
-
-SQUIRREL IN THE MIDDLE.
-
-This is a game for boys, and the player is decided by lot.
-
-The easiest way to arrange the lot is to throw as many bits of paper,
-of similar size and shape, into a hat as there are players. All of
-these papers are blank excepting one, this has the word “player”
-written on it. The hat is then passed, and the boy drawing the word
-“player” immediately sits on the floor, the others stand in a circle
-around him. Whoever is behind his back, pulls his coat, or gently
-pulls his hair, taking him unawares. He turns to catch this boy, but
-while doing so another boy buffets him. As the players dance about the
-circle, they exclaim, “Squirrel in the middle catch him if you can.”
-
-Finally one of the boys is caught, and he must then change places with
-the one he has been tormenting.
-
-
-TABLESPOONS.
-
-Form a circle, one of the number going into the ring. Present that
-person with a tablespoon for each hand, and blindfold him.
-
-Then state that the others will skip around him three times and then
-stop. As soon as they stop, they will let go hands and stand perfectly
-still. The party in the ring now moves towards one of the players and
-must tell who he is by touching him with the spoons only. If his guess
-is correct, the person caught now exchanges places with the one in the
-ring; if he is incorrect, he must try again.
-
-This game is not as difficult as it at first appears. Carefully notice
-the peculiarity of clothing each one has on before you enter the ring,
-whether, for instance, the frock is trimmed, buttoned, etc., or the
-scarf is a four-in-hand ornamented with a scarf-pin, or if the scarf
-is run through a ring or tied in a bow. Note also the wearing of the
-hair and every detail that may occur to you, and remember that the
-spoons may be used whichever way one pleases. So, if they touch beads,
-and there is only one person who is wearing beads that will at once
-indicate the individual; or if the spoon knocks against a scarf pin
-and there is only one boy wearing a scarf pin, he will of necessity be
-recognized, and thus each player is caught.
-
-
-THE EMPEROR’S COURT.
-
-Put a conspicuously handsome chair in the centre of the room, also
-an ottoman for the feet. On either side of this put as many ordinary
-chairs as would accommodate the players.
-
-One of the company now goes to the piano, and plays a march, all of the
-others, rise, and, with considerable ceremony, escort the tallest boy
-in the room to the chair of honor.
-
-This boy now becomes an Emperor, and the chair at his disposal, his
-throne, the rest of the players his court. Immediately the Emperor is
-seated, the music stops, and the pianist together with the court seat
-themselves also.
-
-This game consists in copying the Emperor. If he pretends to cry, the
-court must cry, if he sings, the court must sing. The Emperor should
-make himself as ridiculous as is possible.
-
-Or he might order one of the court to play the piano and have a dance,
-or give a set of military tactics.
-
-Should any of the court laugh at a time the Emperor is not laughing, he
-or she must pay a forfeit.
-
-
-THREE LITTLE PIGS.
-
-This game is played after the same manner as is Silhouettes, only
-those taking part should be in costume, representing the words they
-illustrate. It makes capital sport, and nobody can fail to enjoy it,
-whether taking part or not. The game is easily understood, and is best
-described by an example.
-
-One of the company should distinctly say,
-
- Three little pigs went to market.
-
-When this is said, three pigs should appear as if going to market,
-passing between a candle and a white covered screen, they should
-grotesquely walk, so adding to the amusement. When these three have
-hobbled off, the reader then recites,
-
- Three little pigs stayed at home,
-
-which is likewise shown by three others of the company; then in like
-manner,
-
- Three little pigs have bread and butter,
-
-and so on through the rhyme, illustrating every scene.
-
-Paper will be found all the material necessary to effect a disguise.
-Cut it in the form of ears, etc., as is needed, and practise effects
-before producing the game to amuse an audience.
-
-
-THE FUNNY PRIMA DONNAS.
-
-Three girls should wear ridiculous costumes, making themselves as
-grotesque as possible. Each one being a prima donna, should try to
-outdo the other in appearance as also in voice. The hair should be
-fashioned after the same arrangement as that of a celebrated vocalist,
-the hands and arms should be covered with evening gloves. The material
-of the frock need not be costly, but it should be smart and showy; the
-frock should be made with a train. Each should carry a conspicuous
-fan, or immense bouquets of large bright flowers, such as full-blown
-roses, poppies, yellow chrysanthemums, etc. The bouquets should be
-trimmed elaborately around with white paper lace.
-
-At an appropriate time the hostess will announce the arrival of three
-celebrated Prima Donnas, and before they appear she will give each of
-the company a noticeably colored paper flower, or bunch of flowers,
-such as marigolds, morning glories, scarlet geraniums. Having given the
-flowers, she will say, “When the artists have concluded their song, let
-each one do as I do.”
-
-This said, the artists enter, and having promenaded to the front room,
-gesticulating all the time, they bow and sing a line each, and each in
-a different key, to the tune of “Auld Lang Syne,” the following:
-
- Young Mousy Mouse
- Has made a house
- Out of the farmer’s cheese.
-
-Then in chorus,—
-
- And eats away
- With friends each day,
- As jolly as you please.
-
-Then separately the first three lines of the second verse,—
-
- But Mousy Mouse
- Don’t see her house
- Soon swallowed up must be.
-
-In chorus,—
-
- And with that house
- Goes that poor mouse
- As sure as sure can be.
-
-The instant the last word is sung, the hostess, with all her might
-and main, throws her flower to reach the artist’s feet, and as the
-company has been told to copy her, there is a perfect rain of flowers.
-Afterwards they are gathered, and divided between the Prima Donnas, who
-triumphantly carry them home as souvenirs of their charming reception.
-
-
-DO YOU HEAR?
-
-This game needs two persons.
-
-Stand at a distance from your confederate who will ask, “Molly, do you
-hear?” and who will keep up asking the question until some one speaks.
-Then Molly says she hears and leaves the room.
-
-No sooner out, than her confederate will explain to the company, “I
-shall hand some one in this room a button, and I shall then ask Molly
-to tell me who has it.” Having thus explained, he hands the button to
-the individual who spoke just before Molly left the room. Then the
-confederate calls, “Molly, who has the button?”
-
-At once Molly replies correctly. The key is very simple, being only to
-remember the person who spoke as she left the room.
-
-The game when played with a boy, should have the word Johnny
-substituted for Molly.
-
-
-LAUGHABLE DINNER.
-
-Each girl in succession leads a boy to a position to dance a reel.
-
-First girl then says to first boy, “This is my flower to decorate the
-table,” and she gives him a flower which he puts in his buttonhole.
-
-Second girl to second boy, “This is my flower to decorate the table,”
-and she gives him a different flower, which he puts in his buttonhole.
-
-Third girl to third boy, “You tread clams for dinner,” and the boy must
-make the motion of treading clams.
-
-Fourth girl to fourth boy, “You catch trout for dinner,” and the boy
-makes believe he is a fly-fisherman.
-
-Fifth girl to fifth boy, “You get lamb to roast,” and the boy calls,
-“Bah! bah!”
-
-Sixth girl to sixth boy, “You get the turkey to roast,” and the boy
-gives the call of a turkey-gobbler.
-
-Seventh girl to seventh boy, “You shoot the duck for roasting,” and the
-boy calls, “Quack! Quack!”
-
-Eighth girl to eighth boy, “You are my pigeon to bake in a pie,” and
-the boy flaps his arms in imitation of wings.
-
-Ninth girl to ninth boy, “You are a baker and must bake our cake,” and
-this boy pretends to beat eggs.
-
-Tenth girl to tenth boy, “You are the young man who grinds good
-coffee,” and he makes believe he is turning the crank of a coffee-mill.
-As soon as the tenth boy responds, a couple of good whistlers whistle
-Yankee Doodle, all the others dance a reel, repeating their calls and
-motions while dancing.
-
-
-JOLLY PLAY.
-
-Arrange chairs in couples back to back, placing them in different parts
-of the room, and have one too few for your company.
-
-All the players stand, one behind the other, the one in charge at the
-head of the line. He leads the party whichever way he pleases. As they
-march, the leader sings to the tune of, “There were Three Crows sat on
-a Tree,”
-
- I must be gay
- This merry day,
- But game obey
- I will, I will.
-
-He may march about and sing this verse as often as he wishes, but while
-singing, “I will, I will,” he must some time fling himself into a
-chair. As soon as the leader is seated, the others make a bold rush to
-follow his example. The player for whom there is no seat, now becomes
-leader, and the rest of the company follow as before.
-
-
-THE DWARF.
-
-A boy should put his hands into small stockings and shoes. Then put
-on a wig of different color from his own hair. He must fasten on a
-moustache, and put some black sticking plaster over one or two of his
-front teeth. His coat should be of a different shape and his necktie
-should be of a different style from that which he usually wears.
-Indeed, he must be thoroughly disguised. Back of him, another boy must
-stand, and pass his arm around the first boy’s shoulder.
-
-Curtains must be drawn so that no part of the second boy is seen but
-his arms.
-
-Put a small table before them, and from the back of this table drop
-a cloth, so as to conceal the first boy below his waist. The front
-boy puts his hands dressed in shoes on the table, the boy back of him
-supplies his arms and hands, and if properly arranged a dwarf from
-three to four feet tall is thus produced.
-
-Of course, a tiny costume must be made. Little Turkish trousers, a
-blouse-like coat, a fez, a belt and small sword.
-
-It is well to have an exhibitor who should tell some wonderful tale
-about the dwarf. And the exhibitor should indicate that the dwarf
-jokes, sings and dances, an exhibition of which should then follow.
-
-The dwarf should be fully prepared as to what he will say and
-do. Several spicy jokes should be at his tongue’s end. He should
-gesticulate violently with his hands and arms, and likewise sing the
-jolliest of songs and dance the drollest dances.
-
-It requires practice.
-
-
-CROWN GAME.
-
-A girl enters the ring; all the others take firm hold of the rope. No
-sooner is she in than they skip about her, keeping the rope in motion.
-As they skip they sing, to the tune of “Auld Lang-syne,”
-
- Who’ll crown our queen, our merry queen,
- Who’ll crown our queen to-day?
- Who’ll crown our queen, our merry queen,
- Who’ll crown our queen to-day?
-
-When this is sung, the children stop skipping just where they are. And
-at once one of the boys puts his head under the rope, and, standing by
-the queen, replies, “I will.” Then raising a crown of wild flowers, he
-puts it on her head. No sooner is she crowned than she blindfolds the
-boy, and another girl enters, thus making two girls in the ring. The
-game is to “tag” the right girl before the other players count nine.
-When the boy “tags” the girl, he must at once say whether or not she is
-the queen, and if he makes a mistake he must remain in the ring and try
-again. The first girl withdraws, the second girl is crowned queen, and
-the game is repeated. But should he make no mistake, the boy remains in
-the ring, is crowned king, and the game goes on, only that two boys are
-in the ring when a girl is blindfolded.
-
-
-GUESS.
-
-_A Rope Game._
-
-Put a rope on the ground in the form of a circle; in the centre put
-a stone about the size of a duck’s egg. The players stand backwards
-around the rope, with their heels touching it. Each one in turn throws
-a grace-hoop over his right shoulder, with the hope it will encircle
-the stone. As soon as the hoop is thrown all may turn and see the
-position. If the hoop encircles the stone the player may try again and
-again, until he fails, counting one for each time. Then the party to
-his right tries, and so on all around the rope. Whoever has the largest
-count wins the game.
-
-This game is also played facing the stone; it is then no longer a game
-of guess, but a game of skill.
-
-
-THE CIRCLE.
-
-On the floor or ground mark a circle, the diameter of which is two feet.
-
-The easiest way would be to use a hoople of the correct size, and chalk
-it all around close to the wood. Be careful not to move the hoople
-while marking. Therefore, one person would better hold the hoople,
-while another uses the chalk.
-
-Eight players are required, two and two standing together, taking the
-same positions as if they were to dance a quadrille. The circle must
-be in the centre of the space around which they stand, and the players
-should be six feet from the outer edge.
-
-In the circle place four small articles, three without much value,
-and the other of some little value. As an example, put in three empty
-bottles, and one filled with inexpensive perfume, or if you use
-flowers, put three dandelions, and one half-blown rose. All articles
-must be laid side by side, and as nearly as possible, in the exact
-centre of the circle.
-
-When all is ready, the host, being at the piano, should play “Pop Goes
-the Weasel,” and if the game is played out of doors, the same tune
-should be hummed or whistled. When the music starts, the head couples
-join hands and skip to the circle and then back, this must be again and
-again repeated, until the pianist suddenly stops. Those who have been
-skipping must then bow to each other wherever they happen to be, also
-unclasp their hands, and neither run nor walk, but skip as rapidly as
-possible to the circle; sometimes they are fortunate enough to be by
-it when the music stops; then at once pick up one of the articles, and
-skip back to the position held at the time the game started.
-
-These movements must be finished before the musician again commences to
-play. Then, holding the article in one hand and your partner’s hand in
-the other, you skip twice around the circle, and return to position.
-The head couple leading, all the others following after the same order,
-as the march in a quadrille.
-
-The articles are then put where they were at the game’s start, and the
-side couples repeat what the head couples have already done.
-
-The musician should allow enough time to make it possible for all the
-players to pick up an article, but he must not allow too much time, or
-a prominent feature in the game is missed.
-
-Every one is desirous to pick up the valuable article, but if you are
-not careful the music will start before you have gotten anything:
-in that case you must be blindfolded and skip all alone four times
-around the circle. While you are skipping, the spectators are clapping.
-Whoever is fortunate enough to have picked up the valuable article, may
-retain it as a favor. This must therefore have a duplicate, as the side
-couples have equal chances with the heads.
-
-
-TWO SKIPPING-ROPE GAMES.
-
-Take a skipping-rope whenever you go for a country frolic. One treat
-will be given through clover blossoms. Each player should gather enough
-of these sweet-scented flowers to make three fair-sized bouquets, when
-these are made, put them in a convenient and cool place.
-
-Take turns turning the rope; as soon as one girl is through skipping,
-she should exchange with one that has been turning. In that way nobody
-is tired.
-
-Enter the rope according to height, the shortest player should go
-first. As soon as the rope is in even motion, all the players excepting
-the one to skip, should say, “One, two, three,” the moment “Three” is
-said, whoever is to skip must enter or lose her turn. Should she trip
-before skipping eight times she must give her successor a bouquet, on
-the contrary, should she skip five times without a break, her successor
-must present her with a bouquet. No one may be allowed to skip more
-than fifteen times, as too much rope skipping is injurious.
-
-These rules must receive strict adherence. When all have had
-opportunity to skip three times, the game is finished. The winner is
-the one who has received the most bouquets.
-
-Another game requires ten players, two turning and eight skipping. In
-this game those who turn cannot be relieved, but must turn until the
-game is concluded.
-
-This time the tallest player is the first to enter, the others stand
-according to height, one directly back of the other. As soon as the
-rope is in steady motion, the first player starts, skips once, runs
-out and around to a rock or tree previously decided on, where she is
-safe, the second immediately enters the rope, after the first one runs
-out, the point being for the second one to tag the first before she can
-reach her destination. The third player, however, enters the rope as
-the second has run out, and is trying just as hard to tag the second,
-as the second is to tag the first, and so on, each rapidly following
-the one before, and thus this game keeps steadily on until all have
-been through the rope three times.
-
-Whoever has been tagged is out of the game, and can no longer play;
-this decides who are the winners.
-
-It now becomes the duty of all who have played, to gather quantities
-of clover or other field blossoms, enough to trim the rope from one end
-to the other. In this form the pretty flowers are taken home, and used
-for dining-room decoration. Festoon the mantel, or wind it around the
-chandelier, allowing the ends to drop low towards the table.
-
-As only one person can have this rope of flowers, decide which one, by
-counting out.
-
-
-RUNNING FOR THE CAP.
-
-The boys must be equally divided; one set is called catchers, the other
-runners, and these sets must stand fifty yards apart. The catcher’s
-position is thirty yards from the post, and the runners’ twenty. The
-call, one, two, three, is given, and on the second three is spoken one
-boy from each party runs to the post. The runner will naturally get
-there first, and he has to put the cap on his head, and then replace
-it. He must do this with the utmost rapidity, as, should the catcher
-overtake him on his way back to the position which he held before
-starting to run, the boy becomes the catcher’s prisoner, and can no
-longer play.
-
-
-FIRE-ARCH DISCOUNT GAME.
-
-A strip of wood two inches thick, five inches wide, and one yard long
-will be required. In this cut five arches, making the centre one four
-inches in width, the others three inches each; stand it up on the floor
-or on a table, and make the starting-point six feet away. Four marbles
-may be rolled by each player. When a marble goes through the centre
-arch it counts sixty, but if, instead, it goes through either of the
-small arches, thirty is counted off. If a marble fails to pass through
-either, it is counted out of the game, and must be removed. The next
-turn around, the player will use only three instead of four marbles.
-The boy who has the highest tally has won; should there be a tie, they
-must roll again.
-
-This game requires practice, or some players will find that they have
-lost more than they have made.
-
-
-THE BAGATELLE BOARD COUNT GAME.
-
-Chalk a floor or mark a space in exact copy of a bagatelle-board ten
-feet long by three wide. In the inclosure, at correct distances, mark
-the numbers; this may be done with chalk, or the numbers may be painted
-on thin wooden blocks and laid in position. Each player must start
-his marble at the extreme left-hand corner, and state before starting
-the number he wishes to roll to. Should the marble go to that number,
-and not roll on so as to touch another, the player counts the number
-selected, and can then state another number and play for that, and can
-so continue for seven minutes, provided his marble always hits the
-number selected, and though rolling on, does not touch or stop at any
-other. When his time is up his count is scored, and the next player
-follows, subject to the same rules. Should the marble stop on the
-number selected, it is counted double in favor of the player. Again,
-should the marble, having reached the selected number, still roll on
-and touch another, no count is allowed, and the player must stop until
-his turn comes again.
-
-
-FUNNY QUESTIONS WITH FUNNY ANSWERS.
-
-All the players stand in a circle and join hands.
-
-The tallest one in the room whispers a question to her right-hand
-neighbor, who answers her in a whisper, and then turns and asks _her_
-right-hand neighbor a question, who replies in like manner. When
-questions and answers have all gone around, the party who commenced
-states aloud the question her _left_-hand neighbor asked, and the reply
-her _right_-hand neighbor gave.
-
-Example: Suppose three players.
-
-First questions.
-
-Second answers, then turns and ask third.
-
-Third answers, and asks the first, who answers.
-
-Then, questions and answers having gone all around, first says aloud,
-“My left-hand neighbor asked, and my right-hand neighbor answered.”
-
-First Player: What is the brightest idea this season?
-
-Second Player: Your eye, dear (idea).
-
-How many blackbirds were baked in the pie?
-
-Third Player: Four-and-twenty. What was the name of Goliath of Gath’s
-grandmother’s straw bonnet maker?
-
-First Player: Nobody knows.
-
-When all have played.
-
-First Player, aloud: The question asked me was, “What was the name of
-Goliath of Gath’s grandmother’s straw bonnet maker?” the answer was,
-“Your eye, dear (idea).”
-
-Second Player: The question asked me was, “What is the brightest idea
-this season?” The answer was, “Four-and-twenty!”
-
-Third Player: The question asked was, “How many blackbirds were baked
-in the pie?” The answer was, “Nobody knows.”
-
-The one whose question has been most appropriately answered aloud,
-must be entertained by the others, as he desires—by dancing, playing a
-favorite game, by music, recitations or any other suggested amusement.
-
-
-JUDGE AND JURY.
-
-Draw lots for a Judge and five Jurymen. Pass six numbered paper slips
-in a fancy bag. Whoever draws number one is Judge, and the others the
-Jury. All the other players take the name of a celebrated musician or
-composer, as Beethoven, De Pachmann, or Schubert, etc.
-
-The Judge now takes a seat at one end of the room. The Jurymen sit at
-one side in a row, and the rest of the people sit at a distance. The
-Judge calls one of the other players up to the bar and proceeds to
-question him or her. The _prisoner_ is bound to answer any question the
-Judge may see fit to ask, and the business of the Jury is to decide the
-name of the musician the prisoner has assumed.
-
-Ten questions are all that may be asked. At the end of those the
-prisoner seats himself and awaits the Jury’s verdict. If the first
-decision of the Jury is incorrect, the prisoner is released. But if
-correct, the prisoner takes the place of one of the Jurymen, who must
-draw to determine which one is relieved. The ex-Juryman then takes his
-place among the waiting prisoners and assumes a character.
-
-After three trials the Judge must be a Juryman, and one of them must
-take his place. This, too, is decided by lot.
-
-By so doing all are on duty all the time, and the end of the game is
-when the players are tired.
-
-
-THE CARD INTRODUCTION.
-
-When young people are not very well acquainted, play this game, and by
-the time that it is finished every one will think he must have known
-everybody else for the last seven years.
-
-Place chairs so as to form a ring, and ask your friends to be seated.
-Then have a pack of say, authors’ cards in your hand, state that every
-one must say what you say, and give what you give to his left-hand
-neighbor. Then lifting up the top card in the pack, you say to your
-guest at your left, “Here’s my card, Longfellow.” The one who receives
-it instantly turns to the party at his left and, giving the card,
-repeats the same words, “Here’s my card, Longfellow.” The next card
-follows at once in the same manner, repeating whatever its portrait,
-may be, and so card follows card without a second’s delay, and the
-laughter and fun that is made causes even the dullest person in the
-room to wake up and be hale fellow for the next entertainment. Should
-any card drop, let it go. There will not be enough time to pick it up
-until the game is ended.
-
-
-HARMONY SOLOISTS.
-
-One of the young men must represent the Lord of Misrule, and in
-fantastic attire he goes from one to the other of the guests and asks
-each to draw one slip of paper from the basket which he carries.
-
-On each slip are written four lines of any popular or well-known song.
-Each slip contains a different song.
-
-As soon as the papers are drawn five of the people stand up in a line,
-and with the Lord of Misrule as director they each sing separately
-their particular four lines to the correct tune. When each of the five
-have sung, all sing together as chorus, each carefully keeping his own
-words and music.
-
-Then another five, and then another, until all have sung. Then for
-a grand finale, all the guests stand as chorus and in duets, trios,
-quartettes sing the one stanza through, all joining in the refrain each
-time.
-
-The harmony will be remarkable.
-
-
-JIG-I-TY JIG.
-
-Chairs are placed to form a circle, and all the players excepting two
-occupy the chairs.
-
-One of the two players must play a polka or waltz. The other one stands
-outside of the circle.
-
-The one standing outside dances as soon as the music starts, and
-continues dancing as long as she pleases, but all of a sudden she stops
-a second before a chair, and then dances up to the chair. Whoever
-occupies it instantly rises and dances back to her, and after a while
-the first dancer waves a backward movement of the hand toward her
-friend, thus indicating she is not wanted to continue dancing. But she
-must walk or waltz back to her chair and then sit down.
-
-The first dancer continues dancing, however, and goes to another
-party in precisely the same way as she did to the first, and when she
-concludes she has the right one, she dances to that party’s seat and
-takes it.
-
-The individual then on the floor continues dancing, as did the first
-one. When she sits down a third party dances, and so on until all have
-danced.
-
-If any of the company do not dance, they should make a feint of doing
-so. If the individual is full of fun, much amusement is created.
-
-
-CIRCLE GAME.
-
-Make a target of brown wrapping-paper, and put the number 100 on the
-bull’s eye. Outside of this mark five rings, making the largest one
-two feet in diameter, the others proportionately smaller. Inside of
-these rings put the numbers 10, 20, 30, 40, 50, the centre as stated
-being 100. Mark out a space on the ground for a base five feet away;
-place the target on the ground, blindfold a player, lead him to the
-base, and turn him around twice, and leave him facing the target. He
-is now entitled to roll three marbles, and then remove the blindfold.
-His count will be the added numbers in the rings at which his marbles
-have stopped. Should any of them stop on a line, he is entitled to the
-largest number adjoining. No marbles must be moved, and each boy has
-the privilege of trying the ground once with each marble, before being
-blindfolded.
-
-
-THE HUNT FOR THE KEYHOLE.
-
-A tall boy should put on the skirt of a lady’s dress. This skirt should
-just escape the floor. In his hands he should carry a broom, with the
-broom end held directly above him, and the broom handle held close in
-front of him.
-
-A ball to simulate a person’s head should be secured by strong twine to
-the broom. This ball should have a false face securely fastened to the
-front of it, while, as a cover for the rest of the ball there should
-be a lady’s bonnet. This bonnet cannot be too grotesquely trimmed.
-Long plumes, brilliant flowers, natural or artificial, sunflowers,
-hollyhocks, cucumber blossoms, etc., would be correct decoration. The
-bonnet should be tied underneath the false face, being careful to have
-the bow ends voluminous and the streamers long. The ribbon should be
-vivid scarlet, or bright orange color.
-
-Just below the bonnet and around the broom fasten a cloak, the bottom
-of which should reach beyond the boys waist; in this way the boy and
-the broom are entirely concealed.
-
-The company should be asked to take seats at the rear end of the room,
-then announce that they are to be entertained by the pantomime entitled
-“The Hunt for the Keyhole.”
-
-Then the door should be opened, and at once a tall, odd-looking
-individual enters. His appearance creates roars of laughter, as also
-his ridiculous actions when having bowed to the audience he turns
-to the door through which he has come and commences his search. The
-effect is ridiculous, as the head is bobbed around in every direction
-whichever way the boy chooses to turn, as also whichever way he chooses
-to move the broom. When enough amusement has been gotten, the boy again
-bows and comically waltzes out of the room.
-
-The boy will need an assistant to dress, and this game should be
-privately practised before showing it to an audience.
-
-
-ACTING PROVERBS
-
-This is played by one of the party leaving the room, and on his return
-acting in such a manner as to indicate to the others a well-known
-proverb. Example, “A rolling stone gathers no moss,” may be indicated
-by the one having left the room returning with a round stone in his
-hand and rolling it on the floor.
-
-
-GOSSIP.
-
-This title suggests an amusing _tableau vivant_ for an evening at home.
-
-Two girls should withdraw and put over their pretty dresses
-queer-looking old shawls, and cover their curls with odd-looking
-bonnets tied under the chin.
-
-They should sit very close together, and with cups of tea in their
-hands gaze intently at each other, busily stirring the while. They must
-nod their heads as though one were telling a bit of scandal.
-
-Suddenly one exclaims in a high-pitched voice, “You don’t say so!”
-whereupon the hostess should inquire, “Who can tell what these girls
-represent?”
-
-A number of the company will naturally reply, “Gossip.”
-
-
-THE FLORIST.
-
-Whoever assumes this character should explain that he has flowers
-for sale, and that he will try and sell all that he has by putting
-questions to the persons whom he thinks will buy, and that whoever in
-answering his questions uses the words _flowers_, _yes_, or _no_ would
-have to pay a forfeit, and that he will try all that he can to get them
-to use one of the prohibited words.
-
-Then the Florist should turn to one of the players and ask, “Can I sell
-you any fresh flowers to-day?”
-
-“I am fully supplied, thank you.” And addressing another, “Do buy my
-sweet violets.”
-
-“Not to-day, sir.”
-
-“How about carnations?”
-
-“I don’t wish flowers of any kind.”
-
-And in that way a forfeit is incurred.
-
-The questions should be rapidly asked, and as rapidly answered, or the
-players will not get caught.
-
-
-MY LADY’S RECEPTION APPAREL.
-
-One of the players should act the part of lady’s maid. Each of the
-players should take the name of something which a lady would wear to
-a reception, as an article of clothing or jewelry. Or a player may
-take the name of an article a lady would use in getting ready for a
-reception, as a comb and brush.
-
-The lady’s maid should stand at one end of the room, and looking
-towards the players announce, “My lady is going to a reception
-to-night, and wishes a handkerchief,” or whatever article she may
-choose to select. The one named instantly rises, and steps two feet
-forward, makes a low bow, then suddenly starting up twists about, and
-turning to her right-hand neighbor says, “Change chairs.”
-
-No sooner said than done. Everybody on the instant rushes for a chair,
-including the lady’s maid, and the one that is left without a chair
-becomes the next lady’s maid.
-
-This person may continue the game, as did the previous maid, or she may
-say, “My lady is going to a reception to-night and wants her salts.”
-
-The moment salts are desired some of the players must sneeze as if the
-salts were too strong, others should appear to faint, and others wave
-their hands forward and back as if fanning.
-
-Any second that the lady’s maid may choose she may exclaim, “Change
-chairs!” and again there is another scramble, with one person left
-without, and there is therefore a new lady’s maid.
-
-This maid may try yet another way, which will result in getting almost
-all of the players on their feet before they can change chairs. She
-asks the players to re-name themselves, and for nearly all of them to
-select articles of apparel.
-
-Then the maid says, for instance, “My lady desires her white ivory fan.”
-
-The person so named should rise, go two feet forward and, having bowed
-very low, should stand just where she is until the signal for change
-chairs is given.
-
-The maid might then say, “My lady desires her white satin gown.” The
-person named white satin gown rises, and repeats the action of the one
-going before. And thus the maid continues to call, until having all the
-requisite articles of apparel. But when she exclaims, “My lady wishes
-her white kid shoes!” all rush for a seat.
-
-Whoever is left without a chair after this method of playing must
-rapidly tell the bootblack story.
-
-“As I was going down the street I saw two bootblacks. One was a black
-bootblack and the other a white bootblack, and both had black boots,
-as well as blacking and blacking brushes. The black bootblack asked
-the white bootblack to black his, the black bootblack’s black boot
-with blacking. The white bootblack consented to black the black boots
-of the black bootblack with blacking, but when he, the white bootblack
-had blacked one black boot of the black bootblack with blacking, he
-the white bootblack refused to black his, the black bootblack’s, other
-black boot with blacking unless he, the black bootblack, paid him, the
-white bootblack, the same as what he, the white bootblack, got for
-blacking other people’s black boots; whereupon, the black bootblack
-grew still blacker in the face, and called the white bootblack a
-blackguard, at the same time hitting the white bootblack with the black
-boot that he, the white bootblack, had already blacked with blacking.”
-
-Should any one not leave his chair he must pay a forfeit.
-
-Should the maid ask for an article that has not been taken for a name,
-she must pay a forfeit.
-
-
-THIMBLE GAME.
-
-In order to be enjoyable this game requires several players, and it
-is better that they should be both boys and girls, as it then has the
-added element of a match between the boys and girls.
-
-Put a silver or gold thimble in full view, in any convenient room,
-into which your friends have not yet entered. It makes the game more
-difficult if this room is well filled with _bric-à-brac_, hangings,
-pictures, plants, etc., for the reason that the eye is confused with so
-much ornament and therefore cannot so easily detect such a small thing
-as a thimble.
-
-State clearly the following directions before your friends enter.
-No one can touch anything. Each player must stand until he sees the
-thimble. Every one may walk about as much as he pleases, but talking
-is prohibited. Having seen the thimble, immediately sit down. It is
-a point of honor that no player will give information. When all are
-seated the game is finished.
-
-Of course the girls want to get ahead of the boys, and the boys ahead
-of the girls, in locating the thimble. Therefore if a boy sits down
-first, the girls are sorry; and if a boy sits down last, the boys are
-sorry.
-
-The one who first sits down is the one to receive honor, and he has the
-privilege of selecting the next game as well as deciding on the forfeit
-to be given by the boy or girl who has been the last to sit down.
-Sometimes the hostess gives the thimble to the one winning the game.
-
-Players must be very cautious, or their eyes will tell what their
-tongues would not; therefore, having seen the thimble, at once glance
-in another direction, and you will thus mystify where you would
-otherwise assist.
-
-
-THE TOUCH GAME.
-
-This requires an assistant to whom the secret of the game is intrusted.
-The assistant leaves the room, the other party remains with the
-company, and states that during the assistant’s absence she will put
-her hand on some object, person, or thing, and when the assistant
-returns he will tell what has been touched.
-
-The assistant now being out, the piano stool is touched. On the
-assistant’s return he is asked, “What did I touch?” at once he replies,
-“The piano stool.”
-
-Of course this causes great surprise and the assistant is asked to go
-out again, the company expecting, perhaps, to be able to guess this
-time. For a change a girl is touched, and on the assistant’s return he
-is asked, “Whom did I touch?” and he promptly says, “Bessie Brown,” or
-whatever the girl’s name.
-
-Then the players think there must be some look or gesture given to aid
-the assistant when he re-enters, and so they are given the privilege of
-blindfolding him before his return, but all in vain, the assistant is
-as correct as before and no one is able to guess.
-
-Then the company beg: “Do tell us the secret.” So when all give up they
-are told that just before the assistant leaves the room, the other
-player secretly touches some person or thing, or perhaps indicates what
-the object is with his foot or perhaps sits on it, if it be a chair or
-stool. Occasionally, to further mystify, it would be well to simply
-fold one’s arms. This would signify to the confederate, “I am touching
-myself.” Therefore the assistant, whether blindfolded or not, can
-answer correctly, because he has received his clue before he went out.
-
-Of course, this game requires an intelligent assistant; indeed, both
-players must be very careful, as so many eyes are on the constant
-lookout.
-
-This will be found a satisfactory game for a rainy afternoon in a
-summer hotel, when the grown people are taking naps and there seems
-absolutely nothing left for young people to do, and they are tired
-watching the weather, and saying, “If it would _only_ clear!”
-
-
-THE CONCERT.
-
-Select a conductor. All others sit before him in a semicircle, and each
-is given an imaginary musical instrument.
-
-The conductor next directs them to tune their instruments, after which,
-taking a cane he waves it, as if it were a baton. He also whistles or
-hums a gay, familiar air. In this all join, imitating by voice and
-gesture the instruments they are supposed to be playing on, such as the
-flute, the harp, the hand-organ, the cymbals, violin, cornet, etc.
-
-Suddenly he waves his baton and the music ceases.
-
-The conductor then calls for solos. All the musicians give close
-attention, and the conductor makes believe he is playing, thus
-indicating which instrument he wishes to hear.
-
-The player having that instrument must at once obey, imitating both
-sound and gestures. Should he fail, he must pay a forfeit.
-
-
-A CURIOUS CAT.
-
-This is a trick to be played only where the people know each other very
-well.
-
-A tall screen is required, a cat, a saucer of milk, a table and a
-showman.
-
-The showman is the most important, for on his ready wit and tactful
-manner the success of the trick depends.
-
-He stands by the screen and says to the audience,
-
- Come behind this screen and you will see
- A cat with her head where her tail ought to be.
-
-One by one, the guests may go, and each must observe a discreet
-silence, so that the rest may not guess what the trick is.
-
-As each goes behind the screen, a table is seen on which is a cat with
-her tail towards a saucer of milk, where, were it not for the showman’s
-efforts, her head would naturally be. This foolish trick will always
-cause a hearty laugh.
-
-
-A BOAT RACE.
-
-Girls who do not care to row should act as umpires. A grand stand may
-be a massive rock ornamented with a tangle of vines and for a canopy a
-wide-branched tree.
-
-There should be three races, one between the girls, another between
-the boys, and a third between the girls and boys together. Two large
-willows or other trees, conspicuously overhanging the water, and
-therefore impossible to mistake, should be selected as the points to
-start and end the race, the prow of the boat should be even with the
-centre of the tree trunk at starting, and the stern of the boat should
-be even with the centre of the tree trunk on closing. Only one person
-should be in the boat at a time, and no person can have a second chance.
-
-As the water is frequently too narrow for all boats to be out at once,
-it is wiser to try two boats at a time, and then two more should row
-and so on. After the race is over the victors must row again, two and
-two, as at the first, and so determine the winners. When the winning
-girl and the winning boy are known, they should race together, and thus
-the champion rower will be discovered. Whoever is champion should be
-rewarded with a wreath of laurel, after the fashion of the great Roman
-victors; if laurel cannot be found, use oak leaves and tell the hero
-they are meant for laurel. The wreath must be made and at the grand
-stand before the race opens. The coronation should take place at the
-stand.
-
-While gathering the leaves for the crown it would prove a pleasure to
-gather quantities of wild flowers, with which to decorate the boats. A
-simple and pretty trimming would be to carpet the boat with moss and
-edge it around with fern leaves. Another way would be to canopy a boat
-with apple blossoms; the branches are easily held in place between the
-narrow strip of wood that forms the border, and the boat itself. But a
-canopy retards motion, and the rowers must consider speed before they
-decide on decoration.
-
-
-THREE LITTLE MAIDS FROM SCHOOL.
-
-Three tall boys should dress as prima donnas, carry bouquets, and sing
-the popular song, “Three Little Maids from School are we.”
-
-After this they should appear as giants and perform a variety of tricks.
-
-For example: Hold an umbrella over their heads, which is covered with
-a long cloak. To the top of the umbrella-stick fasten a ball the size
-of a person’s head, on to this ball put a round hat, and a veil so as
-to conceal the face. Thus the boys will be of gigantic size, and their
-very appearance will provoke laughter.
-
-After bowing to their friends, they should dance a few reel figures,
-then walk about the room and examine the chandeliers, tops of the
-pictures or frescoing. Then play “Puss in the corner.” When they repeat
-“Puss, Puss, Puss,” they should use unnatural tones.
-
-It is very funny, and those who are not “little maids” will have almost
-as much sport as if they were.
-
-
-THE WAR OF THE ROSES.
-
-This is a pretty, interesting and instructive game, as those engaged in
-it and not familiar with the period of history to which it refers may
-be led to study it, and the knowledge received through playing may thus
-prove beneficial.
-
-It is particularly suited to out-of-door amusement, though it may be
-played indoors by making a field of battle. This could be done by
-putting a rug in the centre of a room, and stating, that rug represents
-the battlefield of Saint Albans, or the battle-field of Towton, or you
-may have both battles, should you so prefer.
-
-When played out of doors, mark out a piece of lawn in the same way that
-a tennis court is marked. Or, should there be no lawn, mark an oblong
-on the ground by means of a sharp-pointed stick.
-
-The battle-field should be five feet one way, and three the other.
-
-Choose two of the largest boys for leaders; one of them will personate
-Richard the Duke of York, the other the nearest relative of the house
-of Lancaster, who was the Duke of Somerset.
-
-Then in turn, commencing with the Duke of York, the boys will call
-their soldiers, which may be (as this is a game) girls as well as boys.
-As each one’s name is called, he stands in line on the side of his
-leader. When all are chosen, the Duke of York gives his soldiers, as
-also himself, the symbol of the Yorkists, which was a white rose, and
-in like manner the Lancastrians receive their symbol, which was a red
-one.
-
-Commencing at the foot of the line, the Duke of York will blindfold his
-soldier, and lead him around for one minute, thus confusing him as to
-location; but when he stops leading him, he must be six feet from the
-battlefield, and his face so turned as to make it possible to reach it.
-Then the leader calls one, two, three, and at once the soldier throws
-his rose. The blindfold is then removed, and he will see how near the
-field his charge has reached.
-
-It is now the turn of the house of Lancaster, and the Duke of Somerset
-will blindfold the soldier at the end of his line, and thus the game
-proceeds as before. When every one has played, the roses on the
-battlefield are counted. Whichever side has on the most roses has won.
-Then all the roses are picked up and presented to the victors by the
-losing side. Each one of the winners then adorns himself with a red and
-white rose.
-
-No rose can be counted on the battlefield, unless every part of it is
-on, including the stem and foliage.
-
-There must be an even number of players.
-
-
-UNBAR.
-
-Every player excepting the boy known as Bear, must twist and knot his
-handkerchief. The Bear selects a tree as a starting point, and states
-his object will be to tag the others. Whoever is tagged becomes a Bear,
-and must return to the tree, pursued and beaten all the way back with
-the knotted handkerchiefs. The two Bears then join hands, and, starting
-out, try to tag every one that is possible, and this action is repeated
-until all the players are Bears. Whenever the chain of Bears is broken,
-as it sometimes is by an attack from the rear, the Bears again return
-to the tree.
-
-
-BIRD TEST.
-
-Give each player a slip of paper on which he must write the birds’
-names. Also the number of times the word bird and birds’ names occur.
-
-The correct number to find is seventy-six.
-
-Time allowed is six minutes.
-
-The slip should be headed Bird Test.
-
-One day while walking along a grassy lane conspicuously edged with
-blackberry bushes, my attention was riveted by the song of a bird, a
-sort of up and down warble, and in the branches of a maple tree near,
-I saw a red-eyed viero, and not far off, quietly looking towards the
-singer, was such a pretty warbler, another greenlet, the white-eyed
-viero.
-
-Listening to the red-eye, the viero’s warble grew less and less
-distinct as the distance lengthened between us. The warbler warbled
-the same sweet song, but my ear was less able to catch the warbling
-warbler’s notes, and soon the greenlet, the viero, the musical,
-silver-tongued warbler, warbled for me all in vain.
-
-But as I walked I thought how rarely that we meet people who are
-indifferent to birds, and how desolate our lanes, woods and gardens
-would be without them. And how much beauty is added to bushes, flowers,
-and trees, if a singing bird rests on them long enough for us to
-listen to his song. And then I named over some favorite birds. The
-meadow lark, blue jay, Carolina wren, wood thrush, robin, swallow.
-But suddenly I heard “Me-au, me-au,” as if a cat was near. I stood
-just where I was, to discover the creature. My thought of birds gave a
-thought of protection. A moment later and I laughed aloud, for flying
-over my head was the jolly song-bird, called cat-bird, who has a bad
-habit of mewing. But the sunshine seemed pleasant company for him; for
-watching the cat-bird’s movements I saw him alight on a tree close by,
-and with a hop and a skip go from limb to limb.
-
-Whip-poor-will, whip-poor-will, and again on the alert, my eyes were
-almost strained, this time in effort to follow the sad cry, looking
-everywhere for whip-poor-will. When what a pleasant surprise, to learn
-that whip-poor-will was none other than the brilliantly colored mocking
-bird, whose fancy had dictated the whip-poor-will’s melancholy notes
-and now whizzed close to me, to nestle on the blackberry blossoms a few
-steps beyond.
-
-Then walking on I thought of the many birds about us, the brown
-thrasher, and white-throated sparrow, the tree sparrow, the bank and
-barn swallows, and the sociable sparrow, dear little chippy, and of
-what I had read about fly-catchers and veerys, and the crested titmouse
-who gleefully shouts in the wildest winds, “T’ sweet here! t’ sweet
-here!”
-
-My walk by this time was hurried into a run, and I caught my foot into
-some poor bird’s nest that was hidden in the long grass, and I almost
-fell, but being glad I had not tripped over a rut-runner, I thought of
-the quotation, “Runs like the kill-deer up the rut,” and a warbler near
-sang so cheerily that I forgot my accident and soon reached the creek
-towards which I was hastening. When who should come first to greet me
-but a yellow-billed cuckoo. And thus my mind dwelt on other birds that
-liked creeks and lakes, such as the kingfisher, and on the instant I
-heard the report of a gun, and sure enough one of these birds had just
-been shot. I knew this because of the excitement of a group of gunners.
-
-Poor bird! How many birds’ lives end in a similar way. The cardinal
-grosbeak and the myrtle bird, a greenlet in color, we fancy myrtle
-suggests greenlet, the snow-buntings, horned larks, golden-crowned
-kinglet and vesper sparrows, the red-polls and crossbills, the plovers,
-the golden herons, night-herons, sandpipers, coots, hawks, geese, and
-swans,—all are marks for the hunter.
-
-And then I thought, Oh, if I could fly over this clapper-rail ahead of
-me! It is so very stupid to keep my feet on the earth. How jolly to
-flap my wings to the Lapland long-spur. I would visit the raven and all
-the rest of the feathered family on the way.
-
-But my walk had ended and such a pretty warbler warmly welcomed me
-home,—my golden-hued, night-singing canary.
-
-PARLOR FORTUNE-TELLING.
-
-This amusement is sure to interest, and may be played by any number of
-people, the more the merrier.
-
-Those to have their fortune told should have a slip of paper and a
-pencil. The one telling the fortune dictates from the book what to
-write. After all the answers are written, the fortune-teller reads the
-questions, and the players in turn read the answers aloud, according to
-what they have written. Suppose the following fortune:
-
-1. Have you a favorite? Yes.
-
-2. What is her name? A girl’s name.
-
-3. What color is her hair? A color.
-
-4. What color are her eyes? A color.
-
-5. Does she wear spectacles? Yes or no.
-
-6. How old is she? A number.
-
-7. How tall is she? A number of feet.
-
-8. Is she pretty? Yes or no.
-
-9. How many teeth has she? A number.
-
-10. How much money has she? An amount of dollars.
-
-11. What shape is her mouth? A shape.
-
-12. What shape is her nose? A shape.
-
-13. How large is her hand? A number of inches.
-
-14. How large are her feet? A number of inches.
-
-15. Is she fond of music? Yes or no.
-
-16. What is her favorite book? The name of a book. 17. Does she dance?
-Yes or no.
-
-18. Can she sing? Yes or no.
-
-19. Does she recite? Yes or no.
-
-20. What can she cook best? Mention an article of diet.
-
-21. Does she use a chafing dish? Yes or no.
-
-22. Can she make her own hats? Yes or no.
-
-23. What is her greatest virtue? A virtue.
-
-24. What is her greatest fault? A fault.
-
-25. Where does she live? A city.
-
-26. In a handsome house? Yes or no.
-
-27. Does she ride a bicycle? Yes or no.
-
-28. Are you glad you are acquainted with her? Yes or no.
-
-29. Does she like you? Yes or no.
-
-30. Will her father give her a marriage dowry? Yes or no.
-
-31. How many dollars? An amount of money.
-
-32. Where will you be married? A place.
-
-33. Will you be a model husband? Yes or no.
-
-34. How many dollars a year will you give her for housekeeping
-purposes? An amount of money.
-
-35. Where will you live? A city.
-
-36. Will you entertain much? Yes or no.
-
-37. Will you travel? Yes or no.
-
-38. What city will you first visit? A city.
-
-39. How long will you remain there? A period of time.
-
-40. When will you return home? A period of time.
-
-41. Will your home be happy? Yes or no.
-
-42. Would you be sorry if you were never married? Yes or no.
-
-43. Next to yourself, whom do you like best? A girl’s name.
-
-44. Will your wife be jealous? Yes or no.
-
-45. Will your wife lecture? Yes or no.
-
-46. What is she doing now? Describe a motion.
-
-47. What would you like her to do? Describe a motion.
-
-48. What is your highest ambition? A state of being.
-
-49. Will your life be crowned with success? Yes or no.
-
-
-“IT.”
-
-Many of the games with which we are familiar in the United States are
-well known throughout Great Britain and on the Continent. But among the
-most amusing and most popular of English games is one of which we know
-little or nothing. It is dignified by the two-lettered name, “It.”
-
-This is altogether suitable for the parlor, and may be played by
-everybody if we will except the very young people. It creates roars
-of laughter, on account of the funny mistakes made by the questioners.
-“It” is a great mystery, and the longer it is played the greater
-mystery often it becomes. Only those understanding this game may remain
-in the room. All others must leave; there is no alternative. One of the
-party, unfamiliar with the game, is then selected to return, and must,
-by questioning those in the parlor, learn what “it” is. When he knows
-“it,” he too must remain behind, and some one else is selected to fill
-his place. In this way the game is carried on, until each one in turn
-comes in and finds out the secret.
-
-“It” is really the person who sits at your left, but, before this is
-discovered, usually much amusement is made. The game is played in the
-following way:
-
-All in the parlor must sit in a circle, and must not change their
-positions. When the player is called in, he is told to ask a question
-of whomsoever he may please, and the person must correctly answer. For
-example—“Is ‘it’ white?” As everybody present is white, the answer is
-necessarily “Yes.”
-
-The questioner then asks another person. “Is ‘it’ thin?” and if the
-person thus questioned is thin, the answer is again, “Yes.” Perhaps
-this question may be repeated, and some one else is asked, “Do you also
-think ‘it’ is thin?” and if this person has someone for a left-hand
-neighbor who is very stout, of course he answers, “No.”
-
-And thus the questioner is mystified, and must continue question after
-question. For a long time he may think “it” is a thing. Therefore a
-good question to put would be, “Is ‘it’ alive?” And then he might ask,
-“Is ‘it’ in this room?” Then he might try complexion, and again would
-be mystified, for if he asked, “Is ‘it’ a brunette?” and the reply
-being “Yes,” his next question, “Has ‘it’ dark eyes?” would perhaps
-have for answer, “No,” and, “Has ‘it’ light hair?” “Yes.” And so the
-secret seems harder than ever.
-
-A good way is to ask the same questions over and over, and try to
-locate “it” in that way. But the questioner should not easily be
-discouraged. A few points may be given to him, such as some of the
-above. The players would better announce “It” as a trick game.
-
-
-THE CENT HUNT.
-
-Say that a cent is wrapped in tissue-paper and is within sight. The
-discoverer quietly tells you, and if he is correct, reward him.
-
-Afterwards give a cent, pencil and paper to everybody, and state five
-minutes are allowed to write what each side of the cent will tell.
-This game is called, A Penny for your Thoughts.
-
-“Find on one side: A beverage—T. A messenger—one c(s)ent. A piece of
-armor—shield. A symbol of victory—wreath. A weapon—arrow. A mode of
-punishment—stripes. A gallant—bow. A sheet of water—C.
-
-“Find on the other side: A portion of a hill—brow. A place of
-worship—temple. An animal—hare. Youth and old age—18—96. One way of
-expressing marriage—U. S. A cultivated flower—tulip. An emblem of
-royalty—crown. Fruit—date.”
-
-
-A FAGOT PARTY.
-
-This is a very entertaining amusement and suitable for all ages.
-
-As the word fagot means a bundle of twigs, it suggests an open fire.
-Therefore home and hearth are indispensable environment.
-
-There should be just as many twigs as there are girls and boys. The
-idea being that each should draw a twig from the bundle as his name is
-called. And they are called by the hostess according to the letters of
-the alphabet. Whosever name therefore commences with A, should draw
-the first twig. Having drawn the twig, A puts it on the open fire and
-at once commences to tell a story. As long as the twig lasts, A must
-continue to talk, but when it is burned he must stop, and as twigs
-are apt to burn very rapidly when toward the end, the story is not
-infrequently wound up in a jiffy. As soon as A has finished, the next
-name is called and that person does exactly as did the first one, only
-he must tell a different story. And so on until everybody has taken his
-turn.
-
-
-THE HUNTER.
-
-This very lively game is played by both boys and girls, and the more,
-of course, the merrier. The hunter must be a boy, and to decide which
-boy, it is best to count out. Use for counting the old rhyme,
-
- Ana, mana, mona, mike,
- Bassa, lona, bona, strike,
- Hare, ware, frown, stack,
- Halloka, balloka, wee, woe, why, whack.
-
-Whoever is fortunate enough to have the word “whack” counted to him is
-out, and then the rhyme must be repeated over and over, and finally the
-hunter is left. It now becomes his duty to name the rest of the company
-as his equipments as sportsman, and also as his game; for example,
-pointer, setter—two species of hunting dogs—and shot, belt, powder,
-gun, powder-flask, rifle, cartridge, rabbit, squirrel, partridge,
-kingfisher, etc., etc.
-
-Put two rows of chairs back to back. There should be one chair less
-than there are players. This done, each one of the company except the
-hunter takes a chair. The hunter, standing before the rest of the
-players, then sings, to the tune of “I Love a Sixpence,”
-
- I am a hunter, a jolly, jolly hunter;
- I love hunting as I love my life.
-
-This he may sing over as many times as he likes, but finally stops
-short in the middle or anywhere, and immediately calls out a name—for
-instance, “Shot.” The person bearing this name must at once rise, and
-hurrying towards the hunter, must take hold of the back of his coat or
-jacket. Then the hunter continues his song, and calls for each one,
-until all are behind him, each holding firmly to the one in front. When
-all are in place, the hunter starts running, all of the party following
-and holding tightly together. He may run around the chairs or wherever
-he pleases, provided he keeps in the room. For fully two minutes this
-must keep up, when suddenly he will call, “Bang!” and instantly sit on
-one of the chairs. Of course there is a great scramble for every one to
-do likewise, but as one chair is short, some one is necessarily left
-out, and this person now becomes the hunter.
-
-The game now continues as before, or it may be varied by the hunter
-having to find something hidden.
-
-Any object may be placed out of sight in the room, and when the hunter
-nears it, the company may aid him by the usual words, “warm, warmer,
-hot,” or “cool, very cold, freezing, zero, below zero,” etc. If he
-finds it within five minutes, he may choose another hunter, but if not
-he must pay a forfeit, to be determined by the rest of the players.
-
-Or the game may be played in a similar way by the use of nautical
-instead of hunting terms. Should this be preferred, the hunter becomes
-the captain, and instead of singing to his company he may blow a few
-blasts on a horn. He is supposed to be on shipboard, so he must have
-ship equipment, crew, officers, passengers, cargo. Again the players
-must be named, only this time call them lifeboat, rope, anchor, sailor,
-steward, captain’s boy, purser, first-mate, doctor, etc.
-
-
-FIVE.
-
-Select a boy and hand him a knotted handkerchief. He must throw the
-handkerchief at a player, and before he can count aloud five the
-person to whom it is thrown must mention a round thing, such as an
-apple, a globe. If that person fails, he must change places with the
-one who has caught him, and throw the handkerchief at another. As no
-repetitions are allowed it will soon be difficult to find an object
-that is round.
-
-
-BREAKFAST.
-
-Every player is seated. Turn to the person at your right and ask,
-“Will you come to breakfast?” To which the answer is “Yes.” When that
-question and answer have gone around the room, the first one must
-ask, “What would you like for breakfast?” Perhaps the reply would be,
-“Milk;” and he then puts the question to his right-hand neighbor, who
-perhaps would say “Oatmeal,” and so on, until no sensible answer can be
-made, for no repetitions can occur in this game also. As the different
-players fail to respond they must stand.
-
-
-ALPHABET.
-
-Give any letter of the alphabet—for example, S—to the company, also
-some paper and pencils. In five minutes’ time they should write the
-names of three celebrated men, and also three sensible sentences, one
-for each man’s name, as, Shakespeare was born in Stratford on the Avon.
-Forfeits are required for failures.
-
-
-NINETY-NINE.
-
-Cut an equi-triangle out of soft wood or cardboard. It should measure
-one foot each way, and be one-quarter of an inch or less in thickness.
-Besides the triangle you will require white celluloid chips, or the
-game may be played with large-sized white bone buttons.
-
-Lay the triangle on a smooth-surfaced table, play in turn, and each
-player should start at the place. All players must be close enough to
-the table to watch the game. The point of the game is to make a count
-of ninety-nine. Whoever first makes that number has won.
-
-The triangle must be placed far enough from the table’s edge to allow
-freedom of room all around it, and it should be kept firm.
-
-Put a chip or button with its upper edge even with the angle from which
-you start, and just close enough to make it possible for it to slide
-and not receive hindrance. The chip should touch the entire sliding
-length. When all is in correct position, rest the knuckle of the right
-thumb (unless you are left-handed, in that case your left thumb) on the
-table, and put the back of the nail of your second finger about half an
-inch down on the inside of the thumb’s fore-joint. Then push the finger
-suddenly outward, running its nail along the table, close to the
-thumb’s point, and finally raising the finger so that its tip is on the
-table at the exact moment that it has touched the chip. This should
-result in sending the chip the entire length of the angle’s side. To
-make a full count the chip must stop with its outer edge even with the
-next angle; the entire chip, with the exception of the edge, being
-below it. When this done, score three, and do the same thing with the
-next side, you then score three more; and again with the third side,
-making a count of nine in all. Having gone around three sides, stop
-until your turn is reached again. If however, the chip is not even with
-the angle, but has not gone _entirely_ beyond it, the player may count
-one, and may continue playing, the same as if making a full count. But
-should the chip slide entirely beyond the angle, he cannot count at
-all, but must withdraw until his turn comes again.
-
-He must not be discouraged, however, but remember that “He laughs best
-who laughs last.” Very often those who start successfully, become too
-self-conscious, and make a bad break towards the close of the game.
-
-Every time your turn comes, therefore be as careful as if just
-commencing. Even numbers are not counted, make one or three. To be
-entitled to three you must be perfect; short of perfection the count is
-one or nothing, as the above rules decree.
-
-
-THE DAILY PAPER.
-
-This game is suitable for either girls or boys, and furnishes amusement
-at almost any age. The interest will be increased or diminished,
-according to individual carefulness, for no one need be caught if they
-give close attention. Therefore, to be often caught indicates lack of
-interest, which is not complimentary to your leader, or stupidity,
-which is not complimentary to yourself.
-
-Every player assumes the character of a business man or woman, or they
-may have a profession. They may be manufacturers or tradespeople, it
-matters little what, provided there be no duplicates. Choose one for
-your leader who will assume no trade or profession, but will read the
-newspaper as will be explained.
-
-All should sit before the leader, so there can be no mistake about
-seeing each other.
-
-When every person has settled her and his part, the leader takes up
-any daily paper which is convenient and reads from it; but whenever
-the leader pauses, and looks at a player, whether the pause and look
-is intentional or accidental, the one looked at must at once make a
-suitable remark about his profession, business or trade. There must not
-be a second’s hesitation, and the more ridiculous such a remark may be,
-the more amusement is gotten out of the game.
-
-As soon as the player has concluded his observation, the leader
-continues reading, the same as if his theme had not been interrupted,
-and in a few seconds, pauses again, and looks at another player. Then
-this player makes his remark instantaneously about his trade, and thus
-the game goes on.
-
-In order to better understand, suppose the leader reads, “This is
-Bunker Hill Day. It is not a legal holiday, but by general consent the
-banks and stores laid aside,” (here he looks at the dressmaker).
-
-Dressmaker: “The big sleeves and wide skirts are not liked by
-everybody.”
-
-“The observance of the day by a—”
-
-Marine Artist: “Sale of my painting ‘Off the Rocks at Scarborough.’”
-
-“Is limited to Charlestown district, on one of whose hillslopes stood
-the Middlesex farmers, the hayseed still in their—”
-
-Butcher: “Marrow bones and spareribs.”
-
-“And in their hands the guns that had been gaining reputation in the
-shooting of—”
-
-Grocer: “Eggs twenty-five cents a dozen.”
-
-“And wild fowl. How they refused to budge before British regulars,
-until they had fired all their—”
-
-Confectioner: “Chocolate caramels packed in layers with waxed paper
-between.”
-
-“Away, and felt the pricks of the enemy’s polished—”
-
-Ironmonger: “Poker and tongs, shovels and spades.”
-
-“The world well knows Charlestown keeps up the remembrance of these—”
-
-Florist: “Water-lily pads, and moss-rose buds.”
-
-“At a lively rate.”
-
-And so on reads the newspaper, making the proper pauses and glances,
-until everybody has taken part and indeed over and over again taken
-part. Care should be used as to the selection read, as some paragraphs
-allow for much more amusement than do others.
-
-When any player fails to at once make a suitable remark he must pay a
-forfeit, which can only be redeemed by music or recitation.
-
-
-THE NEW DIXEY’S LAND.
-
-This is an out-of-door game, and may be played on the ground or on the
-grass, marking the court or lawn with the same material as if arranging
-a court for tennis.
-
-Form a circle with a diameter of twelve feet, divide the circle into
-quarters, each quarter representing a section of our country, east,
-west, north, south, and should be so marked. One letter would represent
-each word,—E, for east, W, for west, and so on. The oldest boy now
-becomes the owner of the entire territory, and is named Dixey. This
-boy must stand directly at the point where the lines unite, the middle
-of the circle, and as soon as he is in position, any player may run
-into any quarter of the ground. He must not stand on the line; should
-he do so, and be tagged on that line, he can no longer play.
-
-But having run into a quarter, he must loudly call, “Dixey, I’m on your
-North land, now it belongs to me.” Or, “Dixey, I’m on your South land,”
-etc. He must rightly name the section on which he stands.
-
-Dixey must tag him before he is through stating words above given.
-Should he fail to do so, the invading player must then run from the
-part he has claimed, all around the outside of the circle, and then to
-Dixey’s station, the centre. Dixey, of course, runs after him, trying
-to tag him before he completes the circuit. Neither may take short cuts
-by darting across lines, until the run around the circle is completed,
-and the invader strikes in toward Dixey’s middle ground. Whoever gets
-there first is now owner of all, and the original Dixey can only get
-back by earning the position, as the new Dixey has just done.
-
-The winner of the game is the one who has been Dixey the greatest
-number of times, or should no one be Dixey but once, whoever holds the
-position at the game’s close.
-
-Therefore the necessity of deciding how long you will play before the
-game commences.
-
-Any number that can stand on a quarter, may be there at the same time,
-as only one can be Dixey.
-
-Dixey cannot save himself by failing to leave his post. The first call
-he hears, he must obey, just as any other landowner would keep off an
-intruder.
-
-Every rule must be strictly obeyed. Should any one fail, he is no
-longer a player.
-
-The game is peculiarly adapted to boys, and each one must be careful
-neither to be rough nor rude. In the straining to get ahead, it will be
-such an easy thing to knock another boy down, or to prevent him from
-reaching the goal. First, remember to be honest; second, to be polite.
-
-
-BATTLE OF FLOWERS.
-
-Why should not boys and girls take the lead in the popular _fête_? All
-who own pony carts, phaetons, wagons of any sort, or who can borrow
-them, may enter the parade and battle, and why not interest your Sunday
-or day school in such an entertainment and secure a large float?
-
-The designs for floats are innumerable; among them might be mentioned
-Flora and the seasons, America, pagodas, chariots, Daughters of the
-American Revolution, the Floral Queen. The teachers should have the
-matter in charge, and one of them should act as chairman, and appoint
-committees to attend to all the necessary business. The scholars should
-willingly assist in the gathering of flowers, trimming, or whatever
-would be required.
-
-All the vehicles must be transformed into moving bowers, and this
-necessitates considerable work, but it is work that pays; besides, the
-real jolly boys and girls will only consider that they have had great
-fun.
-
-Decide on your decorations, and then gather flowers. You will need a
-great many to make much show. And wire will be found helpful in making
-the flowers stand upright, or giving the desired twist. Flowers may be
-tied upon cord, and when a long rope is made, it can be wound around,
-or fastened to the carriage, but it will take less time, and be less
-hurtful to the hands, if you cut a piece of wire netting the desired
-shape, and run the flower stems through the holes, or cut a piece
-of soft muslin the correct shape, and baste the flowers on. Flowers
-such as golden-rod, will need to have all the leaves stripped before
-commencing to decorate. Wreaths the exact size of the wheel hubs will
-look very handsome, particularly if the spokes are wound about with
-satin ribbon the same color as the flowers. If you cover the reins, sew
-two pieces of ribbon lengthwise, through which the reins will slip;
-put full bows of the same on the harness, and cover the collar with
-flowers. The same ribbon should also appear in the carriage decoration.
-
-A very pretty effect is gotten from white hydrangeas and yellow satin
-ribbons, or white hydrangeas tipped with pink and pink satin ribbons.
-Violet-colored flowers look well in such a parade, and a stylish cut
-carriage may be trimmed with ears and husks of corn, suspending the
-ears by the husks. The costume of those inside the carriage must be
-complementary to the decoration.
-
-The streets through which you pass should look festive and the
-spectators be dressed in holiday attire. A line of march must be
-arranged, and, on the counter-march, the battle begins. Then roses and
-flowers of all sorts are thrown from carriage to carriage, and from the
-carriages to the people on the street, and from those on the street to
-the carriages; indeed people throw them with both hands, so excited
-they become.
-
-Until it is time for the battle, have your baskets full of flowers
-to throw well hidden. And when the pelting begins have a sufficient
-supply, so that it will not be necessary to use any of the decorations.
-
-
-GRACE HOOPS.
-
-This game is usually played out of doors, but it may be played in large
-rooms or conservatories, provided you put out of accident’s way all
-the _bric-à-brac_, potted plants, and palms. Try the game also in an
-enclosed veranda or sun-parlor, should the time appointed prove stormy,
-or the grass be soggy from last night’s storm, or there be too high a
-wind.
-
-Grace hoops require a pole, not as tall as a maypole, but one smooth
-at the top. The one we lately saw had been a noticeable balsam tree,
-until cut off five feet from the ground. Its top was stocky, its side
-branches as healthful and green appearing as ever, notwithstanding the
-fact that they had been trimmed close enough to allow a small hoop to
-easily fall over them.
-
-The rings called grace hoops are made of light wood, not dissimilar to
-embroidery rings, excepting that they are nearly two feet in diameter.
-To make such a game very pretty, trim the hoops with wild flowers,
-wintergreen berries or leaves. All the girls should wear gay frocks and
-flower-dressed, broad-brimmed hats.
-
-If you are playing the game in the spring, suggest spring flowers
-and colors in your costume. A pretty effect would be gotten from a
-violet-colored cloth, trimmed with purple velvet, with a glint of gold
-revealed in the shoulder-bow ribbons and wide sash, the hat being a
-deep yellow straw flat, massed with single violets. Arbutus, wild
-roses, lilies of the valley, lilacs and cowslips, as, also, the new
-green, are all suggestive of spring, and catchy lawn toilets.
-
-Throw the grace hoops over the pole, and there let them hang until the
-score has counted. You may each throw in turn, as often as has been
-decided before the game opens. Each time the hoop hangs on the pole it
-counts one.
-
-Pretty silk badges may be lettered or gold-starred, to denote your
-score, or you may use plain cardboard, and mark such with a lead
-pencil. Between each round the score must be marked. After the last
-round is played distribute rewards, which may assume any character you
-please, but it is better to give wreaths of flowers, or crown the hero
-with laurel. The wreath might go to the highest girl scorer, and the
-laurel to the boy, or give each wreaths, or each bouquets.
-
-A simple grace-hoop game is played by two people. Stand facing each
-other, ten feet apart, and rapidly toss the hoop from one to the other,
-catching it on sticks. Try and see how often you can keep it from
-falling.
-
-
-AN AMATEUR CIRCUS.
-
-When so many young people are trained in athletic sports, calisthenics,
-delsarte exercises, etc., why not form an amateur circus company?
-Limit the number to twenty four, the girls and boys being equal or
-unequal in number, as seems best. Such a company might easily arrange
-an attractive entertainment, and invite their friends to an occasional
-matinée performance, or, should they feel inclined, they could give a
-performance as a charity benefit.
-
-Musicians, tricksters, clowns, animals and a ring would be required.
-
-The space for the ring would be the most difficult to obtain, but many
-people have large shady grounds connected with their homes that it
-would be a pleasure to lend to their young friends.
-
-Outline a ring as you would mark a court, and make it sufficiently
-large to comfortably give your exhibition. Do not attempt a tent.
-
-Place the seats for your audience six feet back of the ring, as this
-allows freedom for both performers and spectators. Keep an entrance to
-the ring free, so that performers do not disarrange the seats.
-
-As nearly as possible, copy the programme of the regular circus;
-therefore, the first display should be the grand tournament and
-triumphal _entrée_, when the entire company should march several times
-around the ring. Every one should look fantastic; some of the girls
-might go bareheaded, others wear wreaths of artificial flowers, and
-again others wear jaunty caps, etc. Remember that fancy-colored paper,
-muslin, gold paper, and spangles, will give showy effect. The clowns
-should be either very thin or very stout. The thin ones may be made
-stout by building themselves with cotton batting. A noticeable costume
-for the clowns might be white muslin, showered with gold and silver
-stars and spangles, or yellow muslin ornamented with silver or red full
-moons, circles or polka dots. And their head covering might be white
-beaver hats or fools’ caps.
-
-Throughout the procession, carry numerous flags and banners. An
-effective banner might be made of white canton flannel, showered with
-diamond dust; indeed make the _entrée_ as gay as flowers, color and
-spangles can produce.
-
-The entire company should be active members, some of them being the
-drum corps, others musicians; comic songs should be sung by the funny
-clown, assisted by a chorus.
-
-There should be walking and running matches, three-legged and sack
-races, jumping, fancy tumbling, sensational feats of all sorts. There
-could be a mimic football match, and a tennis tournament between those
-who had never held a racket; indeed anything could be introduced that
-would give genuine fun. The clowns should tell several jokes, and
-laughable stories, ride pigs, cows, and make themselves generally
-ridiculous.
-
-Perhaps some of the company could borrow trained dogs or other trained
-animals. If so, remember that tricks are always entertaining.
-
-
-THE STILL HUNT.
-
-Possibly some of the boys’ fathers have been still hunting, and if so
-they fully understand that it means deer hunting without hounds.
-
-The game still hunt differs from the real hunt in many ways, but
-possibly the most important one is in the fact that the deer in this
-case is only the form of a deer. It is better to play it out of doors,
-but if you have a large enough room it may be played anywhere.
-
-Whoever can draw best should be the individual to outline the deer, and
-it must be drawn on the ground. The best ground is gravel, though, as
-in the case of tennis, or other field games, the deer may be designed
-on the grass.
-
-The deer should be fully grown and have large antlers. After he is
-distinctly drawn he must be surrounded by a circle, the line of which
-measures four feet from the nearest point of the deer.
-
-When the game is played out of doors, a smooth round stone about
-the size of a walnut will be required; but when played inside use a
-fifty-cent piece, or an old-fashioned cent. And for the indoor drawing
-use chalk.
-
-The deer circle being now ready, the girls and boys become hunters,
-and state which part of the deer they want. Some will decide on the
-antlers, because they will make a useful ornament, and they will have
-them serve as a rack for a gun or umbrella. Others again want a hoof,
-because it will make such a fine hunting-knife or paper-cutter handle,
-and so each part of the deer is divided.
-
-When everybody has selected their part, the tallest hunter takes his
-stand, with his toes to the outer edge of the circle, and as far from
-the part he selected as is possible. He then throws the stone. If it
-rests on any part of the chosen place, he may count ten, but if the
-stone stops outside of the part, he is marked down five. He then picks
-up the stone, and hands it to the next player, who is the one next
-to himself in height. Then this hunter takes his stand at the place
-furthest from his selected part, and thus the game continues, until all
-have played in turn. Then the first hunter takes another chance, and so
-on again all follow. The one counting fifty first has won.
-
-It is necessary to keep an accurate score, as the fives marked against
-the hunters have to be deducted; indeed if great care is not used, a
-hunter will be in debt, instead of earning his game. Therefore, the
-best hunter is he who keeps _still_ and takes accurate aim. If he
-fails at the first throwing, notice where the fault lies,—it may be
-less force is required.
-
-It is better to have an umpire; therefore select one before the game
-begins, and remember to pleasantly abide by his decision.
-
-The stone must be altogether on, to be counted on, and in the case of
-the antlers the stone must touch some of the antler points.
-
-
-LAWN GOLF.
-
-This is played somewhat like croquet, only twenty-five wickets are
-used, instead of nine, and they are placed one after another, all
-around the ground. Beyond each wicket is a small hole, large enough for
-the ball to enter, and the game is to send the ball through the wicket
-and into the hole at one shot. When a player fails to do this, he may
-be allowed three shots to an inning.
-
-Before commencing the game, state the time it will be played.
-
-Decide who is to lead by shooting an arrow from a selected point.
-Whoever throws the farthest is to go first, the others follow,
-according to the distance made. In considering space, measure the
-distance between the starting place and the arrow’s sharp end.
-
-If you want a famous good time give a Lawn Golf Party.
-
-When you do so trim the handles of your golf sticks with gay-colored
-ribbons, and at the game’s close, give the champions paper-flower
-rewards.
-
-Exquisite flowers may nowadays be made out of paper, and the making of
-such afford only pleasure. Roses of all shades are fetching, so also
-are violets, and some varieties of lilies. Every one who lives in a
-large city will at once know where to get materials and instruction,
-and one girl can readily teach another. Those who live in the country
-or small villages, surely have some kind city friend who can select and
-send materials, and possibly written directions about the making.
-
-After presenting the rewards, have supper on the lawn, and afterwards
-other games are in order.
-
-
-
-
-GROWN-UPS.
-
-
-ALPHABETICAL GEOGRAPHY.
-
-Give every one in the room a number. And when you call for a number
-announce a letter of the alphabet. The person called must, before you
-count six, apply the letter to the name of a place and to two things he
-might see there.
-
-For example:
-
-No. 1. Y.
-
-I am going to York to see Youngsters and Yachts.
-
-No. 2. B.
-
-I am going to Baltimore to see Belles and Beaux.
-
-
-COMPOSITION.
-
-Arrange for it beforehand, and therefore have the requisite slips of
-paper, and nicely sharpened lead pencils ready for all, but if you
-are not ready there is a certain satisfaction in knowing that part of
-the amusement may be in the preparation. In the latter case, have a
-competition as to who will make the sharpest points on the pencils, or
-cut the papers the most accurately; when all is prepared, however, give
-slips of paper and lead pencils to your friends, and ask them to write
-the words you will name. State that they will have fifteen minutes in
-which to write a composition, and put into the same every word you
-have mentioned. No one can look over his neighbor’s paper, and each
-composition must be signed with the writer’s full name.
-
-When the time has expired, all the compositions are collected and read
-aloud, votes are taken as to which is the best, and the individual
-having received the highest number of votes is entitled to a prize.
-
-Example: Wreath, Mausoleum, suicide, farewell, another, conjointly,
-starred, huntsman’s song, early, queen, historical, many, dramas.
-
-Alfred, Lord Tennyson, was for _many_ years Poet Laureate. He wrote
-several poems, descriptive, _historical_, national and otherwise. He
-also wrote three notable _dramas_, one called Becket, known as Thomas
-à Becket, Chancellor of England, afterwards Archbishop of Canterbury,
-_another_ called _Queen_ Mary, the ill-_starred_ daughter of Henry the
-Eighth, and Harold, who was Earl of Wessex, afterwards King of England.
-
-_Early_ in life Tennyson wrote several poems, _conjointly_ with his
-brother Charles. Among these were the _Huntsman’s Song_, The Grave of a
-_Suicide_, The Fall of Jerusalem, and the Bard’s _Farewell_.
-
-Tennyson’s monument is in that great English _mausoleum_, Westminster
-Abbey. On the dark stone slab, the visitor may frequently see a
-_wreath_ of laurel, so placed in grateful memory.
-
-As this game would oftener than otherwise be played informally, the
-matter of prizes cannot be too simple. If you are in the birch-bark
-section, why not make a bookmark or a napkin ring out of the bark?
-Should you be at the seashore make a nest of shells. For example, find
-a large mussel shell, and next to it put one a size smaller, and so
-on fit in the others, graduating them evenly, the top one being very
-small. Or give a curious shell, which may be used as an ornament or
-receptacle.
-
-
-INITIAL PLATTER TWIRLING.
-
-This is very amusing, but the players must be on the alert or they will
-surely be caught.
-
-Before the game commences, every player must tell the initials of his
-and her name, and to aid memory, slips of paper may be given, on which
-each one may write his initials.
-
-When the sentence is called by the person twirling the platter, all
-the company must eagerly listen, or else the platter will fall to the
-floor before the one who should have run for it, recognizes he is the
-one called. If the platter is not caught by the proper person before it
-ceases to whirl, he or she must exchange places with the one who has
-whirled the platter. As the sentences are impromptu, they are apt to
-be absurd and ridiculous, but in any case they should be correct, or
-the one making the error must give a forfeit. Each sentence must have
-as many words as the initials of the one called, and each word must
-commence with the right letter. Example: Frank Fraser Phillips might
-be called French Fried Potatoes. Or Janet Belle Roberts might be June
-Brings Roses.
-
-This game should cause much merriment. It quickens thought and
-language, and it is suitable to all ages,—the boys and the girls, or
-their fathers and mothers.
-
-
-OVER, OVER, WHOSE HEAD IS IT OVER?
-
-This is a clever trick, and it requires two persons. The idea is for
-the confederate out of the room to correctly name the individual over
-whose head the other person is holding a wand.
-
-A person takes a cane, which he carelessly points toward some one;
-while so doing he is cleverly explaining what he is about to do, asking
-people to move, in order to further mystify, etc. The confederate
-notes where the cane is pointing, then goes from the room, and the one
-holding the wand puts it over several heads, saying “Over,” which the
-confederate echoes, until finally the question comes, when the wand is
-over the person before surreptitiously pointed out, “Whose head is it
-over?” The confederate’s answer is naturally correct.
-
-
-TEAKETTLE.
-
-This may be played by a number of people.
-
-A noun which has two or more meanings is selected. One may be thought
-of by any of the players, and in describing the same he should use
-the word “teakettle” instead of the proper name. All meanings of the
-word must be explained, but not too clearly at the first, else the
-“teakettle” will be at once guessed. When any of the listeners think
-they have discovered the word, instead of naming it, he should ask a
-question regarding the “teakettle” which would indicate to the one
-describing the same, whether the interrogator was correct. If correct,
-he too joins in the description, and throws light on the word. This
-should be continued until all the company show by their conversation
-that they know the noun selected. Not infrequently it is necessary to
-talk very plainly, or throw “electric light” on the teakettle before it
-is guessed.
-
-Example: The teakettle I have in my mind, has been from the creation
-of the world, and will continue until the world ends. It is also
-peculiar in being of the most service during the winter, and forms
-a distinguished position in the homes of all American households at
-Thanksgiving dinners. My teakettle is cultivated on the farm of many
-a plain countryman, but graces the table of many a fastidious city
-millionaire, and the longer it lasts, the shorter it grows. Already
-somebody is sure they know the word, and says, “Your teakettle may be
-squandered, may it not?” and another asks, “Wasn’t it Queen Elizabeth
-who would have given her crown for a diminutive teakettle?” And yet
-another asks, “Is it not savory, and of great assistance to the poultry
-cook?” And thus light is thrown, until the teakettle in question is
-known to be another name for _thyme_, and _time_.
-
-
-AUTHORS.
-
-This is a popular game for students young or old.
-
-Some one who understands should have charge.
-
-Give each person the same sized piece of writing paper and a lead
-pencil. On the piece of paper he must write a familiar quotation,
-and then pass it to his left-hand neighbor. The one who receives it
-must add the author’s name, and also his own. If he does not know the
-author, he must write underneath the quotation the word “Unknown,” and
-his own name.
-
-Five minutes are allowed in which to write a quotation, and three
-minutes to affix the name of the author, and the signature of the
-writer. The papers are then collected by the person in charge, who will
-then proceed to read aloud the quotations, authors, and signatures.
-
-All persons unable to write a quotation must pay a forfeit. All unable
-to transcribe the name of the author, must also pay a forfeit.
-
-Should there be a dispute regarding an author, the one in charge must
-decide.
-
-Example:
-
- Bottles and blisters, powders and pills,
- Catnip, boneset syrup and squills;
- Drugs and medicines, high and low,
- I throw them as far as I can throw
- WILL CARLETON
- GEORGE JONES.
-
-
-AUTHORS.
-
-No. 2.
-
-The hostess should form a ring with herself in the centre, and to make
-it more comfortable all should have chairs. Number each person, naming
-yourself last. Number one repeats a quotation, Number two tells the
-author, Number three gives another quotation, and Number four gives
-the author, and so on. The person in charge, who is the one in the
-centre of the ring, keeps the game under proper control and time. No
-longer than ten seconds should be allowed for each person to respond.
-Every wrong guess of an author demands a forfeit. Surely, every one can
-give a quotation.
-
-Example:
-
-No. 1, gives,
-
- Old Mother Hubbard
- Went to the cupboard.
-
-No. 2, Mother Goose.
-
-No. 3,
-
- Between the dark and the daylight,
- When the night is beginning to lower.
-
-No. 4, Longfellow.
-
-No. 5,
-
- Not a lord in all the country
- Is so great a lord as he.
-
-No. 6, Tennyson.
-
-
-GHOST.
-
-This is a spelling game. A person gives a letter, not necessarily
-having any particular word in mind, his next neighbor must think of a
-word beginning with this letter, and then say the second letter, the
-third person must think of a word using the two letters previously
-given, and add the third and so on, to the end of the word. A person is
-not a ghost until he is four times caught.
-
-The penalties are to be challenged rightfully, to challenge wrongfully,
-or to complete a word. The challenging consists in doubting a letter
-which a player has given. A player may say, “I challenge you,” when a
-person has added a letter, if he feels sure there is no word spelled
-in that order. If rightfully challenged, the speaker has one penalty
-against him as ghost. If, on the contrary, he gives the word which he
-had in his mind, as he is bound to do when challenged, the challenger
-is one-fourth of a ghost.
-
-Every word finished makes one-fourth of a ghost, but it is proper to
-add a letter and thus form a new syllable. If a syllable of a word is
-a complete word in itself, the one pronouncing the last letter has
-incurred the penalty. For example, take the word revelry. R-e-v-e have
-been given, and unless the fifth player can think of n, and change it
-to revenue, or some other word, he must say l, and thus the word ends.
-
-Whoever is ghost has to keep absolute silence throughout the game.
-
-
-CELEBRATED AUTHORS.
-
-One member of the company should leave the room, while those who remain
-determine what celebrated author he is to represent.
-
-On his return, he must in all respects be treated as that author
-would be were he the guest of the evening. He must be entertained by
-conversation and questions which would be of interest. Neither the
-conversation nor the questions may be misleading, but on the contrary
-helpful to the discovery of himself. He may be Shakespeare or Kirk
-Monroe, or if a girl she may be Lucy Larcom or Mary E. Wilkins.
-
-Suppose Shakespeare is the distinguished guest. Of course all polite
-people would rise to receive him, and the hostess would offer him the
-most comfortable chair; every one’s manner would indicate that they
-were in the presence of greatness.
-
-The conversation would naturally be of England and the changes that had
-come to her within the last three hundred years. That the town in which
-he was born had changed greatly; that the streets once so full of mud
-and refuse were now not only clean and tidy but almost uncomfortable
-with too great cleanliness and neatness. That the town owned a very
-pretty theatre, ornamented with statues of heroes and heroines. That a
-fine drinking fountain had lately been put there by a philanthropic
-visitor from Philadelphia, now dead. That the townspeople had been
-known to express their delight over the fact that he had been so
-obliging as to be born there.
-
-He might be asked how he liked Queen Elizabeth, and if it was true she
-was as fond of him as had been expressed, and if so why didn’t he write
-something In Memoriam of her?
-
-If the company discovers that the person who is personating Shakespeare
-is not able, after a few minutes of opportunity, to guess who he
-is, they should then throw on more light, by either asking him more
-prominent questions, or in connection with each other indicate more
-clearly. Ask some such question as, How far was the Mermaid Tavern from
-the home of John Milton? and, Did you meet Ben Jonson there? or did you
-call for each other and go and dine together?
-
-There is great difference of opinion as to the correct way to spell
-your name. In the register which marks your birth, we noticed in
-reading the surname, that the letter E was left out of the first
-syllable. Do you put it in the last syllable, or is it out of that
-also? Did the boys ever call you Bill? Isn’t Warwickshire beautiful?
-What do you think of the river Avon? In what year did Bacon write
-Hamlet?
-
-Of course, by this time, the celebrated Author would be guessed and
-some one else would leave the room, another Author be selected, and the
-game proceed as before.
-
-
-THE ARSENAL.
-
-The players must be seated in a circle, with the understanding that
-whoever smiles must pay a forfeit. No. 1 turns to his neighbor on the
-left and sings, while nodding his head,
-
- Are you going to the Arsenal, the Arsenal,
- And see the animals in Central Park?
-
-The person addressed replies in the same tune, nodding,
-
- Yes, I’m going to the Arsenal, the Arsenal,
- And see the animals in Central Park.
-
-Then both sing and nod,
-
- Two of us are going to the Arsenal, the Arsenal,
- And see the animals in Central Park,
-
-No. 2 then turns to No 3, nodding and singing the same question, who
-replies in the same way, only singing,
-
- Three of us are going to the Arsenal, the Arsenal,
- And see the animals in Central Park.
-
-And so complete the circle, the chorus being added to by one or more
-each time.
-
-
-MAGICAL READING.
-
-Ask your audience to be seated, while you talk for a few minutes on the
-wonders of occult science. Having mystified them as much as possible,
-you arouse their curiosity by announcing that you are now prepared to
-state whatever they may choose to draw or write, provided the sentence
-is a short one, by pressing the words or picture against your forehead,
-instead of reading with the eye.
-
-You then distribute lead pencils, and equal sized slips of paper to
-all who wish to try, and take your seat at a table, on which you put a
-work-basket, with the request that when they are finished, they will
-fold the papers over once and then drop them in the basket.
-
-When this is done you draw out any paper you may first touch; unfolding
-it so that you cannot read, you press it against your forehead, being
-careful to cover the entire paper with the fingers of each hand, which
-touch each other. You must explain that this contact is necessary for
-your revelation. After some minutes spent in thought, you read it and
-immediately draw another paper, laying each one before you, behind the
-basket.
-
-The trick is simple, and consists in reading any word or sentence which
-may first occur to you, for the first paper, but reading the words
-thereon, or noting the picture when you lay it behind the basket. The
-picture or words on the first paper are read for the second, the second
-read for the third, and so on, until the last one has been pressed to
-the forehead, in removing which it is hidden by being crushed in the
-hand, or in whichever way may prove the easiest at the time, as the
-last paper is a necessity to make up for the one you falsely read.
-
-It is not often that this trick is detected, unless it is bunglingly
-shown, and for that there is no excuse, as it is ridiculous to exhibit
-magic without long and careful practice.
-
-Always change as much as possible the method of exhibition and never
-show this feat twice in one evening. Remember that diversion is an
-important feature in all magical entertainment; therefore you should
-be a capital story-teller, have a fund of funny stories on which you
-call at a moment’s need, for the attention of your friends must be
-constantly turned from your nervousness.
-
-Every one understands that they are being deceived. You must be a
-clever magician or they will discover how.
-
-
-LAUGHABLE RHYMES.
-
-This game may amuse any number, if those playing will each pleasantly
-do their part.
-
-The company should be seated in a circle and the one in charge repeats
-from memory, reads from a book, or makes up a line of poetry. The
-individual to whom he addresses it, must add a line of the same rhyme
-and sense.
-
-When the director has given his line, he runs three times around the
-outside of the circle, or he may spin a large tin platter. The second
-line of poetry _must_ be added before he completes his third round
-of the circle, or before the platter has ceased to spin. Should the
-line fail to be given in time, the one to give it must pay a forfeit.
-The director then gives another line to another person, the game thus
-continuing until all have taken part, or the players desire a change.
-
-The director may change any time with any one of the company. Poetry of
-merit is not expected.
-
-Examples:
-
-Director, (giving a line),
-
-“Miss Beecher’s class came down the street.”
-
-Answer.
-
-“And every one looked perfectly sweet.”
-
-Director,
-
-“Ring, ring, rosy,”
-
-Answer,
-
-“I’m your Josy.”
-
-Director,
-
-“I wandered by the brook-side.”
-
-Answer,
-
-“I saw you on my morning ride.”
-
-Another way of playing laughable rhymes, is to give each one of the
-company a piece of paper and a pencil. Each paper has a verse written
-on it of the same number of lines in length. But these lines are
-incomplete, as each line is minus one word. This word may be the last
-one of a line, or it may be any of the others. Five minutes is a fair
-time to allow for the completion of these rhymes. Then the papers
-should be collected and read aloud, the reader indicating the supplied
-words. All failing to complete their verses within the time allowed
-must pay a forfeit.
-
-Examples:
-
- “It fell of itself
- The lazy ball
- And you needn’t tell me
- I let it fall
- Perhaps it was tired
- Like me and you
- And wanted to rest
- A minute or two.”
-
-Supplied word in parentheses above
-
- (you)
- “What do think
- (don’t)
- I’m sure I know.
- (tell)
- Don’t anybody
- (oh)
- Oh, no! no!
- (told)
- Somebody me
- (else)
- That some one said
- (told)
- That so and so them
- (what)
- You won’t tell I said?”
-
-For older people, try and pique their memories; therefore some familiar
-poem should be selected, or some sonnet of Shakspeare.
-
- “On either side the river lie
- Long fields of barley and of rye
- That clothe the world and meet the sky;
- And thro’ the field the road runs by
- To many tower’d Camelot;
- And up and down the people go
- Gazing where the lilies blow
- Round an island there below,
- The island of Shalott.”
-
- (for)
- “So oft have I invoked thee my Muse
- (in)
- And found such fair assistance my verse
- (got)
- As every alien pen hath my use
- (their)
- And under thee poesy disperse.
- (on)
- Thine eyes that taught the dumb high to sing,
- (aloft)
- And heavy ignorance to fly,
- (the)
- Have added feathers to learned’s wing
- (double)
- And given grace a majesty.
- (which)
- Yet be most proud of that I compile,
- (born)
- Whose influence is thine and of thee:
- (mend)
- In others’ works thou dost but the style,
- (graces)
- And arts with thy sweet gracèd be;
- (and)
- But thou art all my art dost advance
- (my)
- As high as learning rude ignorance.”
-
-
-MAKING A DICTIONARY.
-
-This game is more suitable for scholars; those who have made a study of
-biography and definition. It is readily divided in two parts, and each
-part may be played separately, but it is more satisfactory to unite
-them. The first part is to guess who is personated, and the second is
-to write definitions. If everybody understands or is studying French
-it would be a change to personate a Frenchman, and, in like manner, if
-every player understands or is studying German, personate a German,
-perhaps some author, whose book is authority in school.
-
-The leader of the game commences by stating, “I have compiled a
-dictionary,” and if he is personating a German, before proceeding
-further he must give that clue. Example: “Ever since the appearance
-of the vocabulary to my German Reader in 1870, I have been receiving,
-from various quarters, suggestions and solicitations of a more general
-German dictionary, to be constructed upon the same plan.” And if he is
-personating a Frenchman he must be equally helpful.
-
-After this the leader is silent until asked questions, which he must
-correctly answer. Should he be representing the notable Noah Webster,
-the following would readily discover him.
-
-“Were you born in the United States?”
-
-“Yes.”
-
-“Were you born in the South?”
-
-“No.”
-
-“In the East?”
-
-“Yes.”
-
-“Are you living?”
-
-“No.”
-
-“Were you very old when you died?”
-
-“Yes, in my eighty-fifth year.”
-
-“What college did you attend?”
-
-“Yale.”
-
-“What was your father’s business?”
-
-“He was a farmer and justice of the peace.”
-
-“Tell me about your mother.”
-
-“She was a descendant of William Bradford, the second Governor of
-Plymouth Colony.”
-
-“Were you married?”
-
-“Yes.”
-
-“How many children had you?”
-
-“Six; one son and five daughters.”
-
-By this time any player knowing the biography of Mr. Webster would have
-guessed him.
-
-The leader now distributes to each person equal sized pieces of paper,
-on which the same and several words have been written. He also gives
-them lead pencils. The test is to write the best definitions for these
-words, which, if honestly done, is without consultation. A minute is
-allowed for each word, and the papers being signed are then collected,
-and by the leader read to the audience. With a dictionary for reference
-there will be no dispute as to who has won.
-
-Test words should be common ones, as they are much more difficult
-to define. For instance, Defy,—a challenge. Fortieth,—following the
-thirty-ninth, or preceded by thirty-nine units, things or parts,
-the quotient of a unit divided by forty. To-morrow,—a day after the
-present. Wrist,—the joint connecting the hand with the arm. Rather than
-such as Homing Home,—used specifically of carrier pigeons. Subpœna,—a
-summons for witnesses. Xanthine,—yellow dyeing matter in certain plants
-and flowers. Islamism,—the Mohammedan religion.
-
-This game played with the right people, will give a delightful evening.
-
-
-DESERT ISLAND.
-
-Make believe that you have heard of people living on a desert island,
-on which there is absolutely nothing for their comfort or enjoyment.
-
-Distribute an equal number of pieces of wood, and ask your guests to
-cut out utensils for cooking, furniture, etc. Or give papers, and let
-each in the game draw articles, or take the papers and fold to shape
-articles. A limit of time must be named, and in the end, whoever has
-made or drawn or folded the greatest number of recognizable articles
-has won the game.
-
-
-THE BUTTERFLY TEST.
-
-Cut white writing paper in uniform size—eight in width by ten in
-length. Have as many pieces of paper as the number of painters, also
-several extra ones, as undoubtedly the butterfly makers would want to
-try again and yet again. One palette would suffice for a large company,
-for every one likes to watch the development of his neighbor’s work,
-almost as much as he does his own. But, of course, more palettes may
-be used if desired. Oil paints of divers colors must be placed on
-the palette, having a larger amount of the yellow paint than of any
-of the others, for not only are there more yellow butterflies, but
-yellow often conspicuously appears in almost every butterfly. As many
-palette-knives will be required as palettes. Brushes are not needed.
-
-Put one butterfly on one piece of paper only. Fold the paper you use
-exactly in half, creasing it the longest way, thus giving it the
-appearance of an ordinary sheet of letter paper. This done, take the
-palette-knife and on its point and edge gather a little of the paint,
-putting the knife into the different portions, and so getting the
-colors which you desire. It is better to allow the paint to extend
-about half to two-thirds of an inch along the inside edge of the knife.
-All the paint you would need would not more than cover a five-cent
-nickel.
-
-When the paint is on the palette-knife, open your sheet of paper, and
-in the exact centre of the inside crease, put the paint. This is done
-by putting the edge of the point of the knife directly in the crease,
-and pressing downward, and also a trifle towards the right.
-
-Be satisfied with whatever leaves the knife the first time. Do not
-attempt to pick the paint off, or stick more on. Then carefully remove
-all paint from the palette-knife. For this you will need a small piece
-of soft cotton cloth. Where many people are at work several cloths
-should be in readiness.
-
-The palette-knife now being clean, fold the paper over in the crease
-first made, being careful that you have folded it even, otherwise,
-the wings of the butterfly would be out of proportion, one being
-higher than the other. When the paper is folded you will distinctly
-see the blotch inside, and in this press heavily with the end of the
-palette-knife, starting at the crease and form an upward long arch,
-then press again from the centre towards the right, and arch in the
-same way, only proportionately shorter. The two arches should meet.
-
-When you have pressed over and over again on the same places, and find
-that it is impossible to further spread your paint, open the sheet
-of paper, and inside you will see a butterfly delicately tinted and
-veined, his wings full spread as if to alight on a white clover, or
-other sweet-scented wild flower. In pressing out the paint you can more
-fully control the palette-knife, as well as protect the paper, if you
-put your fingers close to the paint. Sometimes a perfect butterfly is
-thus made the first time, but with a little practice any one may make
-butterflies as they will.
-
-Before painting commences, each artist should draw from a receptacle a
-small paper, which will bear a number. This paper must be held until
-the prize is given, as an inexpensive prize would better be awarded to
-the one painting the most natural butterfly.
-
-When the one in charge calls a number, the one having it at once goes
-forward and paints a butterfly on a paper bearing the same number as
-the one he drew. No matter how many butterflies this individual may
-paint, each paper on which the painting is done must bear the number
-drawn. As each butterfly is painted it is placed on the top of a large
-table. When all are through painting, the judge who has hitherto
-not been in the room, examines all of the butterflies, and decides
-according to number who is entitled to the prize. Example, No. 23.
-
-Should there be two or more equally well done, those who painted them
-must each try again. The best of these is then awarded the prize.
-
-
-A SKATING PARTY.
-
-All taking part should be in costume. The costumes may relate to a
-special anniversary, such as Lincoln’s or Washington’s Birthday, or a
-St. Valentine revel. They may also be simply fantastic or pretty, or
-they may recall the old Knickerbocker days.
-
-The _fête_ would have to be under the direction of patronesses. To
-their decision is left the programme, time, place, etc. Suppose for
-example, it is Washington’s Birthday night, some one of the number
-should represent General Washington. Other characters should be
-prominent Revolutionary heroes, as John Hancock, General Gates, General
-Lafayette, etc. Then, too, Mary and Martha Washington should be on
-skates, and Betty Washington, George Washington’s sister, and other
-notable women of the Declaration of Independence period. But besides
-these, there should be Clowns and Dumpies.
-
-
-PROGRAMME.
-
-Cornet solo, followed by bugle call. Enter General Washington on
-skates, followed by two valets.
-
-Fifteen minutes of general skating in costume.
-
-A sleigh race between the most prominent generals, and their wives.
-
-Fifteen minutes of general skating in costume.
-
-A musical match between the clowns and dumpies.
-
-Fifteen minutes of general skating in costume.
-
-Then all skate, the onlookers and those taking part, General Washington
-leading.
-
-
-
-
-SPECIAL FÊTES.
-
-
-LINCOLN’S BIRTHDAY AMUSEMENTS.
-
-Give a sleighing party. Start immediately after a mid-day dinner and
-get home before the sun sets.
-
-Every one should attach a knot of tri-colored ribbon to his coat or
-jacket. The horses, sleighs and whips must be decked with flags and
-streamers.
-
-When on the road sing songs of freedom. “John Brown’s body lies
-mouldering in the grave.” “In the beauty of the lilies Christ was born
-across the sea,” etc.
-
-Have a snowball game. Choose sides and decide who can pitch the
-farthest.
-
-Balance a snowball on the end of a cane, and note which boy can longest
-keep it from falling.
-
-Try a snowshoe race by picked players.
-
-Make an immense snowball. When it can be made no larger, let three
-persons stand on the top. The tallest should stand in the centre and
-wave the flag. One of the party should take a snap shot at that moment,
-for future amusement.
-
-Arrange a skating party the day before, and test each one’s skill on
-the ice—who can skate the most rapidly,—who can exhibit the most
-figures, etc.
-
-Give an up-to-date military tournament on skates. Example, America and
-Spain.
-
- * * * * *
-
-If there is neither snow, nor ice, have a bicycle match. Trim the
-bicycle with red, white and blue. Each rider should wear the same
-colors. The match may be simply a question of speed. In that case be
-careful to indicate the distance. Competent judges should witness the
-start and close of the race.
-
-All difficult questions must be decided by an umpire.
-
-
-ST. VALENTINE GAMES.
-
-_A Valentine Hunt._
-
-This should be given early in the evening, as it removes shyness and
-establishes good fellowship.
-
-Hide as many small valentines as there are children, and give five
-minutes to hunt for them. Those finding more than one should put the
-extra ones on a table, and the children not finding any are then
-blindfolded and allowed to draw one each.
-
-_Rose Guess._
-
-Present a large rose and let each child guess how many petals it
-contains. When all have guessed, pick the petals off, counting them as
-they fall. The nearest guesser receives a prize. An appropriate prize
-would be a bonbon box filled with candied rose leaves.
-
-_Rose Bowl Game._
-
-Put on a small table, a mat of pink crinkled tissue paper, and in the
-centre stand a cut-glass rose-bowl. The bowl should be covered with
-huge pink rose petals, made of paper, inverted as though the rose were
-held in the bowl, the petals all meeting in the green calyx, which
-covers the opening of the bowl. Through the calyx, narrow green ribbons
-representing rose stems should appear. Each child, at a signal, should
-come to the table and draw one of the “stems.” On the end of each
-will be found a pink candy heart, and to one of these hearts will be
-fastened a tiny love-knot ring.
-
-_The Walnut’s Fortune._
-
-Open a quantity of walnuts in half. Into each walnut slip a narrow
-piece of paper which will predict the future. Slip a small elastic over
-each nut, which will prevent them from reopening. The boys’ walnuts
-should be put in one basket, and the girls’ in another. The girls’
-basket should be offered first. As each girl holds her hand over the
-basket she should repeat:
-
- “Steady, good fairy, I am wary,
- Pray let my hand make no mistake;
- I would only the right nut take.”
-
-Then she puts her hand down, lifts up a nut, removes the elastic, and
-taking out the paper, reads her future aloud. Example, “You will travel
-around the world. At the age of twenty-three you will sing before two
-thousand people.” And thus the future is predicted in similar style for
-other players.
-
-_Naming the Roses._
-
-All the young people should personate favorite roses. Therefore, there
-should be many varieties. The parlors should have arches or wide
-doorways, through which a procession may readily move.
-
-The musicians are advised to play something between a march and a reel,
-and immediately each boy signals out the girl that matches his rose.
-If more than one match, he asks the girl he prefers. Then, all keeping
-time to the music, they walk through the first arch or doorway, and
-so on to the second, thus in rotation going through all. The couples
-should keep about two feet back of each other.
-
-When all have passed through the last arch, they join hands, thus
-forming a circle, and commencing with the first couple, enter the ring
-two by two. Two only being in at a time, when they come out, the two
-that followed them in the march enter, and so on. When in the circle
-the boy should ask the girl, “Which rose are you?” She answers, “Tell
-me, and I’ll tell you.” Very often his answer will be, “I don’t know,”
-though once in a while he will make a perfect guess. When his answer is
-right, he asks the girl the language of her rose; but if he has made a
-mistake, he is obliged to leave the girl in the ring, and stand under
-one of the arches. If the girl cannot answer his question, she must
-stand under an arch. If the boy leaves the ring before inquiring the
-rose’s language, those forming the ring put the same question, and if
-the girl does not properly reply, she has to pay the same penalty as
-when not replying to the boy.
-
-When both questions are answered correctly, the boy and girl again join
-the hands of the others forming the circle. When each couple has been
-in and left the ring the game is concluded.
-
-Among the rosebuds and their meaning are: White rose-bud, girlhood; red
-rose-bud, loveliness; white and red together, unity.
-
-
-_Memory._
-
-Put a small table behind a screen. On this table place thirty different
-articles, including pulverized spices, small bottles of liquid, books,
-etc. Each player is allowed ten seconds in which to familiarize himself
-or herself with the things on the table. Then each person writes a list
-of the things, titles of books, etc., from memory. The boy and girl
-whose lists are nearest perfection receive valentines as prizes.
-
-
-_Love Box._
-
-Present a pink silk bag to each of the young ladies, and ask them to
-take out what they first touch. Each will then draw a small pink box,
-inside of which will be her fortune written on ordinary sized note
-paper.
-
-When the young ladies have finished drawing, pass a red silk bag,
-filled with red boxes of a similar size, to the young men. Each paper
-in the pink boxes should be numbered one, two, etc. and the same with
-the red. The following are the examples of the fortunes.
-
-
- Whereso’er I am, below or else above you,
- Whereso’er you are, my heart shall truly love you.
- My name is John.
-
- You will married be
- At the age of thirty-eight,
- Or else I’ve made a mistake,
- And the date is far too late.
-
- Now you must guess my name
- Or this fortune’s very tame.
-
-Or ask questions, to be followed with appropriate answers.
-
-“Shall I marry Sue?”
-
-“There’s a rival in the case. A very rich and stupid fellow.”
-
-
-_The Prophetic Rose._
-
-In an archway hang a huge rose made of tissue-paper of a deep red
-color, the petals being dark at the centre. The players are told that
-the darker petals belong to the boys, and the girls should visit
-the rose first. Each girl in turn should step toward the rose, and
-break off a petal. On the reverse side she may read her fortune; for
-delicately pasted to the rose petal will be a white one, and on this
-the girls fortune will be written. Everybody reads their fortune aloud,
-for all are as interested to learn the future of their friends as their
-own. When the girls finish, the boys follow in a similar way. Some of
-the fortunes might be:
-
-“Thou drawest a perfect lot.”
-
-“You will be wondrous happy.”
-
-“Mistress of the Manse.”
-
-“A curate—never slack in duty.”
-
-
-_Make a Valentine._
-
-This will create much merriment and prove equally suitable for
-grown-ups or boys and girls.
-
-Before the guests arrive, have ready even-sized pieces of water-color
-paper. The hostess should distribute these and explain just what
-should be done. Have water-color paints, brushes, etc., conveniently
-near every one, also a few well-sharpened lead-pencils might not prove
-amiss. Either have the people seated at one long table or at several
-small ones, as would be convenient. Ring a bell when it is time to
-commence. In thirty minutes ring again, when all must stop.
-
-As the designs should be original, no one must look over his neighbor’s
-shoulder. The fact that some would not know how to paint would have
-nothing to do with it, as the entertainment is only a bit of fun and
-every one should do his part. Valentines allow of such diversity in
-decoration, from the extreme of the grotesque to the æsthetic and
-beautiful, that every one should be glad to try. Remember, a line of
-prose or verse would be an added compliment. For instance,
-
- Prithee tell me, Dimple chin,
- At what age does love begin?
-
-might be written under the dainty portrait of some winsome wee thing;
-or,
-
- My love is like a red, red rose,
-
-might be added to the picture of a flaming red cabbage rose.
-
-When the valentines are finished they should be numbered, each painter
-retaining his number on a slip of paper. This done, gather the
-valentines and submit them to the judgment of three people to decide
-as to their merit. The painter of the best valentine should receive a
-prize.
-
-Then jumble together slips of paper on which are written numbers
-corresponding to the numbers of the valentines. Let each guest draw a
-slip, and present him or her with the corresponding valentine, which
-may be retained as a souvenir.
-
-
-_The Court of the King of Hearts._
-
-Decide who will be king. He may get his costume from a costumer’s or
-wear a home-made robe of gold color, decorated all over with hearts
-cut out of crimson velvet, six inches long and in correct proportion.
-He should wear a gold crown ornamented with Rhine stones, and carry a
-sceptre. There should be a throne, which may be a large chair placed on
-a raised platform. The throne and platform should be covered with gold
-paper, sprinkled with diamond dust.
-
-All the decorations should suggest St. Valentine’s evening. Therefore,
-pink or rose should be the color effect, and such devices as Cupid’s
-arrows, hearts, valentines should appear. Ask the young ladies to gown
-themselves to represent roses. Therefore some would wear pink; others,
-white, etc. The gowns might further suggest the scheme by being trimmed
-with roses. The young gentlemen should wear rose boutonnières.
-
-All the guests compose the court.
-
-The entertainment may be opened by the minuet, danced by red and white
-roses, after which the entire court enter, marching two by two. As they
-march they sing in honor of their king. When the first couple reaches
-the throne, the leaders separate right and left and turn facing each
-other. The others do likewise, keeping the distance between regular.
-Last of all comes the king followed by two pages representing Cupids.
-The king marches between the columns, and finally reaches his throne.
-When there he looks smilingly over his court, and then seats himself.
-The pages stand to his right and left.
-
-Then the court, at a motion of the king’s sceptre, waltz, after which
-the entire evening is spent amusing the king. He likes songs, and they
-become Singing Roses. He likes recitations, and the roses recite. All
-the songs and recitations must be of the heart. Among the recitations
-may be “The Garden of Love,” William Shakspeare; “The Day-Dream,”
-Alfred Tennyson; “Telepathy,” James Russell Lowell.
-
-At the close of a song the king rises, and waving his wand, the company
-cease entertaining, and the Cupids, leaving the throne, walk side by
-side, and finally stop at a huge blackboard. Then in colored crayons
-they each draw a valentine. After which the King of Hearts asks each
-one of the company to do likewise. This affords much amusement, as many
-of the valentines will be exceedingly grotesque.
-
-When all have finished drawing, the Cupids return to the throne, and
-the king signals for a dance. And now a surprise. Eight dancers appear
-in heart and valentine dominoes. Each heart dances with a valentine,
-and thus the king continues to be amused. The first eight who have
-drawn valentines quietly absent themselves, and thus they are ready at
-the desired time. The dominoes are made out of white cheese-cloth, the
-valentines and hearts are basted thickly over them.
-
-After the dance the king should rise and thank the court for what has
-been done for his entertainment, after which the recession of the court
-should follow. The columns leading to the throne must be again formed,
-the king rises, and proceeds through the lines followed by his pages,
-and then the two nearest to the throne go next, and so on until all
-disappear.
-
-
-WASHINGTON’S BIRTHDAY ENTERTAINMENT.
-
-If the hostess is a girl, she should be costumed as Lady Washington;
-if she has a brother, his dress should be a faithful copy of General
-Washington’s. The mother of the young people may take the character
-of Mary Washington, mother of George. Ask your friends to wear an
-appropriate costume excepting that of the Washington household; that
-family excluded, they are fancy free. Decorate the house with flags
-and bunting; also give an eagle prominent position. For evergreens use
-holly, and whatever flowers may be peculiar to the State of Virginia.
-Suggest red, white, and blue in the supper-room. Example: Cover the
-dining-table with blue silk or bunting, and on it stand cakes frosted
-with red and white icing, mottoes in red and white papers, etc.
-Serve strawberry and vanilla ice-cream in blue dishes. Have all the
-confectionery red and white in color, and served from a blue-covered
-stand. Should you not have blue china suitable for the confectionery,
-deftly cover white china with blue crinkled paper, and so preserve the
-colors.
-
-Open the evening with the flag dance. This is any square dance you may
-please. Immediately before it starts, present the dancers with a tiny
-American flag, and whenever a bow occurs, let the flags be triumphantly
-whirled. They may be retained as souvenirs. After the dance some one
-previously selected should come into the parlor. He must be entirely
-enveloped in tricolor, which may be done by the use of a large flag,
-and if necessary a smaller one may cover the head. The question now is
-to guess, Who is this distinguished visitor? whether it is some one
-of the Revolutionary period or of the present, of our own country, or
-of another. When the domino is removed, across his chest will be his
-name. It is George the Third, who did not feel very comfortable at
-the time of the signing of the Declaration of Independence. He should
-wear a crown, which is easily made from pasteboard, cover it with gold
-paper, and for precious stones glue on rounded buttons covered to suit
-whichever gem you may please-jasper, sapphire, diamonds, or what not.
-Whoever makes a correct guess should receive a gift suggestive of the
-occasion. A book about a Revolutionary hero would do, or any article of
-jewelry, suggestive of Washington’s time. There are stickpins which may
-be used for scarfs also, that have the flag in colored enamel. After
-this, another dance would be in place, and follow that with games and
-patriotic songs.
-
-“The Star-Spangled Banner,” in march time, would be appropriate to use
-as the march to supper.
-
-
-APRIL FOOL GAMES AND TRICKS.
-
-It is always a question whether these games should or should not be
-played. Therefore I offer them with this preface as also a few words
-of advice. Be good natured and do not take offence over other people’s
-amusement at your expense.
-
-Never play a practical joke.
-
-Example, Mr. M—— died last night.
-
-Mr. M—— was an intimate friend of a party present, and as the word
-pronounced dyed is capable of two different meanings, one of the guests
-interpreted it in its saddest sense, and immediately fainted. Wholesome
-fun promotes laughter and good-fellowship; indulge in it all you will,
-and so help your little world to be the merrier.
-
-On a pure white tidy write in distinct letters upside down, the words,
-“April Fool,” and get some boy to lean back against them. When he walks
-about the room afterwards, his black jacket is decorated.
-
-If you have an old cane-bottom chair, cut the seat out, but not too
-close to the frame. Fit this nicely in and offer the seat to any of the
-larger boys or girls. Instantly this individual finds himself slipping
-down, but is more frightened than hurt.
-
-Upholster a long low box to represent a divan. The top should consist
-of neatly tacked down stiff brown paper, and over this throw a long
-thin rug. Suggest to two or three of your liveliest friends that they
-sit together on this divan. In a few moments the room will resound with
-shrieks of laughter, for they will be seated on the floor.
-
-Give a florist’s box temptingly covered with tissue paper and tied up
-with gold cord to one of the guests. He will unfasten the cord, take
-off the paper, and lift the cover only to find _nothing_ within.
-
-Should your mother or sister be expecting a new spring bonnet, beguile
-the milliner into letting you have one of her nicest hat boxes, into
-which you should put your three years’ old Derby, and then watch the
-result.
-
-A questionable joke would be to send a party invitation to your old
-friend, inviting him to an equally old friend’s house, and wait around
-to see him enter.
-
-Tell John or Mary there is an oat for them at Mr. Blank’s. They
-thinking you have said “a note” immediately go to get it, and fully
-comprehend your meaning when they are handed a tiny package of tissue
-paper which serves as a covering to one oat and the words “April Fool.”
-
-Arrange portières so they may be drawn on either side of a long mirror,
-as window curtains are drawn from the centre of a window. Before this
-make an effective group of a number of boys and girls. The rear ones
-should stand, the ones immediately in front should be seated on the
-floor. Above them should be written on a mirror these words, “April
-Fools.” When every one is in place, a boy standing on the left and
-right of the mirror should draw the portières.
-
-A part of the refreshments for such an evening should be cakes frosted
-with salt and others stuffed with cotton, oranges filled with sawdust,
-tiny blocks of wood and small balls of cotton, covered with chocolate,
-so simulating chocolate caramels and creams. Have also motto papers
-deftly covering little pebbles, and iced coffee, which will be found to
-be the most acid of iced vinegar. But do not let your refreshments end
-with such a menu, or good nature even with the jolliest would cease to
-be a virtue; when a little fun is gotten, serve a delicious supper.
-
-
-EASTER FROLICS.
-
-The time for Easter amusement is during the week which follows Easter
-Day, and it would be a pretty idea at such a season to give a short
-tableau entertainment in connection with music and games, the tableaux
-indicating the superstitions of various countries.
-
-When the tableau is shown, announce what it is intended to represent;
-for example, in Russia the Easter festival might almost be termed the
-“kissing festival,” for beginning with the Emperor, who on Easter Day
-kisses various generals and even privates in his army, the singular
-contagion spreads throughout the empire, apparently affecting both
-aristocrat and plebeian.
-
-_Tableau._—A boy representing the Russian Emperor kissing a member of
-the army.
-
-In the olden days of France it was the custom for a Christian to give a
-Jew an Easter box.
-
-_Tableau._—Two boys, one representing the Christian; the other, the
-Jew. The Christian must be in the act of boxing the Jew’s ear.
-
-Follow this with the France of to-day.
-
-_Tableau._—An interior of a church, extravagantly trimmed with flowers,
-and brilliant with lighted candles. It should be crowded with boys and
-girls, mothers and fathers, all in brand-new clothes.
-
-Show Spain as a dark-haired girl, with a mantilla over her head,
-kneeling in a church before a mammoth candle—the Paschal candle, nine
-feet long. In order to make it seem taller, stand it on a marble
-pedestal.
-
-Rome, with a procession of gayly attired children, and a boy
-representing the Pope, in the most elegant of robes, carried in a
-crimson chair, over which is a canopy. This chair must be preceded by
-two boys, each carrying white ostrich-feather fans.
-
-Germany, with a group of dancing girls and boys, the girls wearing
-small, close-fitting white caps, full white aprons over dark
-gold-braided skirts and white sleeves; the boys with knee-breeches,
-white stockings, showy vests and gold buttons. Or show a hare running
-from a nest filled with colored eggs, before which two little children
-kneel. The nest should be placed under a bush, and one of the children
-should wear a laughing face, for she holds up an egg.
-
-England, with a crowd of boys and girls returning from Hampton Court,
-Kew Gardens, or Stoke Pogis with their arms literally filled with
-willow-boughs and branches of blossoms—yellow, pink, and white—with
-which they will decorate the church for Easter Sunday.
-
-Switzerland, with a band of musicians carrying guitars, and going from
-house to house singing some sweet carol, their hats and caps wreathed
-with flowers.
-
-A very pretty way to amuse children of all ages is to hide eggs in the
-grass or under bushes, and then have an egg-hunt. All eggs found may,
-of course, be carried home. Give five minutes for the hunt, and it will
-prove great sport for lookers-on also.
-
-For another game, raise a tent decorated with flags, cheese-cloth
-streamers, or ribbons. Opposite the tent in which the guests are to
-be seated, and ten feet distant, is a post or tree on which to put
-a prize. At the base of the post put a basket of thin china eggs or
-glass balls, and also one at the tent door, only fill this basket with
-excelsior. The game is to find the person that will throw the largest
-number of eggs from one of the baskets into the other and not break
-them. Whoever wins is rewarded by the prize.
-
-For little children, form a ring, and pitch to the centre of the ring
-a hard-boiled egg, and let them scramble for it. For larger children,
-let them pair off, a boy and a girl; thus alternating, they form a
-ring. Then start thirteen china or glass eggs, one after the other,
-from hand to hand, taking the egg in the right hand, passing it to the
-left, and so on round the ring. If an egg drops, it must stay where it
-falls until the other eggs have gone around the ring three times. It
-may chance by that time that all the eggs have dropped. When the third
-time around is complete, immediately a grand chain is formed, and the
-children dance, and go back to position, picking up the eggs as they
-dance. If the egg is not picked up, keeping time to the music which is
-being played throughout the game, that person cannot retain it, but
-must give it to the one following. Sometimes no eggs fall, then the
-game is kept up until all the eggs have passed rapidly around three
-times. But when dropped and picked up, they must then go around once,
-and after this final circuit the game is concluded.
-
-Boil a dozen or more eggs in logwood of different strengths of dye;
-they will then be colored violet or purple. Give these eggs, with a
-large pin or pen-knife, to young people to decorate. Offer a prize for
-the best decorations within fifteen minutes.
-
-Still another game is to knock eggs. Hold an egg so that the small end
-is shown between the forefinger and the thumb. Sit or stand opposite
-to the person with whom you are playing. Then knock each other’s eggs.
-The knock should be swift and hard, and whoever’s egg is the first to
-crack must now be given to the opponent. When starting, each should
-have an equal number. Whoever has the most eggs after playing ten
-minutes has won.
-
-
-_Finding the Hare._
-
-The hare is nothing more nor less than a box made in exact copy of a
-hare, about six inches long. When opened it shall be found full of
-rose-colored and rose-flavored confectionery.
-
-The company are told that a hare is hidden and whoever finds it is the
-owner. It is a bewitching sight to see the merry hunt and great sport
-for those engaged.
-
-
-_The Parlor Egg Hunt._
-
-Buy confectioners’ eggs, which come in all sizes, from the ostrich
-size to a humming bird’s, made of chocolate or icing, and trimmed with
-flowers or tiny ribbons. Hide the small eggs, and state in which rooms
-they are hidden. Allow five minutes for the hunt, each striving to find
-the most. Ring a bell to start and end the game.
-
-
-_Ostrich Egg Search._
-
-This is played exactly like the thimble game. Put a confectioner’s
-ostrich egg in full sight, and at a signal every one begins to look for
-it. When it is seen, the finder signifies the fact by sitting down,
-and this continues until all are either seated or give up. The hostess
-inquires of the first one who sat down where the egg is, and the answer
-is given in a whisper. If correct, it may be retained as a favor, if
-not, the egg must be drawn for.
-
-The hiding must be cleverly managed, so that while the egg is in sight,
-it is, however, in an unexpected spot, and where it cannot be handled.
-Then, too, there should be a bogus egg, made from tissue paper, closely
-resembling the confectioners egg. Many will mistake the egg.
-
-
-_Basket Eggs._
-
-Put two baskets at the end of a room, each basket lined with wadding,
-and containing a dozen of eggs. Opposite these baskets on the other
-side of the room, have two empty ones lined in a similar manner. Two
-persons step forward, and at the ringing of a bell start to put the
-dozen of eggs, without cracking, into the empty basket, the one who
-succeeds first being victor.
-
-
-_The Game of Cluck._
-
-Perhaps this is the jolliest game of all, and it is essentially for
-boys. Whoever gives the party should ask each of his friends to bring
-a chicken—a real live chicken—and if he is sure he would not recognize
-her when with a barnyard of others, he must tie a ribbon around her
-neck; he must also bring some hard-boiled eggs. The court used should
-be surrounded with a high netting, and the centre of the court marked
-with a cross.
-
-At a signal all the players, each with his fowl in his arms, must enter
-the court, and the host, going to the centre, now becomes auctioneer,
-and taking each offered fowl in turn, he loudly calls, “How many eggs
-am I bid for this chicken?”—two eggs, three, or whatever the number may
-be; no one must bid what he cannot pay, and the chicken is given to the
-boy offering the largest number, and the eggs are given to the previous
-owner of the chicken. He may put them wherever he pleases, only they
-must be somewhere within the netting.
-
-The sale being over, the “cluck” commences, for it is now each one’s
-aim to recover his chicken, which can only be done by finding the
-requisite number of eggs given for her. This is much easier said than
-done, for the boys will have hidden them in their pockets and other
-peculiar places. Meanwhile the chickens, running in every direction,
-are very apt to “cluck” loudly.
-
-
-_The Bird’s Nest._
-
-Put a bird’s nest in a room; hunt for it as you “Hunt the slipper,”
-only, instead of saying “warm, warmer,” and so on, you cluck, cluck,
-cluck soft or loud as the party goes towards or from the nest. Only one
-person hunts at a time; everybody else clucks.
-
-
-MAY-DAY FESTIVITY.
-
-A May-Queen party is conducted in a variety of ways. Very simply you
-may say: “I am arranging for a Maying party; will you come? I shall
-be so glad to have you.” And without further form than the above
-invitation, only mentioning the time, place of meeting, luncheon, etc.,
-everything for a day’s outdoor frolic is adjusted.
-
-But the correct fashion is vastly different. The invitation is of
-the same character as that given for any other party. The paper on
-which the invitation is engraved should be decorated. The decoration
-should be suggestive of the occasion—a trimmed May-pole, a throne for
-the Queen, or the Queen herself. Also, in the left-hand corner of the
-invitation, state the time when the tally-ho or carriages will start:
-they start from the house of the giver of the party. A good hour is ten
-o’clock, and the guests should be there ten minutes earlier.
-
-All Maying parties should be in charge of a chaperone, not only for
-Madame Grundy’s sake, who would do a great deal of talking, but because
-there is then some one older than yourself to consult with in case
-of need, as also some one to superintend those who would arrange the
-refreshment table. And as this party must
-
- fall upon a day
- In the merry month of May.
-
-everybody should wear holiday attire, as,
-
- In the days when we went gypsying,
- A long time ago,
- The lads and lassies in their best
- Were dressed from top to toe.
-
-In France this day was dedicated to the Virgin, and the most popular
-girl was called the “Lady of the May.” She was always crowned and
-adorned with flowers, and sat in state on a miniature throne made of
-flowers and branches, while her maids of honor begged for money from
-all who passed that way, to be spent on the religious feast held later.
-
-And our May-Queen can have her white frock too, as dainty and pretty
-as that of any Parisian maiden, if she will only wear warm flannels
-underneath it. Remember, that though May days are oftentimes warm and
-sunny even to uncomfortableness, their temperature cannot be depended
-upon.
-
-The May-Queen should be arranged for by the giver of the party, and
-also her six maids of honor. The Queen only wears white. The maids
-should wear frocks of different hue, and each represent a woodland
-flower or fern. For example, rose pink garlanded with pink rose-buds
-and roses; baby-blue and forget-me-nots; pale violet and violets;
-cowslip yellow and cowslips; Nile-green and maidenhair-fern, etc. The
-guests should wear flowers, and may or may not represent flowers, as
-they choose. Only they must wear gay attire. The boys might dress as
-gentlemen of the court, adopting the fashion of princes, lords, pages;
-and do not forget the fool, with his cap and bells, to amuse the Queen.
-Or all may wear grotesque apparel—it is go-as-you-please fashion—only
-if the grotesque is decided upon, all should adopt it; the Queen could
-personate Maid Marian, with gilt crown on her head, and one of the boys
-assume the character of Robin Hood.
-
-It would be a delight could all of these occasions have a May-pole,
-wound about with gay color, and long ribbon streamers firmly fastened
-at the top, which during the dances should be braided and unbraided
-again and again. It requires a tall straight tree, which should be
-firmly set in the ground, after the order of a flag-staff. The tallest
-May-pole ever set up in England was on the Strand, London, and was one
-hundred and thirty-four feet high. A pole twelve feet from the ground,
-however, will give just as much pleasure at the ordinary May-Queen
-party. Around it join hands, and sing any familiar English ballads,
-or songs from the opera of _Robin Hood_. It might be well to have a
-rehearsal of two or three songs beforehand, if you should be particular
-about your music at the time of the party. As for dances, they should
-be intermingled with the songs, waltzes, mazourkas, schottisches—any
-dance that you may know. Besides this, play one and another ring game,
-even if you are ever such big boys and girls. Always remember to pay
-homage to your Queen, being sure that she is leading.
-
-Whoever gives the party is of course responsible for refreshments,
-which are usually served picnic fashion on long tables in the woods,
-near to the place where the games are played. The provisions should be
-carried in a separate wagon, and be kept out of sight until it is time
-for lunch. The tables may be made very attractive by means of mosses,
-wild flowers, and grasses. One such table was of exquisite beauty, its
-only adornment being ferns. A border of them was pinned or basted all
-around the cloth, made higher at the corners. A large cut-glass bowl
-stood in the centre of the table, filled with maiden-hair, and two
-tall slender vases, one shorter than the other and filled with fine
-ferns and vines stood at irregular distances. When the refreshments are
-ready, the hostess must escort the Queen, and lead her to the position
-of honor. Next to follow should be the maids of honor, and the rest as
-they will. In every instance the Queen must be served first; indeed,
-she should be shown every consideration.
-
-The Queen’s throne should be erected near the May-pole. It is generally
-made in a sort of bower of bushes. Sometimes a large stone has to form
-the seat; cover this with flowers, so that your Queen is really sitting
-in a floral chair. Make her crown before leaving home; it can be cut
-out of pasteboard, and covered with gilt paper, and when you get to
-the fields twine flowers around it; or you may assimilate a crown with
-a wreath of wild flowers. In either case present it to her with great
-formality. Having led her near the throne, two of the boys should stand
-on either side of her, and suspend the crown between them, immediately
-above her head. While they are in this position, the hostess must step
-towards the Queen and say, “In the name of this court, we crown you
-Queen of May.” The boy standing at her right then leads her to the
-throne; when she is seated, the other boy presents her sceptre, and her
-entire court sing a chorus previously decided.
-
-The girls might all carry wooden hoops, and having wound flowers around
-them, take them to some poor child or sick mother or sister on their
-return home, and so have the pleasantest sort of an ending to the
-May-Queen party. In our joy and gladness under the cloudless sky, on a
-moss-covered walk, with violets and other wild flowers at our feet, we
-should not forget the many more to whom such a party would seem almost
-as a day in Paradise.
-
-
-FOURTH OF JULY CELEBRATION.
-
-Every boy, to properly celebrate Independence Day, should be well
-stocked with torpedoes, large and small, fire-crackers, cannon, and
-gunpowder. He should know that the starry flag flutters from his home,
-and that the red, white, and blue is a part of his attire.
-
-Early in the day a battalion of patriotic boys should march and
-countermarch up and down the principal streets, while all the
-while martial music is heard, and the shrill bugle call answers the
-exultant drum beat. A banner should lead such a procession, and the
-Star-spangled Banner should triumphantly wave throughout the entire
-line.
-
-Jolly fun may be had in the after part of the day, by setting an old
-barn on fire.
-
-Very often the boys’ fathers or uncles own a barn that they would
-rather have out of the way than not, and the Fourth of July is the most
-appropriate time in the entire year for a conflagration. When a barn is
-to be fired, be sure that it is carefully prepared beforehand, with a
-coating of tar and long wisps of tarred paper, and the boys cannot be
-too cautious not to get on fire themselves.
-
-Should boys not be successful in finding a barn to burn up, perhaps
-they could find a dead tree on a friend’s vacant lot. A tree would
-make a perfect tower of flame, and could be seen for miles around.
-It, too, will blaze all the fiercer if you apply a coating of pitch.
-Those engaged in this sport should wear their oldest clothing, in order
-not to make themselves a nuisance to their mothers and sisters or
-thoughtlessly waste their fathers’ money.
-
-Perhaps some of the boys would like a receipt for a powerful noise. It
-is simple enough—nothing but chlorate of potash and sulphur mixed; you
-should put several pieces of paper around it, though, and hammer it
-down as heavy as you can.
-
-
-HALLOWE’EN GAMES AND TRICKS.
-
-
-_The Nut Trick._
-
-The shell must be prepared before the performance. Remove the kernel
-by boring a hole, or opening the nut at one end. Take out the contents
-by the aid of a lady’s hat-pin, and instead of the kernel, slip in a
-short piece of scarlet-colored baby-width ribbon. Then putty or wax
-the opening over, and color the putty or wax with a dye, crayon, or
-paint, the exact shade of the nut. The nut being thus prepared, you
-may now lay it on the table before your friends, and present a bunch
-of many-colored ribbons of the same width and length to them. Ask that
-some one select any piece he chooses; you must have a don’t-care air,
-as though it didn’t make any difference to you which piece was chosen.
-While, on the contrary, you care so much, that should a wrong selection
-be made you must at once tell an interesting story, which will help
-your friends to forget that the ribbon has already been selected, and
-you should make use of this opportunity to offer the ribbons over
-again. This time the selection will likely be correct. It would be
-wise to have the majority of pieces of ribbon the color of the piece
-in the nut, as that color would catch the eye first and stand a better
-chance of being taken.
-
-The right ribbon now being chosen, make a great point of looking at it;
-hold it up at arm’s length, so that all the audience may see it. Then
-ask the party who made the selection to put it back in the bunch with
-the others and mix them all up to please himself. When he has finished,
-face the bunch of ribbons, and loudly repeat, three times over,
-“Ribbon, go into the nut.” Then ask your friend to go forward and take
-the little hammer which he will find on the table and crack the nut
-open. When the nut is opened, sure enough inside is a scarlet ribbon.
-
-
-_Burn a Lady’s Handkerchief, but Return it Whole Again._
-
-This requires a tin cylinder about eight inches in diameter and twelve
-inches in height. Into this put a perfectly fitting tin vessel, which
-is divided strictly in half. When this vessel is slid inside of the
-cylinder the whole does not look unlike a canister with a cover at
-each end. Having the handkerchief, hold it so that everybody sees it,
-and talk fluently, keeping the body constantly in motion; indeed,
-making so many motions that no one has noticed that you have packed
-this handkerchief in the upper division of the tin vessel, and that,
-as you are walking towards the candle, you have turned the cylinder
-upside down, and that also the handkerchief you are now holding is
-really not a handkerchief at all, but a thin piece of muslin you have
-prepared to simulate a handkerchief. Pour on it a few drops of alcohol,
-which will help it to burn even more rapidly; tear it, if you think
-it more effective. When the owner thinks that her handkerchief is
-forever destroyed, cleverly manage to invert the cylinder, take out the
-handkerchief, shake it well, holding it so that all the audience sees
-that it is not even scorched, and then return it to the lady.
-
-
-_The Bowl Trick._
-
-Fill a tiny tumbler with water and cover it with a bowl. Then state you
-will drink the water in the tumbler underneath without moving the bowl.
-
-Of course the company do not believe you, and you ask all to turn
-their backs, or close their eyes, if they will promise not to look,
-until one of the party counts ten. Immediately they have turned their
-backs, or closed their eyes, you pick up another glass of water and
-hastily swallow a few mouthfuls. They hear the sound, but no one can
-look until ten is counted. By that time the glass from which you drank
-is hidden again, and the company catch you wiping your moist lips.
-Undoubtedly one of the number will be so suspicious that he will lift
-the bowl to see, and then is your opportunity, for you at once pick up
-the glass and drink, saying, as you put it down, “_I_ didn’t touch the
-bowl.”
-
-
-_An Impossible Jump._
-
-Take a gentleman’s hat, and, turning it around so that every one sees
-it, ask your friends whether, if you put it on the floor, they could
-jump over it. Of course they will answer, “Yes.” Then stand it close to
-the wall, and tell them not to all try at once, but take their turn to
-jump.
-
-
-_Turn a Goblet Upside Down Without Spilling the Water._
-
-Fill a glass goblet so as not to allow any water to drop over the edge.
-Cover the top with a piece of paper; on the paper put your hand, and
-turn the goblet rapidly over; then remove the hand. The upward pressure
-of the air will prevent the water from spilling.
-
-
-_The Hat Omelet._
-
-Everybody who enjoys tricks is no doubt familiar with this. It is very
-easy to do.
-
-First state that you are about to make an omelet. Then break three eggs
-into the hat, and appear to add a little milk and flour, after which
-shake all together and hold the hat over a lighted lamp, candle, or
-gas. After a few moments lift out the hot flaky omelet and pass it to
-your friends; otherwise they will think they have been deceived.
-
-The secret is, the omelet was cooked on the range, and was in the
-hat when you commenced to exhibit the trick, the hat being held too
-high for the audience to see inside. The eggs were not full, only
-the shells, the contents having been previously drawn through a tiny
-aperture at one end. Laugh and talk a great deal and it will not be
-noticed that you do not put in the cornstarch and milk; also let a real
-egg drop, as if by accident, on a plate standing on the table before
-you, or let a tablespoon or knife fall. This will attract all eyes and
-further prevent discovery. As in other tricks, you should practise it
-before showing it to your friends.
-
-
-_The Wonderful Carafe._
-
-An empty carafe is brought by your confederate. This you should rinse
-and drain in the presence of your audience, in order to satisfy them
-that there is really no mistake, that the carafe is positively empty.
-After it has well drained, dry it, wiping it around with the greatest
-care. In the towel which your confederate brought you he also brought
-a bladder, in which was a weak preparation made up of spirits of
-wine, sugar, and water. In this way the carafe is filled without the
-audience detecting. The glasses are already in position, and in each
-one has been put a drop or two of flavoring extract, such as pineapple,
-lemonade, orange, peppermint. The magician then inquires if any one
-would like a glass of lemonade, and being answered in the affirmative,
-he pours the same from the carafe by filling the glass in which the
-drops of lemonade extract have been placed. In like manner he will give
-a glass of orangeade, or whatever drink corresponds to the extract in
-the glasses.
-
-
-_The Vanishing Ten-cent Piece._
-
-Put this coin in the palm of your hand and take pains to let everybody
-see it. Then state that if any one of the audience will call out,
-“Vanish,” it will disappear.
-
-The reason why is because the nail of your middle finger is covered
-with white wax, and closing the hand forcibly the coin instantly
-fastens itself to it. You must then open the hand wide and show that
-the ten-cent piece has really gone.
-
-The tricks now being over, the audience rose to congratulate their
-young entertainers and also to exchange a few words with one another,
-and in so doing many of them did not discover that refreshments were
-about to be served until they were asked to take seats at the small
-tables that had most mysteriously appeared.
-
-The refreshments were very simple, being only vanilla and strawberry
-rolled wafers and delicious tea. The tea was, of course, poured into
-the prettiest of Japanese cups, and carried on richly decorated trays,
-on which were laid divers colored Japanese napkins, while the graceful,
-cordial, Japanese-robed young girls added an indescribable charm.
-
-And thus closed this dainty, interesting entertainment amid the
-pleasant chatter of the happily seated, congenial company.
-
-
-_Blindfolded Prophecy._
-
-Should you be in the country on All Hallowe’en, one of the party should
-be blindfolded and sent into the kitchen garden, of course using every
-security against accident. The person sent must pull up a vegetable,
-and without shaking off the dirt from the roots, bring it back with
-him. Should it have a great quantity of mould hanging to its roots,
-that is a sure sign whoever has it will make a wealthy marriage.
-If, on the contrary, there is but little mould, he will make a poor
-marriage. If the vegetable is tall and well shapen, this proves he
-will marry a tall, beautiful girl. If, however, the vegetable is short
-and crooked, he will marry a short and homely girl. If a vegetable is
-brought in without any roots, the person bringing it will be a bachelor
-or old maid.
-
-Care should be taken in the playing of this game to prevent the house
-and clothing from getting dirty; therefore be watchful and hold the
-vegetable you bring at arm’s length.
-
-The best place to decide the vegetable’s shape, mould, etc., would be
-in the kitchen, or on the piazza. If the latter is enclosed, lamps
-could be carried out there, if not, possibly the light from the windows
-and hall way would be sufficient; or try a lantern.
-
-
-_The Divining Mirror._
-
-Hold an unpeeled apple in the right hand and a lighted candle in the
-left, while you stand in an empty, unlighted room before a mirror.
-
-Then you must eat the apple and watch sharp, for you are to see your
-future husband’s or wife’s face in the mirror. The face will appear
-over your left shoulder.
-
-This game is also part trick, as fairy folk are apt to be famous
-tricksters and therefore not very trustworthy, especially if it is
-after dark.
-
-One of the boys will likely have stolen back of you, disguised with a
-false face. He has reached you on his hands and knees, and when all
-of a sudden he rises, you will be so startled that it will be an easy
-matter for him to escape without detection. Or a girl could do the same
-as a boy.
-
-In order to more fully cover one’s tracks, it would be well for the
-tricking player to blow out the candle as he appears over the shoulder.
-This, too, will partly conceal the features, for puckered lips and eyes
-fixed steadily on the flame will not look natural.
-
-
-_The Tumbler Test._
-
-Fill three tumblers with water. One must hold blue water, such as
-the laundress uses for clothes, another must hold soapy water,
-and another clear water, while still another must be empty. These
-tumblers should stand on a table directly before the individual who
-is to be blindfolded. After he is blindfolded, change the position of
-the glasses, placing one where the other one stood, and so on. Then
-instruct the party to dip his fingers into one of the tumblers. Having
-felt around, his fingers are dipped into the clear water, and thus he
-learns that he is to marry a beautiful rich girl. Had he dipped into
-the soapy water, it would have meant that he would marry a poor widow;
-if in the blue water, he would be a noted author; if in the empty
-glass, he would die a bachelor. This game is played in the same way
-with the girls, only, of course, changing the sex, as, for example,
-marrying a rich, handsome man.
-
-
-_The Penknife Trick._
-
-Before leaving the room state that while you are away any one may place
-a pen-knife where he may please, and without any word being spoken you
-will find it.
-
-Of course you have a confederate, who remains behind and notices where
-the knife has been put.
-
-When you enter, walk towards one of the corners in the room; if your
-confederate is looking up, you will know you are in the right corner,
-but if he is looking down you must try another. If you notice he is not
-looking up when you have tried all the corners, then walk towards the
-centre of the room, and between the corners; at one of these points
-he will raise his eyes. In this way, you will get the location. You
-must then diligently search, and when your confederate lets something
-drop on the floor you will know you are _very close_ to the penknife.
-Sometimes it is in a person’s pocket; for that reason watch just the
-moment when your friend has given you the clue. Possibly your hand may
-be on some one’s shoulder; this would indicate to search that person.
-
-
-_Ball Trick._
-
-A girl must take a ball of rose-colored worsted and toss it out in the
-garden as far as she can. She must be careful, however, not to lose
-hold of the end of the worsted. Then she should walk up and down the
-parlor or piazza, winding the worsted up; as she walks she sings,
-
- Who holds my thread? Who holds my clue?
- For he loves me and I him too.
-
-All of a sudden, if the game is properly played, the worsted will
-refuse to come. If the worsted breaks in her exertion to wind it, she
-will never marry; but she should keep firm hold and wind slowly, and in
-time will thus surely reach the person who has caught the other end.
-This individual is to be her future husband. Generally the “husband”
-part is a trick, for some one will hold the worsted that she would
-never marry; for example, a boy many years her junior, or her old
-grandfather, or brother. This game being played for the same reason as
-many another, “only for fun.”
-
-
-_The Fortune Apple._
-
-On several pieces of wood, thin as paper, write, in ink or paint,
-girls’ names. Slip each name into an apple. This set will do for the
-boys; make similar ones for the girls. Fill three portable tubs with
-water, and set an even number of apples floating in each tub. Fasten
-the arms of three boys securely back, and cover them entirely with
-water-proof cloaks. Lead each boy to a tub and ask him to repeat
-distinctly,
-
- Witches and wizards and birds of the air,
- Goblins and brownies, all lend me your care,
- Now to choose wisely for once and for all,
- And ever your names in praise loudly I’ll call.
-
-Then each boy must put his head down and try to catch in his teeth an
-apple. In it he’ll find the name of one of the girls present, and she
-will be his fate. If the name is a strange one, there will even then be
-teasing enough for him. After the boys have all tried the game, then it
-is time for the girls.
-
-Lead a girl up to a tub and blindfold her; lead her around while she
-repeats the rhyme, and with the words “loudly I call,” she must bend
-down and try to catch in one hand an apple or, if she prefers, she may
-try to spear an apple with a fork. If the latter way, only one drop of
-the fork will be allowed. If it sticks far enough in an apple not to
-fall altogether, her fate is sure.
-
-
-_The Money-Maker._
-
-This is one of the large number of trick games, and like all the others
-it is very easy when you know how. It is played by two people, both of
-whom understand the trick, and it should be the effort of the company
-to discover as soon as is possible what that trick is. When the trick
-is discovered the game is simple. To prove that you know it, you
-should take the place of one of the players. If the game then goes on
-satisfactorily you are out, but the others remain in until they either
-give up or learn the secret also.
-
-The money-maker leaves the room and on his return his confederate
-will ask him questions. His answer will prove to the company that he
-understands which business, trade or profession they have decided he
-must enter in order to make money.
-
-The secret is easy to discover if you are on the alert; it is the first
-business named after a question which has commenced with the letter O
-or which contains the exclamation oh! Example:
-
-The company have decided that the one who has left the room must be a
-publisher.
-
-“Will you be an organ grinder?”
-
-“No, I thank you.”
-
-“Will you be a physician?”
-
-“I would not like night work.”
-
-“How would you like farming?”
-
-“Not at all.”
-
-“Oh, I know! you’d like to be a tailor.”
-
-“But I know I wouldn’t.”
-
-“Well, will you be a publisher?”
-
-“Just the thing.”
-
-
-CHRISTMAS JOLLITY.
-
-
-_The Yule Log._
-
-Young people should costume themselves in grotesque apparel. They may
-be Twelfth Night characters, Viola, Olivia, Sir Andrew Aguecheek, Sir
-Toby, Sebastian, sea-captains, lords, priests, officers, musicians,
-etc., or assume any disguise indicative of Christmas.
-
-Early in the evening, several of the company should disappear, but with
-great hilarity return, drawing in the Yule log. This is nothing more or
-less than a rugged log. Knotted at each end with long strong ropes, by
-which it is pulled. As the young people draw it they should sing,
-
- Welcome be ye that are here,
- Welcome all and make good cheer;
- Welcome all another year,
- Welcome Yule.
-
-This verse should be sung over and over until the Yule log lies on the
-hearthstone.
-
-
-_Christmas Pie._
-
-Two people, each wearing interesting costume, and with masked faces,
-walk in, rolling before them on a wheelbarrow an enormous pie. It is
-made after the fashion of a Jack Horner pie, being in a deep dish
-covered with diamond-dusted white paper, with tiny ribbons exposed.
-
-The first performance is to roll the pie all around the room, and then
-to the centre, where they will sing,
-
- Who’ll have a bird from this Christmas pie?
- Whoever guesses me may answer I.
-
-For a few minutes all the company keep quite still, then the guessing
-commences; when the correct names are mentioned, the couple unmask, and
-at once the correct guesser draws a ribbon. He will find on the end of
-it a candy bird,—perhaps a robin redbreast made of candy and stuffed
-with sugarplums. As soon as the bird is drawn, one of the parties who
-has rolled in the wheelbarrow imitates a bird-song on a harmonica.
-This is easily effected without discovery, as everybody’s attention is
-directed to what has been drawn.
-
-
-_Tableaux Vivants._
-
-A catchy tableau series would be Mother Goose and her children
-celebrating Christmas.
-
-_Tableau First._—Mother Goose in her tall, cone-shaped hat, riding on
-an enormous goose. Copy her and all the other costumes from Mother
-Goose’s book.
-
-_Tableau Second._—Her children faithfully charactered. Little Jack
-Horner should be sitting in a corner, eating his Christmas pie. The
-King in his parlor should be dressed to represent a king. Simple Simon
-should meet a pieman going to the fair, etc.
-
-_Tableau Third._—A sleeping apartment, Mother Goose and her family in
-bed. Great prominence must be shown to Mother Goose, whose bed is in
-front, and near her some of her more notable children. This scene may
-be readily arranged by putting small cots on the stage; the children
-can lie down dressed, the coverlets hiding their clothing. Near each
-bed put that which would indicate their character, as example, the big
-pie for the pieman.
-
-_Tableau Fourth._—Santa Claus at home about time to start. Interior of
-a room, simply packed with all sorts of hobby-horses, dolls—big and
-little, dressed and undressed—musical birds, woolly sheep, sleighs,
-drums, tenpins, everything in the toy line that could be imagined or
-described; while in a large easy-chair before the lighted grate-fire
-sits old Santa himself, as gray-bearded, fat, and jolly as ever.
-
-_Tableau Fifth._—Little Bo-Peep fell fast asleep and dreamed—
-
-Show Santa Claus again, this time out-of-doors, on his sled drawn by
-swift reindeer; but the reindeer have stopped, for Bo-Peep stands
-before them, her shepherd’s crook leaning over her shoulder, her sheep
-all around, and they, as also Bo-Peep, gazing at the presents—sled,
-Santa Claus’s pack, at hat, beard, miniature tree, full stockings, and
-all. Bo-Peep wears a regular shepherdess costume, the sheep are toy
-sheep on wheels. The bells should jingle loudly until Bo-Peep appears.
-
-_Tableau Sixth._—The Christmas tree.
-
-A large tree filled with toys; leaning against it is a ladder, which
-Mother Goose climbs, and then unfastens the various gifts. Her children
-are all grouped around the bottom, and impatiently await the arrival of
-their presents.
-
-_Tableau Seventh._—The Christmas dance.
-
-Mother Goose and her children dance around the Christmas tree. Waltz
-music is played; they dance once around, when the curtain is drawn.
-
-_Tableau Eighth._—Mother Goose’s children eating their Christmas
-supper. A long table covered with a white cloth, and decorated with
-lighted candelabra, flowers, bonbons, fancy cakes, china, silver, and
-cut glass. All the children are seated around, Mother Goose at the
-head, and to her right her son Jack, then Jack’s wife, then a boy, then
-a girl, and so on around. Each child is in the act of eating, drinking,
-lifting a cup, a candy, or indicating some natural movement at a supper
-table; their heads should be turned as though they were in conversation.
-
-_Tableau Ninth._—Mother Goose and her family in a well-arranged group
-now stand and sing a jolly good-night song. This song may be acted by
-those on the stage, but the singing is done by an unseen chorus.
-
-Follow this with two tableaux, opposite in meaning.
-
-_Tableau One._—The empty stocking. A poverty-stricken looking room—bare
-floor, a hard-wood chair and table (on the table stand a few pieces of
-cheap china), a window with a broken pane, in which a bunch of paper or
-canton matting is stuffed to keep out the snow; a small kerosene lamp,
-the light from which comes dimly. A poorly clad and as poorly fed
-appearing little girl; one of her thin hands rests on the table, while
-the other holds an empty stocking, on which the child sadly gazes.
-
-_Tableau Two._—Bless you honey-bugs! Yo’ feels gay.
-
-This also is a plainly furnished room, but it is trimmed with Christmas
-greens, a large star and tree being particularly conspicuous. There
-are several colored children running around, some dancing, with toys
-in one hand and a full stocking in the other, others taking things
-off a little tree, others again eating sugarplums, or striding across
-the bare floor in eager pursuit of a dropped cornucopia or cinnamon
-cake. Their dusky-faced mammies, meanwhile, laugh at them through the
-half-open doorway.
-
-And thus tableau might be described after tableau. But a few hints may
-be helpful.
-
-Carefully study scenic effect. “How beautiful!” is so often the
-exclamation regarding a well-dressed stage, even before any person
-appears or one word is spoken. Remember to use harmonizing colors, and
-to throw on different-colored lights. The latter may cost a little
-money, but it will repay a hundredfold. A white light changing to pink,
-again to yellow, rose or green, as the scenery may require. In every
-way catch the eye.
-
-Remember, the tableau is but for a minute; let that minute be
-perfection.
-
-Sometimes, for example, let a fountain play in the large grounds or
-garden. This can be easily arranged by the proper management of a hose.
-You can surely place a piece of oilcloth under the moss over which the
-water flows, and have sponges conveniently near.
-
-Be careful to select pretty and noticeable toilettes. If you are taking
-the character of a queen at a drawing-room, dress as the queen, not as
-her maid; but should you be a maid, wear jaunty, gay attire, and do not
-costume yourself in a severely cut brown-cloth tailor suit.
-
-Use all the accessories possible—music, song, recitation, as either may
-be given off the stage as an accompaniment to a tableau. Be sure there
-is no catch in the stage curtain, and that the prompter understands all
-his duties. Every one should be punctual at rehearsals; and the night
-of the entertainment all the cast should be ready thirty minutes ahead
-of time, as that will prevent worry and nervousness. And if everybody
-is calm, and understands his part, there is no question as to success.
-
-“The Birds’ Christmas Carol” would make a pleasing tableau.
-
-
-_The Annunciation._
-
- The angel greets the Virgin mild;
- Hail, Mary, full of grace! thy child
- The Son of God shall be.
-
-This tableau represents an interior: the room has a deep frieze drapery
-over the mantel, before which Mary kneels on a low cushion; to her
-left, and considerably before her, is a large jardinière filled with
-ascension lilies; and directly before her is a table, on which is a
-roll of parchment partly unfastened. By the table stands the angel with
-hands outstretched towards her.
-
-_Tableau Second._—The shepherds see the angels bright.
-
-Scene out of doors, with shepherds in their usual costume, each
-shepherd holding a crook, while back of them, huddled close together,
-stand the herds of sheep. Before the shepherds, and a trifle to their
-right, is the angel, with outstretched hands, indicating the way.
-
-
-BIRTHDAY IDEAS.
-
-
-_A Birthday Picnic._
-
-A pleasant number is twenty. Ten girls and ten boys.
-
-Be driven to the destination in large market or hay wagons made festive
-with flags. Each girl should bring luncheon enough for herself and
-one of the boys. And the boys should be responsible for the outfit
-for games, such as ropes, archery, grace hoops, tennis net, balls and
-racquets.
-
-If you are not going to a regular picnic ground, you will require
-tables. Therefore borrow five cutting tables from your mothers and
-these can be folded and put in the bottom of the wagon, and four
-persons can easily sit at each. The boys can arrange the seats, which
-might be the wagon seats built to the requisite height by supporting
-each end on a pile of stones, or convenient rocks may be chosen, or
-take the rails from the post-and-rail fence adjoining. Only in that
-case, remember to put them back again.
-
-Use plated spoons, forks, etc., so as to save worry, and Japanese
-napkins, which may do double duty, as they make pretty tablecloths,
-and there is no fuss about having to carry them home. If you take
-sandwiches, wrap them neatly in white tissue or waxed paper. Use thin
-wooden platters instead of china, and no one will be afraid of chipping
-them; besides they are so light, and after luncheon they, as also the
-napkins and tablecloths, may be burned up, if you are careful not to
-set the woods on fire.
-
-You might find it pleasant to put the lunches, wraps, etc., in one
-wagon, and have all the picnickers in the other. Trusty drivers for
-both wagons will be necessary.
-
-After the lunch is over and cleared away, games and races will be the
-order of the day.
-
-But don’t forget you must be home by sundown. When all have bundled
-into the wagons to return, let song follow song. One of the big boys
-might act as director of the chorus.
-
-
-_A Birthday Floral Ball._
-
-The entire house, including the halls, should be trimmed with asparagus
-and Japanese lanterns. From the drawing-room ceilings suspend inverted
-cones of asparagus, and as pendants from these fasten Japanese
-lanterns. String evergreens around the stair banisters and halls.
-Indeed, make of your house, including the dining-room, a sort of fairy
-bower, on which the Japanese lanterns at happy intervals, cast light
-and color.
-
-The orchestra should be hidden in a tiny forest, and their music should
-be jolly, light and pretty. Among the numbers have the “Dance of the
-Flowers,” by Tschaikowsky. Follow this with several flower dances.
-Example, “The Sweet Peas Waltz.” The girls’ costume should be white
-tarletan, effectively trimmed with sweet peas. The boys should have
-sweet pea boutonnières.
-
-The Pansy Cotillion. For this dance wear crêpe lisse, tarletan,—indeed
-any flimsy material you choose, but it must be of one of the pansy
-colors; and as the pansy has so many shades of brown, yellow, purple,
-deep rose, etc., the variety which would mingle, as the several figures
-are given, would result in a kaleidoscopic effect of color and beauty.
-
-Perhaps a few solo dances could be arranged. If so have a Cowslip
-dance, when the little maiden should be frocked in pale yellow, or
-the Heliotrope, with a frock of lilacs. Another might dance the
-Forget-me-not, and wear a gown of blue.
-
-While still another dance might be termed the Water-Lily, which
-would necessitate a frock of white and gold, as the blue and pink
-water-lilies are comparatively rare. Whichever flower is represented
-should be worn, either on the hair or dress.
-
-Then should come the Wild Flower Minuet when daisies, buttercups,
-clover, chicory, violets, honeysuckle, and other wild flowers could vie
-with each other in the stately graceful movements. Follow the minuet
-with the Butterfly promenade and dance. In this a large number should
-engage, as it is quite proper there should be butterflies flitting from
-flower to flower. Any dance may be appropriated to the butterflies,
-but they should select their own partners from any of the flowers
-they please. The butterflies will wear almost as many colors as the
-pansies, and silver, gold or other butterflies should be fastened on
-the shoulders or on other parts of their costume.
-
-
-_A Birthday Matinée._
-
-The afternoon may be made perfectly fascinating by giving a birthday
-matinée. A young lady should costume herself as Little Buttercup
-of _Pinafore_ fame. Wear a large hat, grotesquely ornamented, short
-parti-colored skirts, and above all things carry a well-filled market
-basket. She should sing Little Buttercup’s song, and also act and
-dance. As the whole thing is a burlesque, it need not be correctly
-done, only be sure to get some graceful girl to take the part, and one
-who will bring out the laughter by her bits of humor here and there.
-If the party is for children, the basket should contain inexpensive
-toys, and when singing, “I’ve ribbons and laces, to set off your
-faces,” waltz up to a group of children and distribute the toys.
-Continue this when singing the chorus, as also during the playing of
-the interludes, until each child has a gift. Should the party be for
-older people, instead of toys give suggestive presents. Example, a
-whip to a horsewoman, or a tiny pair of oars to a rower. The music is
-from the opera _Pinafore_ and can be purchased or mailed from almost
-any bookstore. When people are through laughing over this part of the
-programme, tell them that confectioners’ buttercups are hidden in the
-drawing-room, library and hall; that they are in three colors,—violet,
-white, and pink,—and that all of the guests are expected to hunt for
-them; that a bell will be rung as a signal to commence the hunt, and in
-like manner to close it; that five minutes time will be allowed. Three
-prizes will be awarded; the first to be given to the finder of the most
-pink buttercups, the second to the one finding the greatest number of
-buttercups adding all the colors together, the third to the one finding
-the fewest. Should any one be so unfortunate as not to find any, his
-penalty will be to pay a forfeit. If this individual is a musician,
-his forfeit should be a song or an instrumental solo, or should he be
-a recitationist, he must read or recite, if neither of these, require
-him to put himself through a key-hole. This is done by writing the
-word “himself” on a small piece of paper, rolling it over until still
-smaller and slipping it through the key-hole. You will require two
-pounds of buttercups, dividing that amount in the colors mentioned.
-Roll each candy separately in tissue paper, corresponding in color, and
-hide with care. If for a children’s party, place _bric-à-brac_ and all
-breakable articles beyond their reach, and direct the little people so
-as to avoid accidents.
-
-
-BIRTHDAY TABLEAUX.
-
-
-_Tulips._
-
-Group the children so that they look pretty. They could wear green
-clothes to represent stalk and leaves, and have large, colored-paper
-petals fastened to their waists, and with wire shaped and bent upward
-they would look like veritable tulips. Then a few others could, in a
-previous tableau, show the act of planting tulip bulbs and watering
-some growing tulips.
-
-
-_The Cotillon._
-
-Eight girls and boys should be dressed in Knickerbocker attire, and
-stand as if ready for the first figure of the Cotillon.
-
-This tableau should be set in a drawing-room.
-
-
-_Flitting Fairies and Butterflies._
-
-Gay music is heard and in come the fairies dancing, followed by a train
-of dancing butterflies, costumed in red, yellow, and white.
-
-The wings may be of tinted crêpe paper or tarletan held in place by
-stiff wire.
-
-The fairies should wear short fluffy gowns of airy gossamer, heavily
-covered with spangles and diamond dust. With each movement they must
-glimmer and glisten.
-
-The scene may be set in any pretty drawing room, but more properly with
-a background of palms and potted plants.
-
-
-
-
-METHODS OF CHOOSING PARTNERS.
-
-
-Pass baskets of flowers to the ladies. Enough bunches have been
-prepared and laid in the baskets for each one of the ladies. On a tray
-are bunches of leaves and vines; pass these to the men.
-
-The leaves will match the flowers, as a bunch of pansies will have a
-corresponding bunch of pansy leaves, a bunch of lilies of the valley
-its bunch of lily leaves, etc., etc. Where roses are used, a bud
-matching the rose may be put with the leaves, or better, the ribbon
-tying a bunch of rose leaves, might match the rose it is supposed to
-go with. Of course, the pansy-leaf man will hunt out the lady with
-pansies; and the lily-leaf man, the maid with the lilies.
-
-Take bristol-board and cut it in small pieces, the size and shape of
-large rose petals. Tint these pink with a bit of yellow on the narrow
-end, where the petal is supposed to have left the rose. Write in gilt
-paint on each of them a word, any noun, verb, adjective, etc. Then
-bend and twist in the fingers until they look like veritable Katherine
-Mermet or La France petals. Have enough so that each girl invited may
-have one.
-
-Take more bristol-board and make deep red petals; on these write with
-gilt paint a part of speech, noun, verb, adverb, etc. Make enough to
-supply each man.
-
-These at the time of entertainment should be passed just before you
-wish the partners chosen. Then the man whose petal reads _adverb_ will
-seek among the pink-petaled girls until he finds an adverb.
-
-Of course, in a large company there will be several nouns and several
-adverbs. But the noun man will of course offer his arm to the first
-pink noun he finds. Be sure to have the petals match. If you must have
-five red petals reading _verb_, be sure to have an equal number of pink
-verb petals, e. g. pink petals reading _play_, _dance_, _sing_, _run_,
-_talk_.
-
-Have two baskets, one knotted with pink ribbon and the other with red.
-These baskets should each contain paper hearts, about three inches
-long, and wide in proportion. The hearts may be suspended by means of
-narrow pink satin ribbons, and each heart is slightly decorated with
-water-color paints. In the same basket no two hearts are alike, but
-their duplicates are found in the other basket. When the duplicates are
-found, partners are decided.
-
- * * * * *
-
-Have two bags of walnuts. One is to be passed to the girls, the other
-to the boys. To each walnut a tiny slip of paper has been glued,
-on which half of a familiar quotation is written. One half of the
-quotations are in the girls’ bag, the other half in the boys.’ The
-girls’ bag is passed first. When the boy is able to complete his
-quotation, he discovers his partner.
-
- * * * * *
-
-When an equal number of boys and girls are present, for example, ten
-each, mark ten slips of paper according to the numerals, 1, 2, and so
-on. Then throw them into a bag and jostle them together. After which
-pass to the girls. They should each draw one paper.
-
-When the girls have drawn, offer slips of paper in the same manner to
-the boys, who will draw likewise. Corresponding numbers are partners.
-
-
-
-
-TANGLES AND FORFEITS.
-
-
-TANGLES.
-
-
-Charades.
-
- 1. When I go gunning
- I’m very bright.
- And it’s my delight
- To keep good sight.
- When I go fishing
- I like to hook,
- And when I sift
- A pretty book,
- I help our seamstress and our cook,
- Then all around the room I look
- And think of all I’ve undertook.
-
-
-Second.
-
- I’m beating America,
- So folks say,
- As through the air
- My horses tear,
- And snap, snap, snap,
- I cannot hold them back.
-
-
-Whole.
-
- Black and sweeping,
- Swimming and weeping,
- So wet, so tender,
- Sometimes the scorning of’t
- Others the sorrow of’t,
- Lifting so joyfully,
- Drooping so coyly.
-
- 2. My first shouts freely in,
- My second’s a pretty letter,
- My third a valiant instrument.
- But my fourth, alas,
- Just has to pass,
- As wound and scar,
- From beauty’s law it doth debar,
- For it doth seal and hurt and mar.
-
- 3. My first comes over the sea,
- And delicious it is to me,
- My second of use to draw,
- And of variety score upon score,
- My whole has letters six,
- And while the clock ticks, ticks,
- I am sure you’ll guess my name,
- For I’ve told you very plain.
-
- 4. I am a word of five letters,
- And a torment to my betters,
- My first and last are alike they say,
- My second and fourth the same trick play.
- My three middle letters
- Come every one’s way
- And make a brief stay,
- On all alike,
- Just before night.
-
-
-ANAGRAMS.
-
- 1. Cover no sin.
- 2. Tim N. may gain.
- 3. Go nurse.
- 4. Train on time.
- 5. Claim a part, G.
- 6. A mad girl.
- 7. ’Tis veteran Mylo, D.
- 8. A rude song.
- 9. Any one can.
- 10. Thomas rap again.
-
-
-CROSS-WORD ENIGMAS.
-
- 1. My first is in saddle, but not in pony;
- My second is in spaghetti, but not macaroni;
- My third is in water, but not in sand;
- My fourth is in Indian, but not in command;
- My fifth is in plank, but not in board;
- My sixth is in saving, but not in hoard;
- My seventh is in make, but not in lose;
- My eighth is in gaiters, but not in shoes;
- My ninth is in candle, but not in light;
- My tenth is in horses, but not in bite;
- My eleventh is in inch, but not in measure;
- My twelfth is in satin, but not in treasure;
- My thirteenth is in coke, but not in ton.
- My whole is a useful invention.
-
- 2. My first is in silent, but not in loud;
- My second is in alone, but not in crowd;
- My third is in example, but not in talk;
- My fourth is in buying, but not in bought;
- My fifth is in fancy, but not in reality;
- My sixth is in brains, but not in vanity;
- My seventh is in angels, but not in ghosts;
- My eighth is in goodness, but not in hoax;
- My ninth is in religion, but not in cant.
- My whole is the name of a useful plant.
-
- 3. My first is in lamb, but not in beef;
- My second is in mouth, but not in teeth;
- My third is in Neptune, but not in sea;
- My fourth is in steward, but not in me;
- My fifth is in slow, but not in fast;
- My sixth is in never, but not in last.
- My whole is a great city.
-
- 4. In house not in lawn,
- In take not in form,
- In lark not in sky,
- In toil not in try,
- In borrow not in lend,
- In tatters not in mend,
- In draught not in buy,
- In loaf not in pie,
- In page not in book,
- In novel not in took.
- My whole is a flower.
-
-
-NUMERICAL ENIGMAS.
-
- 1. I am composed of five letters.
- My 3, 2, 5, shows hindrance.
- My 4, 1, a part of speech.
- My whole is a Spartan title.
-
- 2. I am composed of twenty-seven letters.
- My 20, 16, 17, is a condition of atmosphere.
- My 14, 13, 26, 18, was a rich woman.
- My 1, 9, 25, 11, 10, is indicative of knowledge.
- My 6, 23, 24, 22, relative to curvature.
- My 8, 3, 4, 12, shows docility.
- My 19, 15, 7, 21, is a girl’s name.
- My 2, 27,—5, Insert a letter in the blank space and you’ll
- have the end.
- My whole is a proverb.
-
- 3. I am composed of nine letters.
- My 4, 2, 6, 5, is a space.
- My 3, 8, 1, is a quick inclination.
- My 7, 9, with one of the letters doubled indicates comfort.
- My whole is a flower.
-
- 4. I am composed of eight letters.
- My 7, 4, 5, 3, is a kind of skin.
- My 6, 2, 8, represents a number.
- My 1 is a part of speech.
- My whole is an animal.
-
-
-DECAPITATIONS.
-
-1. Behead a stream of water, and leave a bird like a crow, behead a
-carpenter’s tool and leave a passage, behead a section of a carriage
-and leave the hind part of a section of the body, behead an edible fish
-and leave a multitude.
-
-2. Behead a supplication and leave light, behead a short time and leave
-a hide, behead a covering and leave relations, behead a relative and
-leave something different.
-
-3. Behead a wading bird and leave a wooer, behead to charge and leave
-one that is unsound, behead a dance and leave a fish, behead an officer
-and leave a verb.
-
-4. Behead a weapon of war and leave a fruit, behead an ensign and leave
-a unit, behead a low, flat-built vessel, and leave a narrow passage,
-behead a ruminating animal and leave a plant and its seed.
-
-
-DROP-LETTER RIDDLES.
-
- 1. -h- w-s -u-h -u-e -o -o-z?
- 2. -h- w-l-e- o- e-r-h,
- -h- t-l-e- o- e-r-h,
- -h- r-b-k-d - m-n -o- s-n;
- -h-’s -o- o- e-r-h,
- -h-’s -o- i- h-a-e-,
- -o- l-k-l- t- g-t -n.
- 3. -h- d-d -d-m -i-e -h- a-p-e -v- g-v- h-m?
- 4. -h-t -i- a-a- f-r-t -e- i- t-e -a-d-n -f -d-n?
- 5. -h- a-e -d-m -n- e-e -n -n-m-l- i- g-a-m-r?
- 6. -o- d-d -o-h -r-s- h-s -a-r -n -h- a-k?
-
-
-DROP-LETTER PUZZLES.
-
- 1. M-K- H-Y -H-L- T-E -U- S-I-E-.
- 2. -a-l- -o -e- -n- -a-l- -o -i-e,
- -a-e- -e- -e-l-h-, -e-l-h-, -n- -i-e.
- 3. -o -o -h- -n- -ho- -luggar-, -onside- -e- -ay- -n- -e -is-.
- 4. -i-t-e -l-n- i- h-p-i-e-s -e-o-.
-
-
-OPENING LINES OF FAMILIAR SONG.
-
- 1. Ho odtn’ uyo eeerrmmb twese eclai ebblton,
- Etswe claei ihwt iahr os rnbwo;
- Esh pwte tiwh gdtheil hwne uoy aevg ehr a eimls
- Dan lteredmb hiwt aefr ta uyro wrfno.
-
- 2. Hte peehtnla own esog urdon,
- Eht dnba gsiben ot aypl,
- Teh ybso aer daunor hte ykmeno gcea,
- U’oyd treebt ekpe ywaa.
-
- 3. I aeddr eht yad u’yllo gftore em grreeiamtu
- Nda lilst i okwn ti oosn lwli ecmo,
- Het iteesvf aecdn, eht ihcr teh yga,
- Os fetfrdnei rmof rou emho umeegairrt.
-
-
-ANSWERS TO CHARADES, ANAGRAMS, ETC.
-
-
-_Charades._
-
- 1. Eyelash.
- 2. Independent.
- 3. Teapot.
- 4. Level.
-
-
-_Anagrams._
-
- 1. Conversion.
- 2. Magnanimity.
- 3. Surgeon.
- 4. Termination.
- 5. Pragmatical.
- 6. Madrigal.
- 7. Demonstratively.
- 8. Dangerous.
- 9. Annoyance.
- 10. Phantasmagoria.
-
-
-_Cross-word Enigmas._
-
- 1. Sewing-machine.
- 2. Saxifrage.
- 3. London.
- 4. Heliotrope.
-
-
-_Numerical Enigmas._
-
- 1. Helot.
- 2. A soft answer turneth away wrath.
- 3. Dandelion.
- 4. Antelope.
-
-
-_Decapitations._
-
- 1. Brook, rook; 2, plane, lane; 3, wheel, heel, trout, rout.
- 2. Pray, ray; 2, spell, pell; 3, skin, kin; 4, mother, other.
- 3. 1, plover, lover; 2, blame, lame; 3, reel, eel; 4, mate, ate.
- 4. 1. Spear, pear. 2. Mace, ace. 3. Galley, alley. 4. Goats, oats.
-
-
-_Drop Letter Riddles._
-
- 1. Why was Ruth rude to Boaz?
- Because she trod on his corns, and pulled his ears.
- 2. She walked on earth,
- She talked on earth,
- She rebuked a man for sin;
- She’s not on earth,
- She’s not in heaven,
- Nor likely to get in.
- Balaam’s Ass.
-
- 3. Why did Adam bite the apple Eve gave him?
- Because he had no knife.
-
- 4. What did Adam first set in the Garden of Eden?
- His foot.
-
- 5. Why are Adam and Eve an anomaly in grammar?
- Because they are two relatives without an antecedent.
-
- 6. How did Noah dress his hair in the Ark?
- With the fox’s brush and the cock’s comb.
-
-
-_Drop Letter Puzzles._
-
- 1. Make hay while the sun shines.
- 2. Early to bed and early to rise, makes men healthy, wealthy,
- and wise.
- 3. Go to the ant, thou sluggard, consider her ways and be wise.
- 4. Virtue alone is happiness below.
-
-
-_The Opening Lines of Familiar Songs._
-
- 1. “Oh! don’t you remember sweet Alice, Ben Bolt,
- Sweet Alice, with hair so brown;
- She wept with delight when you gave her a smile,
- And trembled with fear at your frown.”
-
- 2. “The elephant now goes round,
- The band begins to play,
- The boys are around the monkey
- cage, You’d better keep away.”
-
- 3. “I dread the day you’ll forget me, Marguerite,
- And still I know it soon will come.
- The festive dance, the rich, the gay,
- So different from our home, Marguerite.”
-
-
-_Forfeits._
-
-The exacting of forfeits for tardiness or failure in the playing of
-games will usually lead to as much amusement as the games themselves.
-
-Those who subject themselves to forfeiture may give a trivial article
-just as satisfactorily as an expensive one, or they may simply write
-their names on a slip of paper, and hand that to the person in charge.
-Each player is bound to redeem his name.
-
-At the conclusion of the game the host, or any individual he may
-appoint (provided that person has no forfeits), collects all and puts
-them out of sight of the audience, and commencing with the one at his
-right, he takes the players in turn.
-
-That party now sits down and the one in charge holding over his head
-one of the trinkets or whatever the object may be, says: “What a jolly
-thing! What a smart, pretty thing! What will the owner do?”
-
-The party in the chair inquires, “Does it belong to a lady, or to a
-gentleman?” He is at once answered correctly and then responds by
-advising a difficult or ridiculous performance. The individual who owns
-the forfeit must now perform what has been advised. As soon as the
-party has redeemed his pledge, another forfeit is redeemed after the
-same method, and so on, one by one, until all articles are returned to
-their owners. Each forfeit is naturally redeemed amid peals of laughter.
-
-The following may prove helpful to those who have to declare penalties.
-
-1. Fold a piece of note-paper in the shape of a fish.
-
-2. Say, Quizzical Quiz, sister Smith, five times running without
-drawing a breath.
-
-3. Count twenty backwards without smiling.
-
-4. Mention five synonyms for the word, Jabber.
-
- (Chatter, gabble, mumble, prate, prattle.)
-
-5. Repeat three times without a mistake:—
-
- David Daldron dreamed he drove a dragon,
- Did David Daldron dream he drove a dragon?
- If David Daldron dreamed he drove a dragon,
- Where’s the dragon David Daldron dreamed he drove?
-
-6. Repeat the following lines twice,
-
- Oliver Ogilvie ogled an olive and oyster,
- Did Oliver Ogilvie ogle an olive and oyster?
- If Oliver Ogilvie ogled an olive and oyster
- Where is the olive and oyster Oliver Ogilvie ogled?
-
-7. Touch the features while you solemnly recite,
-
- Here sits the Lord Mayor, forehead.
- Here sit his two men, eyes.
- Here sits the cock, right cheek.
- Here sits the hen, left cheek.
- Here sits the little chickens, tip of nose.
- Here they run in, the mouth.
- Chinchopper, chinchopper, chinchopper, chin! Chuck the chin.
-
-8. Repeat the alphabet similar to example.
-
- A was an archer, and shot at a frog,
- B was a butcher, and had a great dog.
- C was a captain, all covered with lace,
- D was a dunce with a very sad face.
- E was an esquire, with pride on his brow,
- F was a farmer and followed the plow.
- G was a gamester who had but ill luck,
- H was a hunter and hunted a buck.
- I was an innkeeper, who lov’d to house,
- J was a joiner, and built up a house.
- K was a king, so mighty and grand,
- L was a lady who had a white hand.
- M was a miser who hoarded up gold,
- N was a nobleman, gallant and bold.
- O was an oysterman, and went about town,
- P was a parson, and wore a black gown.
- Q was a quack with a wonderful pill,
- R was a robber, who wanted to kill.
- S was a sailor, and spent all he got,
- T was a tinker, and mended a pot.
- U was a usurer, a miserable elf,
- V was a vintner, who drank all himself.
- W was a watchman and guarded the door,
- X was expensive, and so became poor.
- Y was a youth, that did not love school,
- Z was a Zan, a poor, harmless fool.
-
-9. Sing to the tune of “Oats, Pease, Beans and Barley grows.”
-
- Tom he was a piper’s son,
- He learned to play when he was young;
- But all the tune that he could play,
- Was “Over the hills and far away.”
- Now Tom with his pipe made such a noise,
- That he pleased both the girls and the boys,
- And they all stopped to hear him play
- Over the hills and far away.
- Tom with his pipe did play with such skill,
- That those who heard him could never stand still;
- Whenever they heard him they began to dance,
- Even pigs on their hind legs would after him prance.
- He met old Dame Trot with a basket of eggs,
- He used his pipe and she used her legs;
- She danced about till the eggs were all broke,
- She began to fret, but he laughed at the joke.
- He saw a cross fellow was beating an ass,
- Heavy laden with pots, pans, dishes and glass;
- He took out his pipe and played them a tune,
- And the jackass’s load was lightened full soon.
-
-10. Blow out a candle.
-
-The candle is rapidly flashed before the person to blow it out. If
-passed to and fro quick enough, it will afford much laughter before it
-is blown out.
-
-11. Stand on a chair and do just as you are bidden without laughing.
-
-12. Put a cord on the floor where you cannot step over it.
-
-(Put it against the wall.)
-
-13. Put two chairs back to back and take off your shoes and jump over
-them.
-
-This is only a trick, you take off your shoes and jump over _them_, not
-over the chairs.
-
-14. Act the part of a dumb servant. If it is a lady who is redeeming
-the forfeit, she must apply to a gentleman for a place, and if a
-gentleman, he applies to a lady. Whoever is engaging the servant asks
-seven questions, all of which are answered by dumb motions. Example:
-How do you dust? How do you sew? How do you open the hall door? How do
-you blacken boots? etc.
-
-15. Ask a question that cannot be answered in the negative.
-
-(The question is “What does Y E S spell?”)
-
-16. Give a conundrum unfamiliar to all.
-
-17. Dot and carry one.
-
-(Hold your ankle while you walk across the room.)
-
-18. Imitate a banjo player.
-
-19. Dance a blind lanciers.
-
-(Try this when a number of forfeits have to be redeemed. Eight people
-are blindfolded and led to position. Another of the company plays the
-lanciers. As those who are blindfolded will surely make ridiculous
-errors, everybody will heartily laugh. This forfeit creates much
-merriment.)
-
-20. Make a three-minute address, in which every word commences with the
-same letter.
-
-21. Tell who wrote the Star Spangled Banner.
-
-(Francis Scott Key.)
-
-22. Tell who wrote Home Sweet Home.
-
-(John Howard Payne.)
-
-23. Tell who wrote the Battle Hymn of the Republic.
-
-(Julia Ward Howe.)
-
-24. Walk out of the room with two legs but walk back with six.
-
-(When you return, bring a chair with you.)
-
-25. Give numerical poetry.
-
-Any verse that is familiar counting as example:
-
- Shuffle-Shoon (one) and (two) Amber-Locks (three)
- Sit (four) together (five) building (six) blocks (seven)
- Shuffle-Shoon (eight) is (nine) old (ten) and (eleven) gray (twelve)
- Amber-Locks (thirteen) a (fourteen) little (fifteen) child (sixteen)
- But (seventeen) together (eighteen) at (nineteen) their (twenty)
- play (twenty-one)
- Age (twenty-two) and (twenty-three) youth (twenty-four) are
- (twenty-five) reconciled (twenty-six)
- And (twenty-seven) with (twenty-eight) sympathetic (twenty-nine) glee
- (thirty)
- Build (thirty-one) their (thirty-two) castles (thirty-three) fair
- (thirty-four) to (thirty-five) see (thirty-six).
-
-26. Spread out a newspaper and stand two persons on it, so that they
-cannot possibly touch each other.
-
-(To accomplish this put the newspaper on the floor, half on one side of
-the door, and half on the other. A person stands on each piece, and the
-door is shut between them.)
-
-27. Sing one of the topical songs.
-
-28. Sing the scale backwards.
-
-29. Draw a picture of a bicycle race.
-
-30. Build a house with cards.
-
-31. Sew a hem.
-
-32. Repeat rapidly either of the following tongue twisters.
-
- Susan shineth shoes and socks; socks and shoes shines
- Susan. She ceaseth shining shoes and socks, for shoes
- and socks shock Susan.
-
- Strict, strong Stephen Stringer snared six sickly silky
- snakes.
-
- Swan swam over the sea; swim, swan, swim; swan swam
- back again; well swum swan.
-
- Six thick thistle sticks.
-
- Flesh of freshly fried flying fish.
-
- Give Grimes Jim’s great gilt gig whip.
-
-
-
-
-IN THE ADIRONDACKS.
-
-
-It was the last week of July, and the guests of a certain hotel,
-located amidst the pine and balsam of the famed Adirondack wilderness,
-were thrown into a flutter of excitement.
-
-It had been steadily raining for three days and nights, and now that
-the fourth day was nearing its close a golden light appeared in the
-west. The mirror-like surface of the lake before the hotel rapidly
-revealed the many shades of crimson red and deep gold, while fleecy
-clouds of pink and white merged into deeper tints.
-
-Every one was on the piazza, called there by an enthusiast to witness
-the beauty of it all. Every face smiled because the long storm was over
-at last, and there seemed a promise of radiant sunshine for to-morrow.
-
-Suddenly a voice from the north piazza called to a young gentleman who
-had been walking about with a rather dissatisfied air, “I hear wheels.
-Now for the excitement of an arrival.”
-
-It was only the waiting of a few moments, and two bay horses, much
-bespattered with mud and mire, drew the heavily built two-seated surrey
-to the hotel steps.
-
-Guests stood about by twos and threes, most of them with half-averted
-faces, not willing to openly show the inquisitive feeling that each
-possessed. However, many furtive glances were cast. Perhaps among the
-most searching, were those given by the dissatisfied young man.
-
-“Permit me, madam.” It was the proprietor’s voice, as he aided a
-tall, fair-skinned, stern and aristocratic-looking matron to alight,
-assisting her meanwhile to unfasten her travelling cloak, which had
-caught on a nail in the end of a seat. The lady slowly remarked, as her
-feet touched the horse block. “That nail has been rather too much in
-evidence.”
-
-By the matron’s side a young lady had sat. This fact had been observed
-by all the guests, before they had turned their heads away, and now
-that she too had left the carriage, her golden hair and soft hazel
-eyes were mentally remarked, as also her graceful carriage and elegant
-tailor-made gown.
-
-The proprietor, lifting one of the hand-satchels, leaving the umbrellas
-and other small luggage for the porter, led the way to the office.
-
-Then they hastily entered, and a few minutes later walked through the
-dimly-lighted corridor, for it was not yet dark enough to illuminate.
-
-“I reckon that girl has never been in the woods before,” said the
-dissatisfied man to his friend. For now, side by side, he and a young
-fellow about thirty strode slowly up and down, exchanging confidences
-and chatting in a desultory fashion.
-
-“She does not seem to the manner born, that’s a fact,” said the other,
-“but she’s an interesting type, and probably an addition to our house
-party.” He turned an interested face towards his friend and said:
-“There’s far more the flavor of Narragansett Pier or Bar Harbor about
-her than of the woods, or she may have come from Saratoga. We’ll not
-have to wait long to see, or I’m not a correct judge, but her mother
-may prove a formidable chaperon.”
-
-The mother and daughter, for their relationship was at once identified,
-some one having accommodatingly referred to the register, and reported
-information to the others, were not long in reappearing, and the young
-men, still walking back and forth, were not surprised to discover that
-their prediction was correct.
-
-“Maud, dear, how shall you exist here?” were the half-petulant words
-overheard as the mother languidly seated herself.
-
-“It will not be Saratoga, I confess. But isn’t that lake enchanting?”
-The girl’s face was very fair and bewitchingly amiable.
-
-“Yes, it is pretty. But shall you ever forget our trip to this hotel?
-Such roads!”
-
-Maud met her mother’s questioning eyes, then noting a middle-aged woman
-approaching them, with face full of kindly greeting, waited.
-
-“You are strangers,” were this lady’s first words, adding as she
-reached forth her hand: “I fear you will feel lonely and tired, after
-the long drive.”
-
-The mother at once extended her hand. Then the lady asked the girl,
-“Have you ever been in the woods before?”
-
-“Never, and my mother fears I shall not like it. It did seem lonely,
-the last drive through the pines,” and the sensitive mouth quivered
-ever so slightly, as she explained. “The drive up was so long, the
-roads so thickly wooded, and here,” with a half-frightened glance
-about, as though she feared a fox or a bear would cross the walk before
-her, “you have only the lake.”
-
-Without a word the lady laughed merrily, but hastily checked herself.
-“I promise you that if you will only join in our sports you will find
-that there is much here besides the lake. Though,” coyly scanning her,
-“the lake has its amusements, fishing, boating. Oh, the gentlemen here
-will be delighted to introduce you to it.”
-
-Maud’s mother looked both surprised and confused. The lady continued,
-as though she noted her not. “You will find the camps about the
-lake quite as entertaining as Saratoga’s Floral Fête, or indeed any
-fashionable watering-place amusement.”
-
-“Camps? I don’t quite understand,” Maud’s mother remarked, with a
-touch of bitterness in her tone, for the darkening wood about, now that
-night was coming fast, made her slow to relent. It was strange she had
-chosen to come to such a spot.
-
-“I think one has to visit these camps to understand,” the lady
-explained. “But you will always find them hospitable, furnishing
-afternoon tea every day you care to call. And some days there are
-special _fêtes_, full of pleasant surprises, when amusements such as
-the thimble game and proverbs are played, at which prizes are sometimes
-offered as an added incentive. Last season the hostess of one of the
-camps gave a children’s party. There happened to be a few here that
-year, for children are a rarity in the Adirondacks. Of course their
-parents, uncles, aunts and cousins came, too. That entertainment has
-been talked about ever since. The party opened with the wild flower
-hunt. Small bouquets had been hidden among the balsam boughs, low
-enough for the little ones to reach; others were behind bushes or
-rocks. These bouquets were made up of clover, daisies and wild roses.
-Whichever child found the most wild roses received a prize.
-
-“This amusement was followed by the hunt for Cinderella’s Slipper. The
-successful one at this game also received a prize. After this, the
-hostess invited all the children into the balsam-covered lean-to, and
-told them a story about the old man of Humbug Mountain. Humbug Mountain
-towers just behind, you notice the tallest mountain over there, don’t
-you?” and the lady motioned to the left, as they faced the lake.
-
-“Yes, but what has reddened the trees so? Why, mother, did you ever see
-anything as beautiful?” and while pronouncing the word “beautiful,”
-Maud’s countenance was full of delight.
-
-“That is the afterglow,” the lady replied, but not waiting for further
-remark, she continued: “I was telling you about the old man of Humbug
-Mountain. The hostess explained to the children that sometimes he
-visited her camp, and when he did so he whistled, and that if he should
-whistle that afternoon, she would take the children back of the lean-to
-to see him. At that very moment a whistle clear and shrill was heard,
-and the children, already enamoured with the story, could scarcely
-be sufficiently restrained to allow the hostess to proceed. When the
-laughing, curious children ran behind the lean-to, sure enough, as had
-been promised, there was an old man. He was standing on a table. It was
-a dwarf skilfully arranged by two people.”
-
-“Oh that was it?” Maud interrupted, for she had listened intently, and
-was apparently as eager to discover the identity of the old man of
-Humbug Mountain, as had been the children of the party, and then she
-added: “I happen to know about that, for I was part of a dwarf once,”
-and with a wise little shake of her head explained, “It is arranged by
-two people.”
-
-“Yes, and is it not capital?”
-
-“Fine, when it is well done,” and Maud who was already feeling at home
-with her companion, added: “And of course the dwarf from the mountain
-would be well done.”
-
-“Indeed he was. He told short, witty stories, laughed, danced and
-capered to the children’s great delight. They would clap their hands
-for joy. It was a rare sight for the grown-ups to watch the color
-come and go in their expressive faces, their fluffy curls and tangle
-of waves and braids tumbling about as the little girls shook with
-laughter, and some of the boys were even more amusing than the girls,
-because they looked so earnest, even solemn, in their efforts to find
-an explanation for the old man. One little chap said he would get his
-father to carry his rifle now all the time, because they might meet
-the old man sometimes when he wouldn’t feel as jolly, and what then?
-In fact he was about certain he had seen the old man one day stealing
-away behind a big stump, and even some of the children laughed when he
-explained: ‘It was the very same day, that I almost saw a black bear.
-I could hear him growl. I tell you I ran! Like as not there was a fox
-too, or a wild cat?”
-
-“Well, after the dwarf exhibition, there were refreshments at which the
-children toasted marshmallows and popped corn.”
-
-“Why, after all, Maud,” said her mother, thawing out suddenly, “I fancy
-you may like it here. There seem to be things going on.”
-
-“_Like_ it,” quoted the lady. “No one ever wants to go home when she
-once gets a taste of Adirondack life. It is like the hounds following
-the deer. People take to the woods.”
-
-Suddenly there sounded through the hall the first measures of an
-orchestra.
-
-“The music has begun, and I must dress,” said Miss Friend-in-Need,
-noting the questioning glance between mother and daughter. “That music
-is a signal to-night. A few of us give a part of the Midsummer Night’s
-Dream this evening, in the parlor, and we are to costume ourselves as
-far as possible before supper.
-
-“What fun we’ve had getting the affair up! You may not know that it has
-simply poured here for days and days, but we’ve laughed until we’ve
-cried at our rehearsals, and so have scarcely been troubled by rain.
-
-“You’ll surely come to the first and last performance of this wonderful
-company, will you not?” and walking away, the lady looked over her
-shoulder for an answer. And having won a reply in the affirmative, the
-lady rapidly hurried to her room.
-
-After supper, as Maud’s mother took her seat, to which she was shown by
-a young man acting as usher, she noticed the parlor had been lavishly
-trimmed with boughs of green. There was also a tiny wood adjoining the
-stage, made of small balsam trees.
-
-“I suppose,” she remarked to her daughter, “they went out between the
-drops and gathered them.” And then both ladies interestedly noticed the
-guests, as one after the other, with an air of expectancy, entered.
-
-Programmes were passed and eagerly scanned.
-
-It was indeed a gala night. Had Maud and her mother known the various
-performers, it would have greatly added to their entertainment, but
-as it was, they could not help adding their applause to that of the
-others. Even though Maud was a stranger, the joyous shouts of laughter
-proved too contagious to be altogether resisted, and indeed before the
-performance was over, close contact with these merry people made Maud
-feel as though she was one of them, so quickly does one touch of nature
-make the whole world kin.
-
-As the programme indicated the different characters, they were
-carefully read, and many ejaculations were overheard, such as: “Oh,
-that’s Isabel’s character,” and “Why, Carl Adams will be a sight,
-he’s such a swell, you know. How did such an exquisite ever consent to
-humble himself in this way?”
-
-To Maud and her mother, however, all were strangers, with the one
-exception of the proprietor of the hotel, but they very soon learned
-the names of the people about them. Besides, as Maud’s mother very
-truly said, “Without it I am not positive that I could remember who the
-different ones are in the piece, as it is a long time since I have read
-the Midsummer Night’s Dream.” Therefore, while waiting for the first
-scene, they read:
-
- THESEUS, Duke of Athens,
- _Proprietor of the hotel_.
-
- EGEUS, Father to Hermia,
- _Mr. A——_.
-
- LYSANDER, }
- DEMETRIUS,} in love with Hermia,
- _Mr. C—— and Mr. H——_.
-
- PHILOSTRATE, Master of the revels to Theseus,
- _Mr. T——_.
-
- QUINCE, a carpenter,
- _Master Carl Adams_.
-
- SNUG, a joiner,
- _Master John Jones_.
-
- BOTTOM, a weaver,
- _Mr. Sam S——_.
-
- FLUTE, a bellows-mender,
- _Mr. Ralph R——_.
-
- SNOUT, a tinker,
- _Master Diedrick Delk_.
-
- STARVELING, a tailor,
- _Mr. Percy P——_.
-
- HIPPOLYTA, Queen of the Amazons, betrothed to Theseus,
- _Miss Genevieve B——_.
-
- HERMIA, daughter to Egeus, in love with Lysander,
- _Mrs. Ralph R——_.
-
- HELENA, in love with Demetrius,
- _Mrs. Sam S——_.
-
- OBERON, King of the fairies,
- _Mr. James D——_.
-
- TITANIA, Queen of the fairies,
- _Miss Isabel M——_.
-
- PUCK, or Robin Goodfellow,
- _Master Alexander Marvin_.
-
- PEASEBLOSSOM,}
- COBWEB, } Fairies,
- MOTH, }
- MUSTARDSEED, }
- _The Misses Wilson, Bruce, Sim, Conger._
-
- Other fairies attending their King and Queen,
- _Misses Kate W——, Fanny T——, Eva M——_.
-
- Attendants on Theseus and Hippolyta,
- _Masters Goodwin, Bartlett, Carrington and Scott._
-
-As Maud’s mother inquired when in the seclusion of their own
-apartments, “Did you really like it so very much?”
-
-Maud answered laughing, “More than I can express.”
-
-The following morning it was a question, “What would be the proper
-costume for breakfast?”
-
-From one of their windows they had a partial view of the lake, but
-from the other nothing but tall trees met their eyes. Pines were in
-abundance, but there was an occasional hemlock, spruce, birch and maple.
-
-“It is summer. Would you think that this white organdy would do?” asked
-Maud, and the frock, apparently only a cloud of Valenciennes lace, was
-held towards her mother.
-
-“Do? I am sure I don’t know what is considered correct for such a
-wilderness, but you might not be warm enough. I fancy it is cold
-outdoors.”
-
-“I’ll tell you what I’ll wear,” said the young lady presently, for she
-had a wonderful conception of color values, and knew what would look
-best with her dark eyes, and also what would produce the most fetching
-effect, should she be able to induce her mother to walk among the
-trees after breakfast. “I am going to put on my crimson piqué, bodice
-and all,” for she had several waists that could be worn with the same
-skirt, and as her quick eyes looked over the guests at breakfast, she
-was not sorry the decision had been against the organdy.
-
-“All night my dreams were of the entertainment,” said Maud, as, sitting
-opposite her mother, she tried to pour the cream into her coffee. “It
-is almost too thick to stir. Did you ever see such cream?” she said.
-
-“I never saw thicker. And this trout is delicious. It would be singular
-indeed if I were won to this place. But, Maud, tell me about your
-dream, dear.”
-
-“Oh, I dreamed of Titania and Oberon, Queen and King of the fairies,
-you know. I could see the airy things moving over the green. It was
-Midsummer-Night’s Dream truly, for I dreamed of the pretty piece, and
-isn’t this Midsummer?”
-
-“Why, Maud! I fancy you slept well. Perhaps you’ll be surprised to
-learn that I too dreamed of our evening’s pleasure.”
-
-“Surprised! Yes, indeed!” and Maud’s eyes sought her mother’s. “What
-part did you dream about?”
-
-“I think it is the opening of the second act, when the fairy replies to
-Puck,
-
- Over hill, over dale,
- Thorough bush, thorough brier,
- Over park, over pale,
- Thorough flood, thorough fire,
- I do wander everywhere.
-
-You remember how it goes, don’t you?”
-
-“Perfectly; and didn’t that fairy look lovely? I am sure I shall be
-glad to know her. But Puck I am not as sure about.”
-
-“Could you pass me the rolls, Maud?”
-
-“Certainly, take that one,” and Maud turned the plate so that her
-mother could have a temptingly brown roll.
-
-“And now,” continued her mother, as she contentedly broke the roll
-open, “tell me more about your dream.”
-
-“You know towards the close, Oberon and Titania entered with their
-train.”
-
-“Do you mean where Oberon sings,
-
- Though the house gives glimmering light,
- By the dead and drowsy fire,
- Every elf and fairy sprite,
-
-And so on?”
-
-“Yes, those are the very words. And didn’t Titania have a sweet voice?
-I hope she’ll sing often. I am sure everybody must enjoy listening to
-her. I thought this beautiful:
-
- First rehearse your song by rote,
- To each word a warbling note.
- Hand in hand with fairy grace,
- Will we sing and bless this place.”
-
-As Maud said, “bless this place,” the lady who had welcomed Maud and
-her mother the evening before was walking past their table, and having
-overheard the words, she stopped.
-
-“Just what I like to hear.” Then mischievously looking at Maud’s
-mother. “But I did not expect the woods to have won so much enthusiasm
-already, did you?”
-
-“No, I did not,” and the mother’s lip unbent into a sunny smile. “But
-there is no telling what we may both say yet.”
-
-“This fish breakfast has been delicious, and besides everybody looks
-rested and cheery.”
-
-“That is just the point; no one can help being rested, because
-midnight-oil is unknown here and how can people help being cheery, when
-this bracing air is a tonic; And besides we have so many delightful
-sports. There are to be charades, and rollicking games, such as Twirl
-the Platter, and Going to Jerusalem, this evening, and to-day there
-are several things on hand. One is a driving and riding party. All the
-young people, with two chaperones, are going over to the next hotel to
-dinner. By the way, do you ride?”
-
-And Maud, whose face was flushed with the memory of her many pleasant
-hours on horseback, answered, “I could ride almost forever.”
-
-“Then you are the very young lady we want,” and turning to Maud’s
-mother, “I’m to be one of the chaperones. I’ll promise to bring her
-home safe. There is a fine saddle-horse waiting to be ridden, and——a
-fine young man, who is in despair because every one but himself has a
-riding companion. He is a New York lawyer. May I introduce him?” were
-her words, as the trio left the breakfast-room together.
-
-The answer must have been “Yes,” because, an hour later, one dowager
-said to another, “Did you hear that new girl, that airish creature with
-the golden hair, and sleepy-looking dark eyes, who came just before
-supper last evening, has gone off horseback riding with the one we
-called ‘the dissatisfied young man?’ He seems to be perfectly satisfied
-now. I suppose neither of our daughters was good enough for him.”
-
-
-
-
-THE FLOWER-TEST.
-
-
-The postman rapped at my door, and presently the trim little maid
-brought me a big square letter on a tray. I knew that hand. Nobody but
-Penelope writes in that scraggly style, plain, too, as a pikestaff, and
-easy to read. “Darling Gertrude,” she began, “I am about to plead for a
-visit. It seems a little bit of forever since I saw you and I want you
-here in my country house where we’ll have time to enjoy one another,
-talk of the past and present tenses to our hearts’ content, and perhaps
-plan a happy future.
-
-“Let me tell you whom you’ll meet: Mr. and Mrs. Burkhardt,—you remember
-that sweet little girl bride who succeeded so well in blinding us—at
-first; dear old General Bolton, and his youngest brother, who paints
-almost as well as he talks; pretty Elsie Sterling and my cousin Bob.
-You see I put them together, but so would you if you could look out
-of my window and see them now. Bob has just mounted Elsie on White
-Baron, and now as I write the words he’s up on Caper and off they
-go. Well—we’ll borrow White Baron and Caper later on, you and I, and
-perhaps as we canter along side by side we may feel ourselves back
-again,—back—how many years? Never mind, we’ll not count. The years have
-been happy to us both, I hope.
-
-“But you’ll come—you must not say _no_, remember. Cordially your friend,
-
- “Penelope T. Gerard.”
-
-Indeed I would not say “No.” I would arrange and rearrange my summer
-plans to meet Penelope once more.
-
-It was scarce three years since I last saw her. She was then a bride
-of but two months and I spent three days with her just as I was
-leaving for Germany. During the interval our letters were more or less
-frequent, and so in a way we each kept track of the other and felt as
-close friends as we had been since our childhood.
-
-So it was with infinite pleasure I wrote an acceptance.
-
-“The Maples” is an unpretending rambling sort of a house, with piazzas,
-and “corners,” and nooks where one would least expect them. There is
-no rhyme or reason to the architecture, and an architect would shake
-his head in sad consternation. However, if he were told that three
-generations of Gerards had idled their summers happily away within
-and without its walls, and that each owner had added his share to the
-original pile, perhaps the exact architect would turn his critical
-smile to one of content and count himself fortunate to be allowed to
-enter this abode of happiness.
-
-It was a sunny day when I first drove up the long maple-lined driveway
-and there on the lawn, close to the entrance, was Penelope making tea
-and laughing one of her old merry laughs as the General stood before
-her. I suppose he was telling her one of his funny stories. I don’t
-know, for of course I only saw them a moment before the carriage
-stopped, and once more Penelope and I were together.
-
-The General had known us both as girls, and soon we were talking over
-old faces and scenes, and it seemed as though we had never been parted.
-The rest of the party had gone for a long drive and would not be back
-until seven o’clock. So we three talked on and on.
-
-“Oh, it does seem so good to be here, Pen,” I said, and added, “As I
-came up the driveway, the first thing I heard was your laugh. You know
-how mamma used to like to hear you laugh.”
-
-“Yes, I remember how irrepressible I was. But, Trudy, you too would
-have laughed if you’d heard the General hang me.”
-
-“Hang you?”
-
-“Why, yes. Don’t you know the game?” Then seeing my bewilderment, she
-went on. “You must learn it. It’s fine for two people. Especially when
-one gets short of subjects to talk about.”
-
-Here General Bolton threw back his head and laughed heartily. “Short
-of subjects to talk about! I guess Trudy would as soon believe the
-Atlantic had gone dry as to think your nimble tongue was ever still.
-No, indeed! On the contrary, Trudy, she was bound she would make me
-let out a secret, and I, old fool, would probably have fallen into her
-trap, only she warned me by—but never mind how she warned me, or even
-that will fail me next time. So I hung her. Yes, I caught her well.”
-Then with a chuckle. “Tell her how, Pen, you know best how, for you
-know you were _hung_, and well hung.” And again he laughed.
-
-“That’s true. But try me again sometime, or rather, I’ll try you and
-we’ll see who does the _hanging_. No, not now, you need not look so
-eager.”
-
-“Bah, you’re afraid.”
-
-“No, indeed I am not. Just now however I mean to take Gertrude and show
-her where her room is. She has been ever so patient.”
-
-“But, my dear, please explain first about the _hanging_. It sounds so
-sanguinary.”
-
-“Well, it is. Now listen and I’ll explain, and then we’ll go indoors.
-‘To hang a person with a word,’ is the name of the game. You take any
-word you like in your mind and simply mention the number of letters it
-has. The other party has to guess, by letters, without making twelve
-misses. If she fails to guess without twelve wrong guesses, she is
-_hung_ as I was. That doesn’t seem very clear to you, I suppose.”
-
-“Well, not exactly.”
-
-“I’ll take a word and show you. Now, General, I did not mean to give
-you your battle now. But you may have it if you’re ready.”
-
-“Steady, fire.”
-
-“All right.” Then she whispered to me the word “Eyelet.”
-
-“Well, I’ll hang you, General Bolton, with a word of six letters.”
-
-“Bah, that’s easy. First, I’ll guess L.”
-
-“Right. It has fourth place.” Then she explained to me, “You have to
-tell the position of the letter.”
-
-“M.”
-
-“Wrong. That’s one. You help me keep count, Trudy. Remember, twelve
-wrong guesses and I’ve hung him.”
-
-“A.”
-
-“Wrong. That makes two.”
-
-“E.”
-
-“Right. First place.”
-
-“I.”
-
-“Wrong. Three.”
-
-“O.”
-
-“Wrong. You see he’s trying the vowels. How many does that make?”
-
-“Four.”
-
-“Oh, you girls need not look so jubilant; four doesn’t make much. I’ll
-guess U, next.”
-
-“Five,” we both shouted.
-
-“Well, T.”
-
-“Right, and sixth place.”
-
-“An e, an l, and a t. Let me see. Any n’s in it?”
-
-“No. That makes six. Oh, we have you, General, that is half the number.”
-
-“The battle is not won yet; no, nor lost yet. Well, I’ll guess G.”
-
-“Seven.”
-
-He looked down at the grass and drummed his fingers on his knee, then
-said, “D.”
-
-“Eight.”
-
-“An e, an l, and a t. That’s a queer combination when all the other
-vowels are out. Holloa! Is there another e?”
-
-“Yes. Third place.”
-
-“Oh, and another l?”
-
-“Nine.”
-
-“I hope this word is in the English language?”
-
-“Oh, yes. It is English and it is used to-day, but a generation back it
-was used more frequently.”
-
-“A generation back! Bah!” and he straightened himself and rising strode
-back and forth with his hands clasped back of him. “I have it! That is,
-I am pretty certain. Has a y, hasn’t it?”
-
-“Yes—second place.”
-
-“Eyelet!” he shouted. “Bah, you thought you had me. Well, you almost
-did. Those pesky vowels were at fault.”
-
-“Never mind, I’ll hang you yet. I have another word in mind. But not
-to-day. Come, Gertrude. You see it all now, I guess, and we must hurry
-in, or Will and the others will be back before we are ready for dinner.
-Good-bye for a time, General. Look to your guns. I shall be after you
-again.”
-
-
-II.
-
-Breakfast was more than half over, some mornings later, when in came
-Bob and Irving Bolton. A chorus of “Fie, fie,” greeted them, and Elsie
-Sterling shook her fingers threateningly as Bob explained, “Pen, don’t
-be hard on a fellow. Irving and I talked too late, I suppose, last
-night. At any rate I know I should never have turned up this morning
-only that he yelled across to me that lunch was most ready. And then he
-loitered to help me share the blame of our lateness. Hey, old fellow?”
-and he looked across at Irving as he slid into the vacant place between
-Elsie and Mrs. Burkhardt.
-
-“You are both rascals, both of you,” growled the General. “Burkhardt
-and I have been up hours and have planned the finest sort of a day for
-the rest of you ungrateful ones. Shall we tell them, Burkhardt?”
-
-Before Mr. Burkhardt had a chance to reply, Penelope interposed, “Let
-me try and guess.”
-
-“All right, Mrs. Gerard, but you’ll have to try twenty questions or
-some such game or you’ll not hit it. It’s a fine scheme.” And Ned
-Burkhardt nodded triumphantly while he put a piece of buttered toast on
-his wife’s plate.
-
-“I’ll guess just once, and without the help of twenty questions either.
-It’s a picnic.”
-
-“Bah!” exclaimed the General. “You overheard, or somebody told you.”
-
-“Perhaps I did, or perhaps that omnipresent ‘little bird’ chirped it in
-my ear. But, at any rate, it’s a fine idea. What say the rest of you?”
-
-“Just the thing. Fine,” was the reply.
-
-“How shall we go, Will, and where?”
-
-“Oh, let’s go to Sylvan Grove. It is only ten miles. Let me see. Two of
-you can ride horseback.
-
-“Will you and Irving ride, Gertrude? And, Burkhardt, you and madame and
-Elsie and Bob might take the buckboard, and we three old fogies—pardon
-me, General,—will follow on with the provisions. Will that suit, Penel?”
-
-“All right. And now let’s get ready. Can you all start in three
-quarters of an hour?”
-
-“Yes, indeed.”
-
-Promptly we all sallied forth, and it was a merry party. The air was
-perfect, and Irving, Bolton and I cantered on ahead, and finding
-ourselves far in advance, we turned and rode across country for a few
-miles.
-
-It was a perfect day, and the picnic was a perfect success. At dinner
-that night we voted it as the best day yet.
-
-“Well, to-morrow is the golf tournament, you know,” said Will, and
-turning to his wife, he added, “Didn’t you say there was a dinner on
-too?”
-
-“Oh, yes. I nearly forgot. Dear old Mrs. Preston asked us all to
-dinner.” Turning towards me she said, “You remember at our tea, the day
-after you came, a white-haired lady accompanied by her granddaughter?”
-
-“Yes, indeed I do. I think you said she lives in that gray stone house
-we passed to-day.”
-
-“Yes, that is the one. It’s a lovely house too—and such china! Why,
-Mrs. Burkhardt, she has a willow set that would make your mouth water.
-Perhaps we’ll see it.”
-
-Then turning swiftly, for dinner was over and we were just leaving the
-room, “Listen, all of you, please. To-morrow night at Mrs. Preston’s,
-and next night nowhere. It is Gertrude’s last night here and let’s
-spend it all alone,” and having made her little speech she slipped her
-arm around my waist and we went out together.
-
-We passed through one of the French windows, out on the piazza, and sat
-there late into the night. Snatches of conversation came to us again
-and again, and Mrs. Burkhardt’s sweet soprano as she and Elsie sang
-together, while Irving accompanied on the mandoline. But we, Penelope
-and I, remained alone, each happy in the other.
-
-The last night came, as all “last nights” must, and with it, “in
-sympathy with our mood,” was the General’s courteous construction, came
-a heavy, moaning storm. Will poked the fire and piled on the logs as
-though a blizzard were raging without. Finally, he paused and said,
-“I guess, Pen, dear, you may have your wish. No one will disturb our
-family serenity this night.”
-
-How cosy it seemed and how happy all appeared. Elsie and Mrs.
-Burkhardt, Irving and Bob were playing checkers in the next room. Ned
-and Penelope were talking about dogs and horses and comparing their
-relative intelligence. The General was looking over some foreign
-photographs, while Will and I bestowed our attention on the fire.
-
-“Truly,” spoke General Bolton, “did you ever get up early enough to see
-Covent Garden Market in its glory!”
-
-“Oh, General, do you mean to infer absolute laziness, or do you mean
-that the gray gloom of London would forbid an early awakening?”
-
-“Never mind what I inferred. Did you ever go to the market—early?”
-
-“Strange as it may seem to you, I did. I went one morning to Covent
-Garden Market, and early, about six o’clock, with an English girl. It
-was a wonderful sight.”
-
-“See,” he interrupted, “it was this picture of a costermonger with the
-palms and ferns that made me ask you.”
-
-“It is very natural—the little donkey, the barrow and all. And how very
-cheap the plants and flowers are—why that morning I bought for sixpence
-as many moss roses and buds as I could carry.”
-
-“Gertrude, did you ever see that?” And Will gave me a printed slip that
-he had been searching for in his pocketbook. It was called the Floral
-Test.
-
-“No, but isn’t it good? Let’s ask the others the questions and see who
-can answer the most.”
-
-“Come, all you people,” called Will, and he stepped over to the next
-room. “Aren’t you tired of checkers? Gertrude has a new game.”
-
-When all were seated around expectantly he said: “Now, Gertrude, you
-ask the questions and we’ll reply. It is called,” he explained, “the
-Floral Test. She’ll ask questions and we’ll give answers in the names
-of flowers.”
-
-“Tell me the name of a maiden, and the color of her hair.”
-
-“Maria-gold,” shouted Irving.
-
-“Good for you, old fellow. How did you know?” questioned Bob.
-
-“O here,” and young Bolton tapped his forehead significantly.
-
-“What adjective fitted her and what was her brother’s name?”
-
-All were silent until Mrs. Burkhardt timidly said, “Is it
-Sweet-William?”
-
-“That’s right. Now try this,—What was his favorite sport in winter?”
-
-“That’s easy. Snowball,” and Bob threw his handkerchief at Will, who
-sharply returned it.
-
-“Ned, what was his favorite instrument?”
-
-“Is it the trumpet?”
-
-“That is right. Can you tell me, Elsie, at what hour he awoke his
-father by playing on it?”
-
-“Four o’clock.”
-
-“Yes, and what did his father apply to him?”
-
-“A golden-rod,” two or three shouted.
-
-“What office did his father occupy in the church?”
-
-All seemed puzzled. Finally Elsie said, “Was it elder?”
-
-“Right. What was the young man’s name, and what did he write it with?”
-
-“That is a poser, Trudy. You’ll have to tell them, I guess,” suggested
-Will.
-
-“Jonquil, don’t you see?”
-
-“Bah!” exclaimed the General, while the others laughed.
-
-“Irving, what candy do you usually buy?”
-
-“He doesn’t know,” said Will, “but wait a moment and I’ll show you
-some,” and he went to a closet and brought back a box of buttercups.
-
-“Well, what did John do when he popped the question?”
-
-“Aster,” yelled the General.
-
-“That is correct, General. See if you can tell what ghastly trophy he
-offered her.”
-
-“Oh, that is easy. A bleeding heart.”
-
-“Well, what did she say as John knelt before her?”
-
-“Why, Johnny-jump-up, of course.”
-
-“That’s right. You are fine at this game, General. Can you tell me what
-minister married them?”
-
-“Oh, Jack-in-the-Pulpit,” exclaimed Penelope.
-
-“What did she wear in her hair?”
-
-“Bridal-wreath.”
-
-“What flowers bloomed in her cheeks?”
-
-“Roses.”
-
-“What did John say when obliged to leave her for a time?”
-
-“Forget-me-not.”
-
-“That is all. It is a fine game, Will. Where did you find it?”
-
-“Oh, I came across it in a paper, and I know Pen likes that sort of
-thing, so I cut it out. But I forgot all about it until you two were
-talking over Covent Garden and the early market.”
-
-“I think I can add one to that list of questions,” and Penelope arose
-and, drawing me up by the hand, said, “What flower should we put in the
-candle tray at night?”
-
-“Poppy,” came the quick reply, and Bob quoted,
-
- The Rock-a-bye lady
- From Hush-a-bye street,
- The poppies they hang
- From her head to her feet.
-
-“—— oh, I say, Pen,” he called, as we were on the stairs, “what shall
-we all do when Gertrude leaves us?”
-
-“Do you mean that as a Floral Test question?”
-
-“Yes.”
-
-“I know what I’ll do, but I don’t know any flower or plant to describe
-it.”
-
-“Why, Penelope, we’ll all balsam.”
-
-
-
-
-HOURS WITH THE POETS.
-
-
-“Felicia Hemans was an American, born ‘down East’ somewhere; I think in
-the same section Nora Perry hails from,” was the startling announcement
-uttered in my hearing, by a “sweet girl graduate” of so short time ago
-as June, 1892.
-
-“Pardon contradiction,” I called from my end of the library, “but
-Felicia Hemans was an Englishwoman, and her birthplace was Liverpool.”
-
-The surprise the above incident created caused my own thought to revert
-to the honored and beloved poets who have so lately left us, as well as
-to the mighty revered army, from Chaucer down, who have more or less an
-abiding-place in our hearts.
-
-And then followed another thought,—would it not be a wise use of time
-for some of us to study the lives and works of these poets, the minor
-as well as the more prominent ones, and so save ourselves from similar
-ludicrous blunders as the one above given?
-
-And particularly do I appeal to the young girls just out; but even
-the busy schoolgirl would have the opportunity if she would only
-systematically arrange her work. Afternoon classes might be formed, or
-evening ones if preferred; the latter would have the advantages, as
-then the big brothers might come. Simple refreshments, too, would not
-jar on harmony, but rather tend to sociability. These could be provided
-by the hostess, for the girls should take turns in having the class
-meet at each house. It would also be found to be a benefit to have a
-president and secretary for such a class, or, if an old person could be
-gotten, popular and wise enough to take charge, that would prove still
-more satisfactory.
-
-It is quite the fashion now to be a member of a dancing class, why not
-be a member of a poets’ class, and so take care of your head as well as
-your heels? Indeed, classes are the “order of the day,” for language,
-music, riding, cooking, wood-carving, needlework, indeed everything,
-and the young girls or boys who may read this sketch certainly want to
-be into things as well as their fellows.
-
-In these hours with the poets, take a different poet for each time
-the class meets. Before the close of one meeting decide on who will
-be the next one taken up. For example, will it be Keats, Saxe, Bayard
-Taylor, or Jean Ingelow? That settled, name who will be the one to
-give a biographical sketch of the poet. This may be in the form of an
-original paper, or read directly from an encyclopedia. Also name two or
-more members to read or recite poems from the poet under consideration.
-Discussion and criticism should be freely allowed, and unanswerable
-questions should be always answered at the next meeting before entering
-on the new poet. It would save time to have the hostess answer the
-questions left from the week before, as she could have numerous books
-at hand, and of necessity would be present.
-
-Do not say this is too difficult a task. Nothing is too difficult for
-those who try.
-
-And do not think such study and hours are unnecessary. If you do, find
-out how many of your classmates can at once answer whom Ben Jonson
-adopted as his poetical son? He was a pastoral lyrist, and left behind
-him thirteen hundred poems. He was a bachelor, though he lived to be
-eighty-four years of age. He was born at Cheapside, London, in 1591,
-and died in 1674, at Dean Prior, which living was presented to him, for
-at times he was very poor. His name was Robert Herrick.
-
-Or does my reader know that Thomas Gray was a close student of Dryden,
-or that the author of the first important body of English sonnets
-was the romantic hero, Sir Philip Sidney, and that he died when but
-thirty-two years of age, having been conspicuous at the court of
-Elizabeth, was a soldier of great promise, a leading statesman, and has
-a prominent place in history?
-
-
-
-
-“THANK YOU!”
-
-
-“I sent her a basket of fruit for Christmas. The basket was of the
-finest Chinese straw, and decorated with handsome pale green satin
-ribbon; and the fruit, Bartlett pears, mandarins, and white grapes; but
-she has not acknowledged it by either verbal or written thanks.”
-
-“Perhaps she never received it,” was the reply.
-
-“I know that she did, for my daughter called one day and recognized the
-basket, which stood on the table in the hall through which she passed.”
-
-“Well, but you know she is a very busy woman.”
-
-“That is no excuse. People may be ever so busy, but they should not
-forget decent courtesy. Indeed, my experience has been that the
-busy people are, oftener than otherwise, the most polite people. My
-theory is, they do not allow themselves to rust in any direction;
-duty should be done, and is done. If an individual cannot take time
-to thank a friend for a Christmas gift, next year that friend may not
-take time to give one. I am sure it is not the question of time; it
-is the question of knowledge or carelessness. There are people who
-really don’t know enough to be polite; and others know, but are too
-indifferent to take the trouble, forgetting that their conduct reflects
-most disagreeably upon themselves. One would think a kind heart might
-dictate, if common-sense did not. But I suppose some people have
-neither common-sense nor kindness of heart.”
-
-Overhearing the above conversation, the listener was reminded of a
-similar instance lately experienced in her own life. A letter had
-been written, which had honorably adjusted a money complication that
-concerned the gentleman to whom she wrote and a society which he
-represented, but did not concern or reflect upon the writer in the
-smallest degree excepting for the goodwill she bore her friend, and
-yet for this same letter she did not receive one word of thanks—not
-even the acknowledgment of its ever having been received. That it _was_
-received was later proved by a printed report that it would have been
-impossible to set in order without it.
-
-The examples given are by no means rare and peculiar, but may be
-duplicated over and over by every intelligent person. And in this age
-of letters, when printed matter was never so reasonable, and when
-teachers and schools may be really had “without money and without
-price,” when lectures on all topics are inexpensively if not, indeed,
-freely given, where is the excuse for knowledge not to be the power of
-all? It would almost seem as if even those indifferently educated could
-not help but have learned to say “thank you,” or to acknowledge by pen
-or voice any accommodation, help, or present.
-
-Blood is sure to tell, and with Emerson we say that “man is physically
-as well as metaphysically a thing of shreds and patches, borrowed
-unequally from good and bad ancestors.” To those of gentle blood,
-rudeness would be impossible. If there are partial lapses of manner
-with those looked upon as the refined, the question is asked, “Where
-does she get that trait?” and possibly the answer may be, “Her
-great-grandmother.” For thus are the sins visited upon the children
-of even the third and fourth generations. The deportment of the real
-gentleman or woman can never be unpleasantly criticised. They could not
-be ungracious, no matter how hard they should try. If there is ever a
-question about how far politeness should extend, err on the side of too
-much rather than that of too little. Have too much manner rather than
-not enough. Be too profuse in thanks rather than too scant and meagre.
-
-When a gift has been received or a courtesy of any kind shown you, at
-once acknowledge it, unless you are too ill so to do, or a positively
-important matter prevents. If it is impossible to write to the one you
-are indebted to that day, do it the next. But as it is so easy for most
-of us to have good intentions, do not put off for to-morrow what should
-be done to-day.
-
-The note should not be long, but heartily and pleasantly worded. Some
-people might reflect, “I would not tell a falsehood, and how can I say
-I like a thing if I do not?” Or, as happened lately, two boxes of wild
-flowers were sent me from California by two little boys, with a note in
-one of the boxes containing the words, “Which flowers got to you best,
-Pierre’s or mine?” and I was obliged to at once put both boxes in the
-fire. Should I write of the sweetness of the blossoms and the purity
-and beauty of their coloring? By no means. But I would not wound the
-childish hearts by telling of the condition of the flowers at the time
-they were received. Remember the thought that prompted the gift. Dwell
-on that altogether if you will. Send a loving message to the donors,
-and they will never dream you did not like their offering in the one
-case or were obliged to burn it in the other.
-
-After all, remembrance is the sweetest of all earthly gifts. When the
-dear ones with whom we journey are no longer here, we will miss their
-gentle ministry. May not any one of us then know the bitterness of
-remorse, but rather let us hasten to send abundant, hearty thanks to
-those who have taken time to think and care for us!
-
-
-
-
-A STORY WITHIN A STORY
-
-
- It was the time when lilies blow,
- And clouds are highest up in air,
-
-that four young people were vivaciously talking on the front piazza at
-Aunt Mary’s.
-
-Aunt Mary was everybody’s friend, but particularly beloved by the
-nephews and nieces, of whom this story tells. And her home, “just the
-jolliest kind of a place to visit,” Jo said, as he described beforehand
-the expected good times his sister Madeline with their cousins,
-Madge and Ernest, were to have in the week’s vacation given them for
-recuperation after the half-yearly examination.
-
-Aunt Mary’s house was in New Jersey; of course, it was on a farm, for
-whoever would think of looking for such fun and frolic anywhere else?
-And as all the cousins came from city homes, and Jo and his sister from
-a small flat of a large apartment house, the freedom of space which
-the country had given, added to the bracing air and sunny, cheerful
-atmosphere, was a delightful contrast. But no one would have thought,
-though, that Madeline was seventeen years of age, or that Madge was
-called “Miss Propriety” at home, for they would race over the farm,
-playing the wildest of games “like a couple of tomboys,” their brothers
-said. But Aunt Mary let them do exactly as they pleased, and would
-always sigh when she would talk of their shut-in city life, and point
-to their red cheeks with great pride, which she assured them came from
-living with her. And the boys, too, had seemed wonderfully benefited
-by their running, racing, riding, ball and tennis playing. Even the
-hallooing “got plenty of fresh air in their lungs,” Ernest said, which,
-with other things too many to mention, had been done in this brief
-holiday.
-
-To-morrow they must start homeward; and just because they were
-exhausted with one and another game, they are, at the commencement of
-our story, resting and talking on Aunt Mary’s front piazza.
-
-Ernest is rubbing his right arm meanwhile, for he says, “It has pained
-me dreadfully ever since that last catch at the ball.”
-
-And Aunt Mary has just joined them, carrying with her a big tin waiter
-on which is a large molasses cake, so fresh that it is yet hot from the
-oven, and a four-quart pitcher of milk, which Bessie, the brown-eyed
-Alderney, had given at the morning milking hour. At sight of their aunt
-thus laden, three cheers were laughingly and loudly given, for if there
-is one way quicker than another to young people’s hearts, perhaps it
-is by the way of hot molasses cake and ice-cold fresh milk, as rich as
-many city folks have their cream.
-
-Jo, who was eighteen years old on his last birthday, is considered the
-young man of the party. He has always been a gentleman, and he at once
-rushed to the sitting-room for his aunt’s favorite rocking-chair. As
-Ernest has already disposed of the tray by putting it on a spruce-bark
-covered table which stands for all sorts of convenient purposes on the
-piazza, Aunt Mary is comfortably placed in her easy-chair before she
-realizes that Jo had gone for it. “Oh, what delicious cake!” “How kind
-you are!” “I must have another glass of that milk.” “Isn’t this lots
-better than being in school?” etc., were the pleasing comments and
-ejaculations which any stranger might have heard passing on the other
-side of the road from the house, or, indeed, a quarter of a mile beyond
-it.
-
-After awhile, however, the eating and drinking were over, and “What
-shall we do now?” was the question. “I’m tired out, for one,” said
-Ernest, and “I for another,” continued Madge; “still, these are our
-last hours and we must do something; we cannot afford to lose a moment.
-Aunt Mary, you tell us what to do.”
-
-“Will you promise to do what I tell you?”
-
-“We will,” answered Madeline. “Of course we will,” continued Ernest;
-“a likely thing we could say no, now, of all times, after the way this
-cake and milk have disappeared.”
-
-“Well, it’s agreed, then,” said Aunt Mary. “I want you to entertain me
-awhile by telling a story.”
-
-“A story! How? We don’t exactly understand, do we?” asked Jo, looking
-at one and another perplexed face.
-
-“The story,” answered Aunt Mary, “must be altogether, ‘made up,’ as
-Madge would say. It must be divided in four chapters or parts, as
-nearly equal in length as is possible. Jo can begin it, and, after
-talking, say for two minutes, Madge must follow, then Ernest and
-Madeline will close.”
-
-These words were followed with whistles from the boys, and “Oh, my!”
-from the girls, to all of which Aunt Mary said, “You promised, and
-of course you will do it. And when the story is told, we will all
-drive over to Bear’s Gulch, and that will take the remainder of the
-afternoon.”
-
-These words were followed by a halt and sighs. “But it would be a
-burning shame,” said Madeline, “not to please Aunt Mary; besides, of
-course, we can do it. We can do anything, if we try.”
-
-“So say we all of us; so say we all,” sang Ernest.
-
-And Aunt Mary laughingly replied, “The sooner the story is started,
-the sooner it is through, and the sooner it is through, the sooner we
-have the drive.”
-
-“Well, as I’m the starter, here goes!” said Jo.
-
-“And,” interrupted his aunt, “when your time is up I’ll call Madge’s
-name, and so on. Don’t let us have any breaks. Tell me a story just as
-smoothly as if you were reading it from a book. Now, Jo.”
-
-“My title is, ‘The Adventures of an Irish Setter.’ When Ned Armstrong
-was so small a boy that he yet wore knickerbockers, he received a short
-visit from his cousin William Adams. He, too, was a little boy and was
-often called ‘Sweet William,’ on account of his sunny disposition, for,
-notwithstanding he was sole heir to great wealth, being the only child
-of rich parents, rich enough to count their wealth by many millions of
-dollars,—he was neither selfish, exacting, nor in any way disagreeable,
-thereby an example to some grown-up people we have met. When William
-came on this visit, he brought with him a large, well-trained dog. He
-was a magnificent fellow, and Ned, his cousin, was as amazed as he was
-pleased to find that the dog was a present to himself from William’s
-father, his Uncle Ned, after whom he was named. This uncle had long
-known he must sometime part with Moselle; he had been his own from
-the time Moselle was a puppy but two months old. The reason for the
-separation of master and dog was the giving up of housekeeping for life
-in a hotel, as Aunt Cornelia, Uncle Ned’s wife, was now too much of an
-invalid to continue caring for a house, even with the assistance of a
-housekeeper, of whom she had tried many, and dogs are among the ‘not
-allowed’ in hotels. So, Uncle Ned, remembering his little nephew in the
-country, and knowing how he would prize and kindly treat his old pet
-and friend, sent Moselle by his son William to him. This gift made Ned,
-however, nearly crazy with delight, and the old gardener often feared
-the results to his flower beds after the races which Ned and Moselle
-would take over them. Indeed the dog was not to blame if he forgot
-many of his well-trained ways, country life with the little boy was so
-ungoverned by comparison with what it had been with his staid, but kind
-old master.
-
-“One day, five months after Moselle had changed his home, Ned was
-missing. No one knew where the child had gone. He did not have a
-regular nurse; but an old colored servant called Tamar had been in the
-family many years, and she, with other duties, was supposed to keep
-an eye on this child. But Tamar had been negligent this time. Ned was
-missing. The big garden was searched everywhere, thinking possibly he
-had fallen asleep under some of the rose or berry bushes, but Ned was
-not in the garden. Strangely enough, as the boy and dog were counted
-inseparable, Moselle was all right and contentedly sunning himself on a
-pansy bed, which was a favorite place of his, though often scolded and
-chased away for thus flattening the beautiful flowers——”
-
-“Madge, it is your time.”
-
-“As Ned was not found in the garden, the next place to look was all
-over the house, while the cry of ‘Ned! Ned!’ was heard in every room
-and from several windows, for as one after another looked they would
-throw up a window-sash, thinking Ned must be somewhere outside in the
-grounds and would surely hear them call, and they would hear his voice
-in answer, even if they did not see him. But it was all in vain. Ned
-could neither be seen nor heard, and his mother and sister Mary, a girl
-of twelve years old, who were the only ones of the family then at home,
-finally cried with fright and anxiety. But their fright was of short
-duration, for, before an hour had passed, Ned was back perfectly safe,
-without scratch or injury, and having the rested dewy look to his eyes
-which all children have who have lately woke from sleep.
-
-“It was Isaac, the stableman, who found him. No one ever could really
-explain why Moselle was not with him at the time, but the child had
-wandered alone into the stable, and the man passing in and out had
-not noticed him, who, probably tired with play, had fallen asleep
-on the hay. While thus asleep, Isaac had closed the stable door and
-fastened it, preparatory to a three miles’ drive to the flour mill.
-On his return with the meal, the clatter connected with the moving of
-the stable door and getting the horses back had wakened the child, who
-came hurriedly out, rubbing his eyes as he ran, and calling at the
-top of his lungs for Moselle, not knowing others had as loudly been
-calling for him. But Moselle did not answer. There was no running,
-jumping and wagging of the tail from his dog-friend, for Moselle was
-now the missing one. In the gladness of Ned’s being found, neither Mrs.
-Armstrong, nor Mary, nor, indeed, any of the servants, had given the
-dog a thought, and it was not until Ned refused to be comforted that
-one of the help slowly said, ‘There was a poor old soldier here this
-morning, just at the time Isaac came home with the meal. I thought,
-perhaps, Isaac had given him a lift up. He asked for a cup of coffee,
-but I had none made, and didn’t want to take the trouble to make any,
-so I gave him a couple of slices of bread with apple-sauce between. I
-reckon he’s made way with the dog, the mean, contemptible wretch!’
-
-“And he had. Moselle was already miles away from the house of little
-Ned Armstrong, and his companion was the same poorly-clad half-sick
-looking soldier that the housemaid had given the apple-sauce sandwich
-to that morning. The dog was prevented from running home by a strong
-cord fastened around his neck at one end and the other end firmly
-clutched by the man’s hand, and both dog and man had had several helps
-over the road, as their rested-looking condition proved. That night,
-in the city of Wilmington, North Carolina, the soldier sold the dog
-for twenty-three dollars to a handsome young army officer, at present
-stationed at Old Point Comfort, but who had a three days’ leave of
-absence to visit a sick relative at Wilmington. The dog and his new
-master had already started for ‘Old Point’ when the officer suddenly
-remembered—”
-
-“Ernest, your time now.”
-
-“That he had forgotten to ask the dog’s name, and, as he could not take
-time to hunt the man up from whom he had bought the dog, he decided to
-christen him Duke.
-
-“It was the month of March, and the Hygeia Hotel was a gay scene of
-life and beauty. Among the guests was a charming young woman, talented
-and rich, but also very lame. She could not walk without the aid of a
-crutch; but, notwithstanding this detraction, she fascinated everybody
-by her lovely manner and cheerful, sunny disposition. The gentleman who
-had bought Moselle, now called Duke, daily dined at the Hygeia, and
-in a particularly fortunate time was presented to the lame lady. He
-was, therefore, the envy of all the unmarried army officers who, with
-every one else, would delight in thinking of her as their friend. The
-young lady admired Duke very much, and often petted and caressed him,
-and the dog seemed proud and pleased to be in her company. However,
-the time came for the lame lady to return to her home in New York,
-and the dog was left alone with his master, though I might add, not
-alone, for everybody living at the ‘Point’ seemed to know Duke and
-would always praise his beauty. One old gentleman offered two hundred
-dollars for him once, but it was refused, his owner saying, ‘I will
-never sell Duke, though some day I may be tempted to give him away.’
-Duke was taught many tricks while at the Fortress, among others, to
-carry letters. These he would hold in his mouth, but would neither tear
-them with his teeth, nor wet them with his tongue. He was also taught
-to ‘say his prayers,’ which he always did kneeling on a wooden chair,
-with his head resting with closed eyes on the back. When ‘Amen’ was
-said this was the signal to jump over the chair-back and shake himself
-as if pleased to have prayer-time over. One day, as the mail was being
-distributed, Duke, as was his wont, was standing near, and one of the
-officers putting a letter in the dog’s mouth, said: ‘Take that to your
-master. It’s from his friend, the lame lady.’ This the officer meant
-for a joke, but it was really true, and, as the letter concerned Duke,
-we will insert it here:
-
- “‘DEAR MR. G——:
-
- “‘According to promise, I write you the result of the
- operation, which I am sure you will be glad to learn is
- a complete success. My physicians say if I will have
- patience for another month I will then walk as well as
- anybody. Please give Duke an extra pat on my account,
- and whenever you feel constrained to part with him,
- remember
-
- “‘Your friend
- “‘PAULINE JEROME.’
-
-“That settles it!” exclaimed Duke’s master. ‘I learned last night I was
-soon to be sent to California, and I at once decided my good dog and I
-must separate. And now that he can have so kind a mistress, and I have
-this opportunity to win the gratitude of my lovely friend, what a fool
-I would be to hesitate longer. On my way to California, I will arrange
-to pass through New York City, and will then personally give my dog to
-Miss Jerome.’”
-
-“Madeline, will you finish the story?”
-
-“Six months have now passed since Duke exchanged his home at Fortress
-Monroe for the luxurious apartments of his beautiful mistress. The
-dog is constantly tended with the greatest care, groomed as tenderly
-as if made of human flesh. He sleeps in my lady’s room and seems truly
-aristocratic with his lordly bearing. His baby-blue satin ribbon bow,
-knotted into the solid gold collar, which bears his name and address, a
-Christmas gift from his mistress, causes him to appear what indeed he
-has become—almost spoiled with good fortune.
-
-“But what a change a few short hours can make! That night there was
-a cry of ‘Fire!’ My! the alarm and panic it raised! for the fire was
-not noticed until there was so much flame and smoke that it was with
-the utmost difficulty the inmates of the house escaped with their
-lives. Nothing else was saved. Miss Jerome calling to a fireman, said:
-‘Take care of my dog, and I will pay you well.’ The man, catching
-the dog harshly by the collar, fairly dragged him out of the burning
-building, for Duke seemed dazed with smoke and fright. But, on reaching
-the street, the dog was entirely beyond control, and, with wonderful
-strength freed himself from the man’s grasp, strong as it was, and
-dashed down the street. Miss Jerome offered at different times large
-rewards for his return; but it was useless, Duke and his mistress were
-never again to meet, he was as lost to her as if he had never existed.
-Several months passed, after the fire, and the dog once more found
-friends, a home, and his old name, Moselle. Peculiar events happen
-in life, and few more so than the following. Mr. and Mrs. Adams of
-whom this story first told, had gone to the South of France, hoping
-to recover the health of Mrs. Adams, on whose account it will be
-remembered the valued dog had to be parted with. They were accompanied
-by Mr. and Mrs. Armstrong and their children, Ned and May. The older
-people of this party were one morning talking on the lawn connected
-with the Hôtel de Grace, when Ned and May suddenly burst upon them
-accompanied by a large dog, who was jumping and tearing around as if
-wild with joy. Seeing Mr. Adams, he left the children, and, jumping on
-his lap, laid his head on his shoulder and moaned and actually seemed
-to weep with gladness. ‘This is Moselle, Moselle!’ shouted Ned; ‘we
-saw him with an old fiddler out here on the road. I thought he looked
-like my dear old dog, though he is so thin and starved looking, and I
-called “Moselle,” and you should have seen him run. Those long legs
-of his fairly raced to reach me. Indeed, he knocked me down. He was
-too happy to behave, wasn’t you, Moselle?’ and Ned tenderly smoothed
-his beautiful head, which he yet kept on his old master’s shoulder, as
-though they must never be separated again, while his tender brown eyes
-seemed to speak of affectionate content. The family never again parted
-with Moselle until he died, which sad event occurred towards the close
-of the same year. The dog’s exposures and privations after the fire,
-during his varied life, seemed to have weakened and injured him to such
-an extent that, though tender care was constantly lavished, it came too
-late. All that Mr. Adams ever learned of Moselle’s history, he heard
-from the fiddler, who had bought him from an old woman, who said he
-belonged to her son, and that they had had nothing but bad luck since
-the dog was theirs, and she would be glad to get rid of him at any
-price. The fiddler thought the son had stolen the dog, and, as he was
-himself having bad fortune, he determined to leave America and return
-to his own country, and had brought the dog over the sea, thinking in
-that way if there was any wrong dealing connected with the dog he would
-never be discovered. ‘But,’ said the old fiddler, gravely shaking his
-head, ‘I’ve always heard “wrong will out,” and I’m thankful to dispose
-of him for so liberal a compensation as you have so kindly made me.’
-With these words, the fiddler folded his money over, thrust it in his
-pocket and walked away.”
-
-“Thank you for such an entertaining story,” said Aunt Mary; “and now we
-will have our promised drive.”
-
-
-
-
-ORRIN THE BOOTBLACK.
-
-
-“Shine, shine, shine!” the cry was as earnest as it was pitiful. I rose
-from my seat in the cabin of the Fulton Ferry boat, for I was crossing
-from Brooklyn to New York at the time, and found the boy; one glance
-into his honest blue eyes did the rest.
-
-I at once gave him my boots to blacken, regardless of the opinion of my
-man Dennis, that he had put on them an extra polish that morning, and,
-while the almost baby hand continued to shine them into as dazzling a
-glare as blackened boots could reach, I asked him his name, and, giving
-him my card, told him to call on me that evening at seven o’clock.
-
-“Mr. Adams, you surely do not mean me to understand that your protégé,
-who to-night delivered the valedictory address in this honored college,
-and the bootblack are one and the same?”
-
-“I do.”
-
-The above conversation was between the President of the college and the
-senior member of the Board of Trustees.
-
-“Yes; he is the same, and yet not the same, because then he was such
-a sad little fellow, and now he is full of jokes and wholesome pranks,
-a merry wit that gladdens my old days, and almost makes a boy of me
-again. At one time, though, I thought he would never laugh; it was such
-an apology for a smile that I first saw cross his prematurely wizened
-face. But how long ago it now seems! Let me see,” thoughtfully counting
-one, two, three on his fingers, “why, it must be twelve years since
-then. How time flies!”
-
-“Yes, time always does fly, when we are busy and happy. But are you
-aware that your Orrin is one of our youngest men? He gave his age as
-twenty-two!”
-
-“Quite correct.”
-
-“Well, I am confounded at your information. I am as curious as I am
-interested. Would you mind some time telling me the rest of the boy’s
-story?”
-
-“Not at all; why not spend to-morrow evening with me? You know we sail
-Saturday for the continent, and after that our movements are uncertain.
-Orrin has worked hard, and I have promised him this treat, and, though
-he does not know it, I am contemplating leaving him at Oxford for a
-year or two. By the way, I would like your opinion as to that. But one
-thing is sure—if he stays in England, I stay too. I could not put the
-ocean between us. You cannot imagine how my heart holds that boy;
-so, if you really want to hear my chap’s story, you would better come
-to-morrow night.”
-
-“I will come.”
-
-It was evening, and, when the two men were comfortably seated in Mr.
-Adams’ library, the following was told.
-
-Mr. Adams prefaced the recital with the words: “I will photograph Orrin
-as he first appeared in my home, and then, as nearly as my memory
-can recall our conversation, I will give it. Twelve years ago, about
-seven o’clock in the evening, a maid told me that a small poorly-clad
-lad, with a box under his arm, was asking to see me. He had entered
-by the lower door. I directed her to bring him to me, and, strangely
-enough, in my comfortable lounging-chair, with the evening paper for
-companion, I had entirely forgotten the engagement I had made, but
-the girl’s words instantly recalled all, and, a few moments later, I
-was addressing him. His manner was neither shy nor bold. He appeared
-neither surprised nor bewildered. I did not note the confused air,
-which I could reasonably expect. He met my gaze with the honest, frank
-look that I first noticed, but he seemed sad, even painfully. He was
-such a small boy. He evidently was what is so rarely found—a gentleman.
-I almost exclaimed as he stood in the doorway, for I noticed the way
-he held his cap; Beau Brummell in his most happy days could not have
-done better, and the bow with which he answered my ‘good evening,’ as
-well as the response to my asking him to take a chair, made me say
-to myself, ‘Adams, you must look out, or this little bootblack will
-leave you leagues rearward in the manner question!’ His hair was dark,
-very glossy, and slightly curly. His face and hands almost shone with
-cleanliness. I especially noticed his nails, and, knowing his business,
-was surprised to find that they, also, were quite clean. His height was
-decidedly small for his age (he did not really seem to grow much until
-he was about seventeen years old, and then how he shot up! he is just
-six feet tall now); his clothes were not patched, but threadbare and
-ragged. The material was fine. His trousers only came to his knees, and
-both shoes and stockings were visibly the worse for wear. He was not a
-pretty boy, but a manly-looking little fellow. His complexion was fair,
-but pallid; indeed, the boy wore a starved, pinched look. His jacket,
-which was buttoned with brass buttons to the neck, hung on him, as if
-he had grown thinner since it was made. So much for my photograph. Now
-for our conversation, which will give you a better idea of the boy,
-than if only using my own words.
-
-“‘Good evening, my little man.’
-
-“‘Good evening, sir.’
-
-“‘You blackened my boots so well this morning, I thought I would like
-to talk with you about your business to-night.’
-
-“‘Thank you, sir.’
-
-“‘How long have you been a bootblack?’
-
-“‘Seven weeks.’
-
-“‘Have you made much money?’
-
-“‘I make more now than at first, sir.’
-
-“‘How much is the most you have made a week?’
-
-“‘Last week, sir, I made ninety-five cents.’
-
-“‘How much is the least you ever made?’
-
-“‘Fifteen, sir; that was my first week, when I was new in the business.’
-
-“‘You live with your parents, I suppose?’
-
-“‘No, sir.’
-
-“‘Don’t live with your parents? Whom do you live with?’
-
-“‘With myself.’
-
-“‘You, a little midget like you, live by yourself! Where do you sleep?’
-
-“‘Wherever I can find a place.’
-
-“‘Where did you sleep last night?’
-
-“‘You won’t tell, sir, if I tell you?’
-
-“‘No.’
-
-“‘Well, I’ve slept for three nights, now, in a covered wagon. It has
-been left outside, and, some way, no one has ever seen me crawl into
-it. Please don’t tell any one, sir. I really don’t hurt the wagon.’
-
-“‘But why don’t you go home? Do your parents drink?’
-
-“‘I have no home, sir; my parents are dead; they are both in heaven.’
-And then the little hands hastily undid the few top buttons of his
-jacket, and untied a black shoe lace which served as a chain. Then,
-stepping nervously towards me, he said; ‘Would you like to see mamma’s
-picture?’
-
-“I tell you what, sir, this action, united to the boy’s words, unmanned
-me. ‘John Adams,’ I asked myself, ‘you’ll befriend this boy?’ And John
-Adams answered, ‘I will.’
-
-“The picture was painted on porcelain, a medallion resting on dark blue
-velvet; the whole was framed in a band of narrow gold. The woman was a
-blonde, delicate looking, but very beautiful. She had an intellectual
-face, and seemed of good birth. In age about twenty-five years.
-
-“‘Has your mother been dead long?’ I next asked.
-
-“‘She died when I was born, and I am ten years old. Papa gave me her
-picture, and I always wear it. I would starve, sir, but I would never
-part from it.’ I am sure the boy has it on now, but I would not like
-to ask him to show it to you. He is sensitive, and I would not risk
-hurting him.”
-
-“No, indeed, I would not have you, if you were ever so willing. And
-what more, Mr. Adams? It is well I did not know of this while he was
-in college; I am afraid I should have spoiled him.”
-
-“Well, I asked him if he had brothers or sisters. His reply was—
-
-“‘I had one brother; he died a year ago.’
-
-“‘How long since your father died?’
-
-“‘Eight weeks, sir.’
-
-“‘And you started at the boot-blacking business one week later?’
-
-“‘Yes, sir.’
-
-“‘What was your father’s business?’
-
-“‘When he was in business, he was a stockbroker.’
-
-“‘A stockbroker!’ I exclaimed, although I was positive before, judging
-from his mother’s picture, that he was born above his present position.
-‘And you say there was a time when your father was not in business. How
-long ago was that?’
-
-“‘The last two years of his life, after he became blind.’
-
-“‘Tell me all about it, my good boy.’
-
-“‘My father, sir, must have made a great deal of money; we lived in
-such a handsome house.’
-
-“‘As handsome as this?’
-
-“Looking around before he replied,—
-
-“‘Oh, yes, sir.’
-
-“‘You say your mother was dead. Who, then, kept house for you?’
-
-“‘Mrs. Prentiss, our housekeeper. I had a nurse first, Nurse Ann, and
-when I got to be a big boy, I had a governess. She taught me to read,
-write, and all I know. I have never been to school. We had several
-servants, and my father kept horses. It was the house in which mamma
-died, and everything, papa said, must be as she kept house. But, one
-day, I know not how it happened, my father lost a great deal of money,
-and a lot of strange people came to the house, and almost all of our
-beautiful things were sold. All the servants left but one, and my
-governess. Papa and I lived then in a few rooms. I used to hear papa
-talk about his eyes, at that time, and one day he went to see a doctor
-about them. When he came back he told me: ‘My son, I am going to be
-blind,’ and then explained to me exactly what that meant. He told me
-that the reason he would be blind was because he had used too much
-tobacco. My father smoked a great many cigars every day, and sometimes
-a pipe. He chewed tobacco too. I felt frightened when I heard all of
-this, and I remember I cried and papa comforted me. He afterwards
-asked me to repeat these words after him. ‘My papa was blind. His
-optic nerves were hurt because he used too much tobacco. I will never
-smoke or chew.’ My papa had me repeat these words until I knew them
-perfectly, and then I said them once every day to him until he died. I
-say them every day to myself now. My papa became blind very soon after
-we left our home, and about six months before he died he was sick most
-of the time. My governess left one day, and then I had no more lessons.
-And almost every day our things would be sold, until, when papa died,
-we had most nothing left. About a week after he was buried, some men
-came to our rooms, and then our girl left, and the men told me I must
-go too. I could not live there any more. They gave me my clothes, and
-one of the men gave me a dollar. I cried so hard that another man said
-he would take me home with him, and I could stay two or three nights at
-his house until I could get some work and make money for myself. That
-was why I became a bootblack. This man told me it was a good business,
-and, because I was so little and did not know what to do, the man and
-his wife made me a present of my outfit and told me to watch other
-bootblacks and cry out: “Shine, shine,” and so get business. The man
-gave me his boots to black while I stopped at the house and that taught
-me the way, for I never had blackened boots before. I stayed with these
-kind people for one week, and since then I have taken care of myself.’
-
-“‘Have you no relations?’
-
-“‘None I have ever seen. The day before papa died, he told me I was
-soon to be all alone in the world, that I had no relatives, and then he
-said: “Your relatives are all dead, my son, or dead to you.” That is
-all I know, sir.’
-
-“My heart ached for the child as he finished, and I thought, let the
-consequence be what it would, he should not leave my house that night.
-I asked him his name.
-
-“‘Orrin Thorndyke,’ was the reply.
-
-“I told him he was to remain overnight with me, and that to-morrow
-I would investigate his story. This he readily did. He seemed to be
-satisfied to do exactly as he was told; he had evidently not yet
-gotten away from the manner of obeying his father. I think I told you
-he was prematurely old; his strange life had made him so. That night
-I scarcely slept, so full of plans was I for the future. As you know,
-I have always been a bachelor with plenty of money and no relatives
-who will ever need help through me. Before morning I decided that, if
-on investigation I found the bootblack’s story correct, I would at
-once adopt him and do for him as I would for an only son. This I have
-conscientiously tried to do, and, coming in and out of this house as
-the friend you are, I trust you think I have done right.”
-
-“You certainly have.”
-
-“I have noticed your admiration for my boy, and I have been very glad
-of it; and how well I remember the first time you saw him! You said I
-was to be congratulated in having for my protégé such a manly little
-fellow, and then you added, ‘Blood is sure, Adams, and I give up
-judging forever after, if good blood is not in this boy’s veins.’ Of
-course, when the child became mine, I wanted him to bear my name, but
-you never knew before that the Orrin Thorndyke part was his own. Some
-way, I could not ask him to part with it altogether, and so I had mine
-simply added.”
-
-“Oh, what a man you are; it takes time to know you, Adams. And at last,
-I have found out why you so suddenly gave up smoking.”
-
-“That is a fact. How could I smoke with that child’s story running not
-only in my ears, but through my heart? But what do you think of Orrin
-smoking three cigars every day!”
-
-“Surely, you are joking!”
-
-“No; I will tell you how he does it. When he was fourteen years of age,
-I gave him a monthly allowance, because I wished him to early learn the
-management of money. One day, shortly after, he came to me with the
-question, would I permit him to set aside the value of three five-cent
-cigars a day, and when the amount would reach five dollars he desired
-to put it in the bank and so open a smoking account. He also said he
-would regularly add to this amount as he could accumulate five dollars,
-and that he would not withdraw the money, but allow it to increase both
-principal and interest until he was thirty years of age, at which
-time he and I could decide what would be done with it. This I readily
-agreed to do. And now that he has been ‘smoking,’ as he puts it, three
-five-cent cigars every day for eight years, the amount already in the
-bank, at four per cent. interest, is not a small one. Why, in the first
-year, without interest, he saved nearly fifty-five dollars!”
-
-“If only I had tried that scheme when I was fourteen years old, I would
-be a rich man now,” replied the President; “however, it is not yet too
-late to start the plan with my grandchildren.”
-
-
-
-
-BREAKFAST-TABLE DECORATION.
-
-
-“Mabel!”
-
-“Well, mamma!”
-
-“Come to breakfast, dearie.” The call was given through the wide
-lattice which opened on the garden. And at once the little girl obeyed
-the summons.
-
-And what a charming picture was given when the child presented herself
-in the half-open doorway, with her big blue eyes, the blue of the sky
-overhead, cheeks that rivalled the peach blossom’s rich redness, and
-lips wide parted, with the merry laugh that rippled over and over the
-upturned face; for at that moment she was bubbling beyond control with
-mischief and sparkle, partly on account of the buoyancy of the early
-morning atmosphere, but mostly because of the raid she had made on the
-morning-glory vines, as her laden hands and arms could testify.
-
-“I haven’t struck the right combination yet,” were her mother’s words,
-at the same time touching a majolica dish of flowers that served as
-ornament for the breakfast-table.
-
-“Well, _I have_! An idea has just sprung on me, seized me, as it were!
-Stand still where you are, little sister, until Tom comes back again,”
-and then away the boy flew, in his clumsy energy tripping over an
-ottoman that was always at Mabel’s place at table, because she was not
-yet tall enough to put her feet on the floor.
-
-It seemed but a second when he returned with a cut-glass bowl in his
-hands, filled within one-third of the top with fresh, cold water; and
-with an air of triumph he removed the majolica dish, depositing the
-bowl in its stead.
-
-Then, going to the little girl, who had stood motionless in obedience
-to her big brother’s command, and with the words, “Let Tom have some
-of your pretty flowers,” he took first one and then another. The color
-values, as she held the morning-glories, appealed to him, there was
-such richness of reds, purples, lavenders and white, with their many
-intermediate shades, which blended softly with the green leaves, vines
-and tendrils. When he had taken enough to fill, not crowd the bowl,
-there were many exclamations of satisfaction, for all was harmony. The
-white tablecloth was a fitting background to the variety of color, and
-the delicate, graceful flowers gave such a pleasant welcome at this
-first meal of the new day.
-
-Morning-glories should be oftener used for the breakfast-table. Try
-what you can do with them, boys and girls, and thus give a pleasant
-surprise to your mother. Another pretty table decoration would be to
-plant woodland vines, and also ferns, oxalis, and pretty wild grasses
-in an ornamental piece of earthenware, one that would add beauty to the
-dinner-table.
-
-Take such a piece to the country with you, and remember to fill it with
-forest mould before you put in the woodland plants; it will be most
-pleasing, and prove a joy all winter if you will properly water it;
-that is, keep it wet, not soggy.
-
-
-
-
-HOW THEY PLANTED THE NASTURTIUMS.
-
-
-Such a clamor of voices reached grandma’s ears that her first thought
-was that the children must have the garden, at the very least, half
-filled with their schoolmates. But when the old lady rose from her big
-armchair to take a sharp look around from the window, she was amazed
-to learn that all the confusion was made by her two happy, healthy
-grandchildren Margaret and Marshall, and they were as busy as could be,
-planting and fussing over nasturtium plants.
-
-“See us, grandma,” were the pleasant if imperative words when they
-saw their grandmother with her head stretched out as far as possible,
-looking first one way and then another.
-
-“See you? Well, I should say I did, and what are you doing with that
-old umbrella frame, Marshall?” was the questioning response.
-
-“Getting ready for our nasturtiums,” and the boy tossed his head
-laughingly towards a large quantity of the golden brown blossoms,
-digging energetically all the while, though, as if moments were more
-precious than he could tell.
-
-As grandma was anxious to learn all about the planting, first Marshall
-and then Margaret told her just what they were about to do. The
-gardener at the Jenkins place explained what he did. “And I never saw
-nasturtiums look as pretty before,” said Margaret, with a sedate shake
-of her head. “Besides, it is an altogether new idea, not the old sort
-of a thing that everybody knows. It commences by planting an umbrella
-frame, putting the handle deep enough down not to break off with the
-first strong wind, or with the weight of vines, either, in case they
-should grow a trifle heavier on one side than the other, though, of
-course, this we will try to prevent. The umbrella should not be put
-in a corner, but in an open bed, where people can walk all around it.
-This frame of ours has eight sticks, and at each one we will plant a
-root. And we are going to plant two at the handle, one on either side,
-and not close enough to crowd each other. As the vines grow, they will
-be trained up the handle and along the sticks, making the effect of a
-diminutive tent, and while this old frame is rather an ungainly sight
-at present, in a few weeks the bed will be simply gorgeous.
-
-“Oh, they are so pretty!” Margaret continued, lightly and fondly
-touching the bright flowers, “such a variety of shades, yellow,
-orange, even to a deep brown, and the vine is willing to wind any way
-we will; it is naturally graceful, with just enough foliage and not too
-much. Why, the old frame will be the prettiest thing in all the country
-around.”
-
-“I only hope our neighbors will not watch and try the same thing for
-themselves,” was Marshall’s interjection.
-
-“They probably will not before next summer,” was grandma’s assuring
-comment, “and then your nasturtium umbrella would be one year old.”
-
-
-
-
-A GARDEN PARTY.
-
-
-Dinners, receptions, and concerts have been attended through the winter
-until everybody is tired of the old routine; but entertainment which
-is associated with trees, flowers, gorgeous sunsets, out-of-door life,
-touches the heart and makes of every such occasion a real joy.
-
-How shall we give a _fête champêtre_?
-
-A lawn is a necessity, and should the trees not prove sufficiently
-exclusive, surround the grounds with canvas. The canvas may be
-concealed with boughs of green, running vines, flags, banners, or
-anything that will lessen its ugliness. The entire grounds must be
-decorated. Japanese lanterns might be used freely; several hundreds
-of them will be required, as they should be liberally scattered
-everywhere—not only in the grounds, on the trees or canvas serving as
-fence, but on the piazzas of the house.
-
-A good orchestra should be hidden behind a clump of balsam or other
-bushy trees. The leader should be untiring in his efforts to give
-enough and desirable music. If ballads are sung, the orchestra leader
-is responsible for the accompaniment, and he is equally responsible
-for the dances, should such be given. The air should be filled with
-music, but to the pleasure and not the annoyance of guests.
-
-Conversation and music are always important factors of entertainment;
-but to these an extravaganza may be added, or a play—for example, the
-whole or part of _As You Like It_, or _A Midsummer Night’s Dream_.
-
-Should _As You Like It_ be given, screen a section of the lawn to
-represent the Duke’s palace. A conversation-room may readily be
-arranged. Remove one or more screens and see a room, the ceiling of
-which would be the sky; the side walls folding screens, which may be
-adjusted to any shape and size; the floor would be the grass covered
-with rugs. On these rugs stand a few chairs, a couch, and a small
-table. With such surroundings, altogether at home would Celia seem,
-while she would say:
-
- “Why, cousin; why Rosalind;—
- Cupid have mercy!—Not a word?”
-
-The many songs, especially “Under the Greenwood tree” and “What shall
-He have that killed the Deer?” would prove very appropriate in the
-forest of Arden environment, and the trees would be quite in place for
-the love-verses of Orlando.
-
-Or the guests might be served with a literary salad. Paste or draw
-pictures on cards to illustrate the title of a book, and give one to
-each person. Whoever shall make a correct guess without assistance
-within fifteen minutes may be presented with a wreath of laurel. This
-may be worn on the head or carried on the arm.
-
-Sometimes a _fête champêtre_ is given for sweet charity. It then
-assumes a different phase, as booths, chalets, or tents are erected,
-within which saleable articles are offered. An effective fête might
-be given in athletic grounds, which should be noticeably gay with
-streamers of bunting and little and big flags. At such a fête a large
-orchestra should play the entire afternoon.
-
-It would be very attractive if those in charge of the chalets would
-represent milkmaids, as this allows picturesque apparel. The young
-ladies might go bareheaded, or wear a gay handkerchief coquettishly
-knotted under their braids or curls, or cover their heads altogether by
-donning the new lawn sunbonnet, which is such a dainty feature of this
-summer’s outing.
-
-The chalets should be small lean-tos, their roofs tilting towards the
-back and resting on four poles, one at each corner. These chalets
-should be festively trimmed, and contain such products as milk, cream,
-cheese, and eggs. As these are all necessities in housekeeping, the
-financial result should be quite large.
-
-Gowns and hats, flounces and ribbons, form a conspicuous part of
-a _fête champêtre_. Sheer grenadines, nets, and gauzes, clouds of
-Valenciennes lace, beflowered organdies, any of the effective summer
-costumes, the more fetching the combination the more satisfactory the
-attire. The color contrasts are allowed to a greater extreme than for
-street apparel, and brilliant colors produce a smart effect on the
-lawn; and yet the dainty white, yellow, pink, or blue fabrics may be
-always afterwards worn to advantage, they are so fresh and youthful.
-
-The smart costume requires the broad-brimmed hat coquettishly rolled,
-and massed with lilacs, morning-glories, sweet-pease, roses, or
-carnations, and the often added long ribbon streamers. But the flower
-toque, and the parasol of white mousseline de soie trimmed with flowers
-and a flounce of lace, and the pretty or quaint fan, aid the charming
-gown in producing an artistic effect.
-
-The guests arrive in pony carriages, high carts, or victorias, and the
-closed brougham, like an old friend, is always admissible. The host and
-the hostess seem especially cordial, standing, as they do, under the
-broad branches of a tall tree. Indeed, stern Madam Propriety would deem
-such warmth of welcome scarcely permissible under a lighted chandelier.
-But if, as it has been known to happen, the day of the fête should
-also be the day of the worst storm of the entire season, the guests
-are received, if possible, on the piazza, and all aid in making merry
-and helping the hostess to such an extent that people forget that a
-_fête champêtre_ was ever considered, and that it was not meant to be a
-house party from the beginning. Of course no one should allude to the
-weather; that would be decidedly out of form, and be very unkind to the
-hostess, who certainly cannot stop the storm.
-
-In such a shaping of events refreshments are served in-doors, if
-possible using the same little tables intended for the lawn, the
-cloths, which are edged about with ferns and field-flowers in variety,
-added to the pretty china and cut glass used in serving the menu, lend
-the charm of beauty.
-
-The menu for such a function may be the same as that given at an
-evening reception, or it may be the simple refreshment provided for an
-afternoon tea, with an added salad or ice. But as an afternoon spent in
-the open air gives good appetite, liberal refreshment will be in order.
-
-
-
-
-THE KING’S CHILDREN.
-
-
-“Pearly! Pearly!”
-
-It was a woman’s shrill voice that fiercely shrieked the name out into
-the morning air.
-
-We were homeward bound from the Old Red Spring in Saratoga, when we
-were arrested by her screams. The sun shone brightly, the robins and
-other song birds were trilling out their sweetest melodies, the air
-was heavily scented with white clover blossoms and sweetbrier. It was
-a rarely beautiful July morning. All the world to us was melody, save
-the jar made by this thin, haggard, unkempt woman. In her effort to be
-heard she travelled along the road in the direction she thought Pearly
-must have gone, crushing the daisies and buttercups down before her.
-
-Two Sabbaths before we had sat at the communion table, and then felt a
-kinship to all, that our brothers and sisters were not only those of
-our very own by ties of blood, but were close to us the round world
-over. The Sabbath before, as the clergyman said, “freely ye have
-received, freely give,” we thought more of the giving of ourselves
-than of our money, more of letting others have a share of the good
-gifts that had been our lot, joy, music, loving-kindness generally,
-than of offering our filthy lucre. Indeed, it seemed a great descent,
-for we had been taken up on the moment by our pastor’s tender words,
-and now must remember Vanity Fair and the necessity for money in this
-worldly world. And so thinking, this woman with the wild, disagreeable
-voice, stopped us; and should we not do something to help her, was the
-question put to ourselves.
-
-She was one of the resident Saratogians. Cross, possibly, because she
-was tired; haggard, because she had no time for rest. To her the Spring
-waters were as a myth, and the dry, bracing air little considered in
-her work-a-day existence. We, therefore, turning in the direction in
-which this woman went, commenced our search for the little girl, for
-such we decided she was, but all in vain. Whether Pearly, familiar to
-the harsh voice and recognizing extra work or disagreeable duty as
-a result of coming to the front, had hidden behind the large clumps
-of elderberry bushes which grew thickly around, or had run off to
-the woods for protection, we know not; we only know that we had to
-leave the woman to conclude her search alone. But the words, “Pearly!
-Pearly!” now and again caught our ear, though indistinctly, as the
-distance widened between us, and later we lost the sound altogether.
-Then it was that another Pearly came into our thought.
-
-She had been baptized Margaret; but the old-fashioned long name had
-been shortened during her babyhood to the beautiful name, “Pearl.” She
-has always been loving and lovable, and always seemed consecrated, even
-from her cradle. Many of the wise people have often gravely said of
-her, “That child can never live to grow up. She is too good.” But she
-has lived to grow up, and, nothing happening, in a year or two more
-she will be graduated from one of our most respected women’s colleges.
-She, even as a little child, never had to be punished. “Pearl, that
-is wrong; you should not act or speak that way,” was the most serious
-chiding she ever needed to receive; for when told she had done wrong,
-she would immediately say, “I will try never to do that again.” And she
-invariably would keep her promise.
-
-As a schoolgirl she is a general favorite, being popular enough
-to receive the unanimous vote for class president, for Pearl is a
-sunny, bright, sympathetic girl. The truly good are always the truly
-happy. Her religion is of the character to attract, not to repel. And
-possibly there are nowhere to be found keener or more severe critics
-than schoolgirls are of one another. The long-faced piety, as it is
-sometimes called, would receive from them only ridicule and contempt.
-The abandon of youth is not slow in exposing what they consider
-trustless and wrong.
-
-But my story would be too long to tell many incidents in the life of
-Pearl; to tell the many ways she has helped all with whom her short
-life of eighteen years has brought her in contact; to tell of her
-sympathetic words, helpful handclasp, feet swift to run on deeds of
-kindness, voice raised in song, thus aiding others in the schoolroom,
-the prayer-meeting or the home. Indeed, Pearl was constantly forming
-new ties, thus binding the hearts of all who met her to herself.
-
-The incident of which I would particularly write is her work as a
-King’s Daughter. She was one of the earliest to join this organization,
-and the first band she formed was to pay for the education of a young
-girl in the same school as herself. This young girl was the only child
-of a rich father, but it was the old story—a dishonest partner used
-the firm’s money for speculating purposes, and in an evil hour all was
-gone; not only money, but reputation also, and Elsie, the only child,
-must now leave school, it seemed, forever. Then it was Pearl came to
-the rescue; and first binding her ten to secrecy, because it would
-wound Elsie to ever know, it was arranged with the President and
-officers of the school that this band should pay for Elsie’s schooling;
-and she will graduate with Pearl, all unconscious of the one to whom
-she is indebted.
-
-Elsie’s father was notified by the school President that his daughter
-was too much beloved not to have an opportunity to finish her
-education. If he was ever able to refund the money, all right, if not,
-it was still all right; and this is all Elsie or her father know.
-
-Since then Pearl has started nine other bands, each doing noble
-work for Christ and humanity. With only one of these is she herself
-connected. It every year supports ten poor, aged women, who otherwise
-would be obliged to go to the almshouse. By the help of this King’s
-Daughters’ Band these women remain in their own little homes, passing
-the hours as their desires dictate, and not feeling the pain which
-Will Carleton so vividly describes in his poem, “Over the Hills to the
-Poorhouse.” No wonder that these poor old women frequently ask God’s
-blessing on these young girls, for they are so comfortable and happy as
-they thus quietly wait for the summons to the other home whose builder
-and maker is God. And no wonder that Pearl wears a happy face, for the
-face indicates the heart within. The good she has done, and may yet do,
-will never be known here, nor is it necessary. Sufficient for Pearl
-will be the words which we hope will also be ours some day, “Enter thou
-into the joy of thy Lord.”
-
-
-
-
-FOR THE BOYS.
-
-
-Why should not the boys be as busy and helpful as the girls?
-
-Why should not the boys form their “Try Bands,” “Working Circles” and
-“King’s Sons’ Societies?”
-
-There is no reason. Will not, therefore, the willing, manly boys who
-read this enlist their friends to help at least one of their heathen
-brothers to a Christian education? It is work that will give abundant
-reward.
-
-American boys know how much care is taken for their education. Not
-only are their teachers, but their mothers, fathers, brothers sisters
-and other relatives, their constant instructors. The greatest culture
-and opportunity surround them; valuable libraries are ever at their
-disposal. There are numberless free schools, art rooms and museums.
-Beside the private academies, institutes, and colleges, there are
-Young Men’s Christian Association rooms, Christian Endeavor Societies,
-churches and Sunday-schools, all open and giving hearty welcome. Not so
-are the privileges of the boys in India, China and Japan. For though
-the Bible and our missionaries have done a great deal to help the
-heathen boy, his surroundings are dark indeed, in contrast with those
-of children in Christian lands. Indeed, it is rare that a heathen boy
-is not a castaway by his family when he confesses Christ. Instead of
-relatives being a help to his life, they are among his greatest sorrows.
-
-Boys ought to be willing to give other boys a chance, especially when
-they stand alone. If ten boys would form a band, they could easily
-collect thirty dollars a year, and thirty dollars would pay all the
-yearly expenses of a boy in a mission school or academy. This academy
-prepares boys for the theological seminary, and the seminary fits them
-for the ministry. Indeed, when in the academy, boys often go out to
-talk and sing to those who do not know of Christ. They feel sure that
-their heathen friends are missing so much in not knowing Jesus, that
-they cannot wait until they have completed their studies; but as soon
-as they know about Jesus themselves they are impatient to tell others.
-They can talk to their friends with greater effect than missionaries
-from this country, because they understand their customs and ways.
-Besides, the terrible heat in India does not affect them as it does
-people who go from this country. Very often our missionaries and their
-families have to return to America on account of their health.
-
-Some of the boys in India are very bright. I will tell you of one who
-is about fifteen years of age, and is a student in the Arcot Academy,
-India. His name is Joseph, son of the catechist Israel; his mother’s
-name is Rachel. You will notice they are all Bible names. This family
-were once heathen, but now all know and love Christ, and are happy
-in working for Him. I lately had the pleasure of reading a letter
-written and composed by Joseph, without any aid from his instructors.
-I wish it were possible for my boy readers to see his penmanship; it
-seemed nearly as perfect as copperplate. Each letter was very distinct
-and prettily shaded. Every word was spelled correctly, and while his
-composition had not the exact style we would use, it was very direct
-and intelligible. I doubt if many American boys of Joseph’s age could
-do better with a French or German letter, or in writing in any other
-language than their own. Thinking you might be interested in hearing
-from Joseph, particularly as he tells of what he does on the Sabbath,
-and of his school life, I will quote directly from his letter:
-
- “MADRAS PRESIDENCY, Ranipet, India.
-
- “MOST RESPECTED AND KIND MADAM:
-
- “My superiors, teachers and fellow-students are doing
- well up to this time by the grace of our Almighty,
- hoping the same for you....
-
- “I solicit you, dear madam, pray for me that I may obey
- my superiors; I don’t like to have the name of our Lord
- Jesus Christ in vain. But I want to publish His name.
-
- “Every Sunday we all go over the country and preach
- about the Gospel. Many of the heathen become Christians.
-
- “There are eight bands in the school. When we are going
- to preach, each band will take three or four lyrics,
- some tracts, a cymbal, and a jalar or tambourine. When
- we are singing many men and women and children will
- come to hear us.
-
- “After our preaching is over we take account of the
- men, women and children who come to hear our preaching.
- Most of them will ask questions, and we will answer
- them. Many of them will abuse the name of our Lord
- Jesus Christ. Though they abused Him, we won’t leave
- these men, since they don’t understand what Christ
- has done for the world. We have meeting every Friday
- evening, and in that meeting we will give our reports
- of the men who heard the Word of Christ.”
-
-Referring to his studies, he writes:
-
- “Now there are four classes, viz., matriculation class,
- the fifth class, the lower secondary class, and the
- lower fourth class. There are five teachers, including
- our manager. Each class changes its lessons after
- one hour. Our manager teaches general English for the
- four classes, and also takes English history for the
- fifth class, and science, physics and chemistry for
- the sixth class. He shows many good examples and gives
- us good games. He is very kind toward us. We have many
- sorts of games. Tennis and football and cricket and
- gymnasium exercises. Our manager teaches us cricket
- every evening.”
-
-As this boy is writing to the one who supports him, he closes in the
-following manner:
-
- “I thank the Lord for having given me a supporter. I
- render my warm and delightful obeisance to respected
- and dear madam. I remain your most obedient
-
- “PONNOR ISAAC JOSEPH.”
-
-After reading this letter, which is not a fancy sketch, picture
-in your mind Joseph, his surroundings, a young Hindoo boy, whose
-dark-skinned face glows enthusiastically with his love for Christ
-and with his ardent desire to tell others of his love, writing in a
-strange tongue to a lady whom he has never seen. He has her photograph,
-and has received letters from her, but her voice and manner are only
-conjectures in his mind. He is writing to this lady, who has been the
-means of his salvation, of freeing him from his yoke borne by his
-countrymen. Try to picture this, and then see if in your own heart
-there is not a strong desire to free more than one boy in that dark
-land. In freeing one, you free others: do not forget that.
-
-
-
-
-“I WISH I WERE A GENERAL.”
-
-
- “If wishes were horses,
- Beggars might ride.”
-
-“Have you ever heard that, Jo?”
-
-“_Heard_ it, what kind of a bringing up has a fellow had, do you
-think? You know well enough that ever since I was in knickerbockers,
-that immortal rhyme has been drilled into me. I’m sick and tired of
-sermonizing, and all I have to say is, if you don’t wish for something
-grand, something beyond you, you never will amount to anything.”
-
-“That is true, Jo, but wishing without action will not accomplish much.
-I’ve heard you make at least twenty wishes this morning. One, ‘I wish I
-was rich!’ just as though that were anything new; all boys wish that.
-Then you wished you were somebody great, somebody famous, like Cæsar
-or the Czar of Russia, or the President of the United States. Then
-you wished your father could only let you have a college education so
-that you might be a lawyer. And then, to go on to smaller matters, you
-wished it was Christmas, so that you might have vacation. And lastly,
-you wished you were a fine bicycle rider, so that you might win the
-prize in the coming race. I tell you, old fellow, I long ago learned
-such a wholesome lesson on the wishing point, that it made me over new,
-so to speak.”
-
-“How so, John? now I am interested, for I thought you had been perfect
-from your youth up.”
-
-“Well, to begin with the beginning and make an out-and-out confession,
-I’ll have to introduce you to my Uncle Charles. I wish you knew General
-Journay; I know you would like him even if he is an odd-looking man;
-he was once very handsome. He is too sensible to think he is handsome
-now, though, for there is no denying that he’s fat. He says it is
-constitutional, and maybe it is. I notice he is very uncomfortable,
-short of breath, you know; gets a red face in climbing up the stairs
-to the elevated road, and all that, but he’s jolly and good, and says
-he wants me to be a manly man, and I am going to try my best to please
-him. You know I am not as rich in relations as you are, for my parents
-died when I was a baby, and I never had either brothers or sisters;
-perhaps that’s one reason I think so much of you, Jo. Well, to go on
-with my story, when I was about twelve years old I went to visit for a
-week at my Uncle Charles’ home. He was delighted to have me with him,
-and I never tired of his companionship, or of looking at his soldier’s
-uniform, his sword and his medals. One day I said to him, ‘Oh, Uncle,
-I wish I were a General,’ and he replied, ‘There is no reason why you
-cannot be one, my boy, if the right material is only in you.’”
-
-“‘What do you mean by right material, Uncle?’ I inquired.
-
-“‘Why, humility, obedience, courage, honesty, truthfulness.’
-
-“‘I did not know that soldiers were ever humble.’
-
-“‘You must be humble enough to enter the lowest ranks, obedient enough
-to follow orders, courageous enough to face any emergency, honest
-enough to submit to pain rather than to steal, and truthful enough
-never to soil your lips or conscience with a lie.’
-
-“Then my uncle told me of his own boyhood, of his poverty, his
-hindrances, his temptations; and I saw that the rank of General did not
-come by wishing, but by the greatest endurance, study, and hard work. I
-tell you what, Jo, as I listened to his story I felt so ashamed, and so
-small, I thought I would like to crawl away in a hole, anywhere almost,
-if I could only hide, for you know my uncle is such a noble, grand man.
-Then, too, my uncle told me of our great inventors, officers, rulers,
-whom the world is delighted to honor, and I saw that wishing had but
-little to do with their achievements and successes. I saw I had to
-buckle on my own armor and go to work.
-
-“That night I could scarcely sleep; I kept thinking how insignificant
-uncle must think me, for I knew I had often wished for this, that and
-the other thing in his presence, and so when I did sleep I dreamed
-that I was in the woods, and I thought that all the bushes and trees
-were waving, and one big branch seemed like a long, bare arm beckoning
-to me. I felt an awesome, queer, uncanny feeling, and I was sure I
-was losing my way. I saw one and another path, but which one to take
-I knew not, when suddenly I heard a laugh; this frightened me so much
-that I jumped; then a voice said, ‘You little goosey-gander, what a
-brave soldier you would make, to be sure, afraid of a little laugh;’
-and then I heard ha! ha! ha! and what seemed to me to be the most
-uproarious laughter, the shout of a hundred fairies. Soon a tiny old
-woman approached me saying, ‘I am a fairy queen. Ask for whatever you
-may wish while you are in my domain?’
-
-“At once I exclaimed: ‘I wish to be the oldest General living.’ And
-there I was, a general in very truth, but so old I could scarcely
-see, so deaf I could scarcely hear; and I was dressed in a costume
-similar to my uncle’s. My hands were wrinkled, a long beard hung over
-my breast, but it was as white as snow. My mouth felt so queer that
-I lifted my hand to discover the reason, and alas! my teeth were all
-gone. I tried to walk, but I was so stiff I could scarcely place one
-foot before the other. ‘Oh, what a fool I have been,’ I thought. ‘If
-only I were a boy again? Oh, Uncle Charles, Uncle Charles!’ I screamed.
-
-“‘Why, my boy, what is the matter, you were groaning and moaning so in
-your sleep, I thought something must be wrong?’ were his words.
-
-“Wasn’t I grateful, though, to find it was only a dream. It seemed too
-good to be true, to learn that I was really a boy again, that life
-was before, and not behind, me. I tell you, Jo, I could scarcely wait
-for day to come, to get at positive work. And since that horrible
-nightmare, which taught me the silliness of wishing, I have been a
-changed boy, and I do not think I will ever fall into that purposeless
-talk again. But you don’t like sermons, excuse me, Jo.”
-
-“You are a good fellow, John; I should not be worthy of friendship such
-as yours, if I did not benefit by what you have told me. I will try to
-follow your example. What do you say to our both being manly men?”
-
-“Those words have the right ring.” And so saying the two friends walked
-off arm in arm.
-
-
-
-
-A HEBREW CHRISTIAN.
-
-
-Sydney Arnheim was a Jew. I say was, because he has thrown off the yoke
-of the Jewish faith, and this little story will tell you how it all
-came about.
-
-Sydney is an only child; his parents are rich; his father, a famous
-Wall Street broker, is a power among his kind; his mother also belongs
-to a wealthy Hebrew family, and her refined taste and education show
-clearly in her surroundings. Anything that appeals to her exquisite
-judgment is purchased, so that Sydney’s home shows everywhere the touch
-of elegance, as well as the fitness of perfection. Sydney’s own room
-bears the print of her careful taste, and yet prominent among the rich
-hangings and delicate furnishing you see a Winchester rifle, a trout
-pole, also a buck’s antlers, a blue crane, a kingfisher, and several
-other well-known birds, all so skilfully prepared by the taxidermist
-that you could scarcely be blamed if you thought them yet alive. Yes,
-Sydney is a regular boy, and loves to keep trophies of his sport in
-sight, as well as his gun and trout pole. He says at times, “It makes
-it seem as if I’m in the Adirondack woods whenever I look at them,
-and simply lifting my rod recalls some experiences with papa in the
-boat with our guide, or else wading the streams with my tutor and
-drawing out big fish.” So Sydney’s mother, knowing the comfort these
-recollections bring, allows her son to place his sporting equipments
-just where and as he pleases. Thus the room has an odd, menagerie style
-of appearance. And thus the home of this Israelitish family everywhere
-tells of comfort and luxury.
-
-Sydney, from his babyhood, was carefully trained in the customs
-and belief of his people. His mother, so frequently his companion,
-constantly talked about the greatness of his lineage, and told him of
-the patriarchs, legislators, warriors, singers and prophets which were
-among the Hebrew people. She also told him of Abraham and Moses, and of
-the covenant with Abraham at Jehovah-jireh, “In thy seed shall all the
-nations of the earth be blessed,” and also what the Lord said to Jacob
-at Bethel, “The land whereon thou liest, to thee will I give it, and
-to thy seed.” And she daily urged her son to walk in the footsteps and
-keep the covenants of his people, and always to serve the Lord God of
-Israel. The rabbi also would frequently visit their home, and Sydney
-was accustomed to talk to him, as well as to receive the old man’s
-instruction and blessing. Sydney loved to hear from him the stories of
-Moses, Aaron and Joshua; of the Tishbite and his servant Elisha; of
-Solomon and the temple; of the son of Jesse, David, the sweet singer,
-and of the promise of the Messiah to come.
-
-And so it was when Sydney had attained his seventeenth year that when
-asked what he would most like for his birthday-gift he replied, “The
-education that will fit me the most thoroughly to preach, not alone to
-my people, but to win many erring ones, believers in the ‘false Christ’
-to turn to the true faith.” He was at this time, therefore, and for
-seven anxious, wearisome months afterwards, the _Jewest_ of all Jews, a
-devoted follower of Moses, but not of the Lamb.
-
-About the time of the birthday above alluded to, there came for a visit
-of three months a cousin of Sydney, a little girl about three years his
-junior. She, young as she was, however, was a Christian, and had the
-Easter previous publicly confessed Christ, and united with the same
-church her parents had long attended.
-
-The question might readily be asked, “Since she was Sydney’s cousin,
-how was it that she was not also a believer in the Hebrew faith?” The
-reason is this. Her mother was Sydney’s father’s sister, and when very
-young, only seventeen years of age, had surprised and grieved her
-family by stating she was about to marry a gentleman who was not of
-her religion. Many words regarding the matter were exchanged at the
-time, but they were useless in preventing the marriage, and a year
-later she saddened her parents yet more by renouncing her Hebrew faith,
-and connecting herself with the church of her husband. He was a most
-exemplary gentleman, however, and, notwithstanding his religion, his
-wife’s people could not fail to have a most profound respect for him.
-So, in time, the families visited back and forth, but the topic of
-religion was never introduced. Sydney’s father would sometimes sigh
-wearily, when talking of his sister, and say his hope was that she
-would yet return to the belief of her forefathers, and that in time all
-must be well.
-
-So now the little Edith was to spend many weeks with her Jewish
-relations, but she had been told to be careful about her attendance at
-church, and ever watchful of her conduct, indeed to act in every way
-as the child of the dear Christ whom she loved so well. Her mother,
-however, before consigning her to her brother’s care, simply said to
-her, “I will pray for you, dear, that your faith fail not,” and “Have
-no fear, mamma,” was the sweet reply. “Jesus will be with me in Uncle
-Nathan’s home, as well as in my own. Perhaps He will even have work
-for me to do there. You know Dr. M—— last Sabbath morning talked to us
-on the subject of missions, and said there were many kinds, and while
-we should pray and work for the foreign and domestic fields, we must
-also remember those of our own household, indeed, all everywhere, who
-do not love the Saviour.” So Edith’s mother had no fear for her child,
-and into the uncle’s home there came a blessing, the measure of which
-cannot be counted by any earthly rule or computation, for who can
-measure the joy of even one soul turned to the Saviour?
-
-Edith and Sydney were now great friends, for while they had known each
-other always, the constant companionship led to the warmest friendship,
-and they were therefore as good comrades as a boy and girl cousin
-could well be. Neither religion nor any topic bearing on it was ever
-discussed before Edith. She never attended their church, nor they hers.
-When the Sabbath came she would always be accompanied to the church
-door, and when the service was out some member of the family would be
-found without waiting to walk home with her, and during her entire
-visit neither by word or action was she allowed to feel she stood
-apart from her Jewish relations, and therefore the time passed all too
-rapidly onward. She remembered her promise to her mother, and most
-earnestly she prayed to God to direct and help her. She also prayed for
-her uncle and aunt, imploring the Father in heaven to lead them into
-the light; but particularly she prayed for her cousin Sydney. They were
-such comrades, so nearly of an age, and yet she felt there was a great
-gulf fixed, and therefore she constantly plead that he might learn of
-the Christ, the Saviour.
-
-One day, just after a most fervent prayer for Sydney, her cousin
-approached her unobserved while she was reading from the New Testament.
-He exclaimed, on seeing the title, “Why, Edith, I never had a copy of
-that book in my hands. I should like to read yours sometime, if you
-don’t mind.”
-
-“Mind! why no, Sydney. Take it along with you now.”
-
-And he did. When her cousin left, Edith prayed as she never had before,
-beseeching the Father to let the scales drop from his eyes and show
-unto him the Christ. And God did open the boy’s eyes. He did not read
-through a glass darkly, but with clearest vision. The brightest light
-fell on the divine Word, the light which later led to his giving up his
-old Hebrew faith, and his acceptance of Jesus.
-
-All did not come at once. At the first reading he was troubled,
-anxious, but not satisfied. He had many old questions to settle; he had
-much pride to put aside; he spent many hours, and at times away into
-the night in prayer. But peace at last came, the peace which he feels
-will endure until the day when he will see the King in His beauty.
-
-And now Sydney longs for the conversion of his parents, and of all of
-his people. His wish is to preach Christ, and so do all in his power
-to lead his brethren, the Jews, unto the everlasting joy of the New
-Jerusalem.
-
-
-
-
-THE BABY’S LESSON.
-
-
-It was blossom-time, and in the quiet of the early May morning the
-church bells rung out their loving call. “Come, come, come!” they
-seemed to say, and, accepting the invitation, we shortly found
-ourselves sitting, with other strangers, in the Episcopal church of a
-favorite resort.
-
-It was during the Scripture lesson that a little maiden of about
-four years of age quietly walked up the long aisle, looking to right
-and left, scanning the faces in every pew, until she had reached the
-chancel. The clergyman’s voice was no doubt familiar to her, for she
-showed no timidity. Not seeing the one she sought, she turned and
-tripped down the aisle again. But on nearing the door she put out her
-hands and extended her arms in a pleading baby fashion, as if to say,
-“I do not want to go away. I cannot find my papa or mamma, but will not
-some one lift me up? I came to church to stay.” And a kind-hearted man,
-seeing the gesture, took up the baby beside him.
-
-The little one reverently entered into the worship of the hour. As
-prayer followed prayer, the blue eyes closed tight, and the wavy
-golden hair fell forward over the bent head. At the time of singing
-she rose with others, and her voice carolled out the tune, though her
-words were those of her own devising. One little hand tightly clasped
-a penny, and as the collection-plate was passed she eagerly dropped in
-her contribution.
-
-It was time to go home, and as nearly all present were strangers, many
-watched to see what the baby girl would do. A mother by my side said
-to her, “I have a little girl at home, about as big as you. I would
-not want her to be lost, and if you will tell me where you live I
-will take you home.” Then a quiet dignity seemed to possess the wee
-maiden, as with courteous action she pointed to a large white house
-about one hundred feet away. Lifting the blue eyes to the lady’s face,
-she replied, “I live there. I love to come to church, and I thought I
-should find papa; he always goes, but”—gravely shaking her curls—“I
-couldn’t find him this morning. But I can go home by my own self.” And
-then, child fashion, she ran on, as though to satisfy us that she knew
-the way.
-
-Walking under the apple boughs back to the hotel, we thought of the
-sermon this child’s presence had preached. And the question came, Why
-do not all parents so train their little ones that they love God’s
-house? This little girl had given the congregation a lesson which
-should make a children’s day of every Sabbath the year around. The
-Bible says, “Their angels do always behold the face of the Father,” and
-“Unless ye become as a little child, ye cannot enter the kingdom.”
-
-Where young children sit side by side with their parents in church,
-and so learn to “remember the Sabbath day,” they will early wish to
-consecrate their lives to Christ. They will not enter heaven “so as by
-fire,” but “as kings crowned,” for they will not wait to work for the
-Master until the time when the “grinders shall cease because they are
-few, and those that look out of the windows be darkened,” but will use
-the hours of every day as in God’s sight, and in the companionship of
-Him who is invisible.
-
-
-
-
-PARLOR FORTUNE-TELLING.
-
-
-Nothing so much lends enchantment to the hours or wings them to merry
-flight as fortune-telling. And particularly fascinating is the art
-of foretelling the future through the medium of palm-reading. When a
-bright girl who has the faculty of revealing character and prophesying
-the future by inspecting the hand is in a drawing-room, the hostess
-need not fear for the pleasure of her guests, for the fair magician
-will take care of beaux and belles alike, leading them on to happy
-marriages and boundless wealth (for no real fortune-teller ever forgets
-matrimony and money). Nor will the young people alone be anxious to
-learn what is written in the palms of their hands, for more or less
-superstition lingers with us all. And what if there has been a small
-error regarding character-reading, or a trifling discrepancy relative
-to past events, one happy guess will cause all such mistakes to be
-forgotten: and besides, the necessity for verification is seldom
-urgent. Palmistry is not altogether pastime, any more than divination
-is altogether jugglery, for no hand is exactly like another hand; the
-intersection of the lines, the stars, the mounts, the texture, really
-do supply a guide to the character of the owner. And if, added to the
-knowledge of hand-reading, you are a student of the face—and every
-one is more or less a physiognomist—you will arrive at fairly correct
-conclusions.
-
-Palmistry is linked with astrology: the first finger belongs to
-Jupiter, the middle to Saturn, the third to the Sun, the small finger
-to Mercury; Venus is in the thick part below the thumb, the plain of
-Mars is directly under the mount of Mercury, the moon controls all
-beneath the kingdom of Mars. This link between the planets and the hand
-was arbitrary; astronomers distributed deities among the planets, and
-the planets were supposed to partake of the nature of the gods and to
-influence life.
-
-Palmistry also depends on analogy and symbolism. Every mark on the
-hand has some mystical meaning. A star denotes success, barred lines
-indicate obstacles; where several parallel lines are formed instead
-of one, they show a variety of pursuits, instead of force only in one
-direction. If lines are long, gently curved, and red, they indicate a
-gentle disposition; if you have a special talent, there will surely
-be a perpendicular line from the base of the hand toward the fingers;
-this line is sometimes doubled. Long tapering fingers indicate high
-mental qualities, a love of the arts, a thirst for knowledge, and
-strength of memory, while the contrary shows a tendency to rapid
-progress at first, only to be followed by failure in all intellectual
-undertakings. People with short fingers are apt to be impulsive, if
-they are very short, they indicate lack of tact. Long-fingered people
-go into detail, and are punctiliously careful about trifles. Twisted
-fingers with short nails show tyranny and a worrying temperament. If
-the fingers fit closely together, their owner is apt to be avaricious;
-if smooth, they indicate indiscretion and talkativeness. But if twisted
-and showing spaces between, the person is sympathetic and generous.
-Sensitiveness is shown by the small fleshy protuberances, which stand
-out from the curved surface of the finger-tips. If your fingers are
-broad, you will love things for their practical uses; your taste will
-be for industries, mechanics, commerce. If your finger-tips are square,
-you will be fond of literature, logic, language, you will be inclined
-to theorize, and you will have respect for authority. The joints of the
-fingers have an importance, so they too must be carefully examined.
-Indeed, no one part of the hand can be taken alone; a joint or a line
-or a mount may so change the meaning of what you have already observed,
-as to greatly modify your conclusions. Conic fingers show a love for
-the beautiful, the ideal and romantic, but the well-developed joints
-may add moral force, as also does a large thumb. Hands that are always
-white, regardless of temperature, tell of selfishness and conceit,
-lack of sympathy for the sorrows of others. Soft hands tell of a lazy,
-lethargic temperament; hard hands show a love of exercise and labor.
-Soft hands indicate tenderness rather than fidelity, while hard hands
-indicate true love, but not much tenderness or passion. Smoothness
-of the hands shows delicacy of mind. A wrinkled hand, if soft, shows
-sensitiveness; if hard, irritability. Pale lines in a hand show a
-phlegmatic disposition, in a man amounting to effeminacy.
-
-Each mount is of as much import as are the indications found on the
-fingers. On the mount of Jupiter you will learn of honor, ambition,
-religion. If it is very large it shows tyranny and ostentation; if
-small, idleness, egoism, vulgarity. A cross found on this mount will
-tell of a happy marriage; if a star is found as well, the marriage will
-be wealthy and satisfactory to the highest degree. A spot on this mount
-shows ignominy and dishonor.
-
-The mount of Saturn, which is at the base of the second finger, tells
-of caution, credulousness, timidity. If very large, the individual
-will be melancholy, quiet, and morbid. A solitary line on this mount
-indicates bad fortune.
-
-The mount of the Sun, when prominent, insures success, genius, pride,
-eloquence. If the mount is extremely large, wealth extravagance,
-luxury. A single line on this mount means glory.
-
-Below the little finger on the outside of the hand we look for the
-mount of Mercury, and there learn of invention, speculation, agility.
-Excess of this mount indicates cunning, treachery, and falsehood.
-
-Below this mount we find Mars, which if very prominent, shows the owner
-to be brusque and violent; if it is small, look out for cowardice and
-meanness.
-
-The mount of the Moon, which is found lower still, denotes a love
-of the mysterious; those possessing this mount to a high degree are
-also inclined to revery, as well as to idleness. They are likewise
-capricious, changeful, and irritable. In hard hands you will also read
-discontent and fanaticism.
-
-The most important of all the lines on the hand is the line of life. If
-long, clear, and straight, it shows long life and good character; if
-pale and broad, the indications are ill health and a weak disposition;
-if thick and red, the owner is apt to be violent to brutality; if
-varying in thickness, this will show a fitful and high temper.
-
-The greatest caution must be used by any reader of the hand, and
-before even a pretension is made to judge character or to foretell the
-future, much careful study of the many books on this subject should be
-given. The student must learn from different authorities, as well as
-by thoughtful study and comparison for himself. Many rules must be
-applied, and there are many conflicting forces to harmonize. The hand
-is of the utmost importance in human economy. Aristotle denominated it
-“the organ of the organs.” After the murder of Cicero at Caieta, not
-only his head but also his hands were exhibited in the Roman Forum.
-The homologies have been traced between the human hand and the paws
-of the brute creation, and it has been proved that to man alone was
-the perfect hand given, exquisite in beauty as well as paramount in
-usefulness.
-
-Palmistry is an old science. As early as the year 1504 there was a
-book published in the city of London on _The Art of Foretelling the
-Future Events by Inspection of the Hand_. It has been asserted that
-Homer wrote on the lines of the hand. Probably most people are familiar
-with the verse assigned by the superstitions as Scriptural warrant for
-indulging in this popular art: Job xxxvii. 7, “He sealeth the hand of
-every man, that all may know his work.”
-
-
-
-
-CHURCH COURTESY.
-
-
-It was only a smile as the Hymn-book and Psalter were offered; it did
-not cost the young man anything, but it gave us, the recipients of
-his courtesy, pleasant satisfaction. We did not feel as if the books
-were grudgingly given, but rather that a sympathetic bond had united
-us, that we would like to know this cordial generous young fellow, and
-thought if this were a sample of the people in that church, we would
-like to make it our home. The entire service was so heightened by the
-incident that we scarcely missed our old familiar surroundings, and
-really had almost forgotten that we were strangers, so one with us the
-people appeared; and when the preacher later gave for his text the
-words, “The greatest of these is Love,” it seemed only natural that
-this should have been the thought selected.
-
-By contrast, we felt severely the difference which the following
-Sabbath brought. It was again the early service, and we sat strangers
-in another city church. The opening hymn, which was not a familiar
-one, was announced, and an old man sitting in a pew behind gave us his
-book. Two young men occupying the seat with him each had a hymn-book
-with notes, but instead of looking on the same book, so having one
-to spare, they each selfishly kept their own, neither offering one to
-the old gentleman who, I later learned, had gone without for our sake,
-nor giving a book to two ladies who were in the pew with me, and were
-strangers like ourselves. As a result, we all felt uncomfortable; the
-clergyman’s sermon, excellent though it was, did not meet with proper
-response. Our thoughts were divided, the atmosphere was unpleasant,
-we claimed that the church seemed very cheerless, that even the
-lighting of it was not satisfactory, and, indeed, we were so unhappy
-by the ungracious action of the two young men back of us that we were
-glad when the benediction was pronounced, and we could, borrowing an
-illustration from the time of the Apostles, shake the dust off our
-feet, and turn toward home.
-
-The question is sometimes asked, Why are there so many vacant pews in
-our churches? And the blame is laid on the hard-working minister. Well,
-his shoulders are broad and accustomed to carrying burdens. All the
-sorrows and annoyances of the people become a part of his daily load.
-But stop. Let us put the answer to this question where it belongs, not
-on the minister, but nine-tenths of the time on the congregation. “Be
-not forgetful to entertain strangers,” are the words of the Bible, and
-we cannot go to a better book for advice. “Be courteous,” are also two
-words found there.
-
-A young man, not a church-goer, once said to me, “I wandered into Dr.
-L.’s church the other morning, and I was shown into one of the very
-best pews. Later the family came, and they gave me every attention.
-When the service was over, the gentleman who sat at the head of the pew
-allowed his family to pass out, and waited for me. Then offering his
-hand, said he was very glad I had been put in his pew, and he hoped I
-would come to church again very soon, every Sunday if I would, and then
-he added, ‘Young man, don’t ask an usher for a seat, come right in here
-with me any time.’
-
-“Now,” continued this young gentleman, “that’s what I call business.
-I enjoyed the service that morning, was not made to feel as if I was
-an offscourer, but as if I was welcome. I’ll go again soon; that’s the
-right kind of a church. The singing was beautiful, and I’m fond of
-music; the sermon, too, touched the right place, but I think what had
-more to do with it than anything else, was that courteous family and
-the hearty hand-shake afterwards.”
-
-We, neither of us, can weigh the influence we have on our neighbor.
-Perhaps it is better for our own peace we cannot. But we must remember
-a smile may save a soul. “Inasmuch as ye have done it unto one of the
-least of these, ye have done it unto me.”
-
-
-
-
-A BRAVE BOY.
-
-
-“How shall our class raise one hundred dollars for the benefit of the
-church-debt fund?” was a question recently put to eight young girls by
-their Sunday-school teacher.
-
-“Have a fair in the early fall; we will work for it all summer,” was
-the first answer.
-
-“No; that might interfere with the ladies’ fair, which comes during
-December. It is to be a mammoth one this year, and we must not
-anticipate the event nor risk retarding its prosperity, but rather do
-our part to push it forward.”
-
-“Suppose, then, we have a cake sale,” was the suggestion by the eldest
-one of the party. That was at once vetoed, as more properly belonging
-to our mothers and grandmothers.
-
-“I tell you what, girls!” ejaculated Jessie, “let us make candy; get
-all the orders we can and supply our customers. We can make lots of
-money that way.”
-
-“Yes, if we can get the customers,” added Hattie, “_I_ thought maybe
-we could get up an entertainment, and so I brought a book containing a
-colloquy in three parts, which will just take in all of us. There are
-eight characters, so it would fit exactly.”
-
-“Good for you, Hattie,” was the quick reply, and the bright eyes and
-excited manner of each of the scholars showed that such enthusiasm
-could not fall to result in success.
-
-Later a satisfactory programme was arranged, consisting of music,
-recitations, tableaux and the above-mentioned colloquy. The
-entertainment was to be given in the parlors of one of the scholars,
-and the tickets for young and old were to be offered for the sum of
-twenty-five cents each.
-
-My! how the girls worked, not alone in the necessary preparation for
-their part of the programme, but in the sale of tickets, which were
-disposed of rapidly.
-
-At last the much-looked-for night had come, and never did stars seem
-more brilliant, or moonlight more beautiful. Such a crowd! Long
-before the time for showing the tableaux, which were to open the
-entertainment, the parlors and halls and even the stairs were full.
-A man was stationed at the door to receive the tickets and any money
-which might be offered.
-
-But was it any wonder that little Theodore Vandervoort, who is
-connected with one of the younger classes of the Sunday-school, found
-himself surrounded by so many bigger and older people, that he was not
-seen? or that the money he had expected to give at the door should not
-be taken?
-
-What a temptation this now presented! His father and mother would
-never know. The twenty-five cents would buy a great deal of candy,
-or the new ball he wanted so much, or a box of figs, or several
-bananas, of which he was very fond. But no, Theodore was an honest boy
-and would therefore scorn to use money which was not his own. This
-twenty-five cents had been given to him to pay for the entertainment
-he was now enjoying, and he would not expend it for any other purpose.
-So the following morning, before he entered school, he paid his debt,
-personally going to the house of the teacher who had charge of the
-entertainment and, with a few words of explanation, leaving the money.
-
-And so Theodore Vandervoort proved himself a hero, an example to many
-an older boy, as well as to many fathers and mothers.
-
-Even in a small boy we see the future man, and if God wills that
-Theodore Vandervoort shall grow to manhood, we are not afraid to
-predict great things of him, to prophesy that he will be a man above
-reproach, a king among his fellows.
-
-May the boys who read this story beware of falling into temptation,
-or doing the first dishonest act; but rather let them be brave, noble
-and upright, as was little Theodore, and so receive not only peace of
-conscience in the present life, but the joy which is eternal.
-
-As for the entertainment, it met with the success that generally
-attends zeal and hard work, and so overflowing was the treasury that
-the girls scarcely needed the added twenty-five cents. Yet honest
-Theodore, in taking his first opportunity to get out of debt, which is
-out of danger also, had set for all who read these words an excellent
-example.
-
- * * * * *
-
-Transcriber’s Notes:
-
-Obvious punctuation errors repaired. Varied hyphenation retained.
-
-Page 18, “carboard” changed to “cardboard” (a square of cardboard)
-
-Page 23, “varities” changed to “varieties” (think what varieties of)
-
-Pages 25, 149 “where-ever” split over two lines was changed to
-“wherever” (Girl runs wherever) (may put them wherever)
-
-Page 57, “though” changed to “through” (through which he has)
-
-Page 57, “andthis” changed to “and this” (and this game should)
-
-Page 91, “fete” changed to “fête” (the popular _fête_)
-
-Page 96, “matinee” changed to “matinée” (occasional matinée performance)
-
-Page 97, “mad” changed to “made” (be made of white)
-
-Page 162, “fastents” changed to “fastens” (instantly fastens itself)
-
-Page 184, “couse” changed to “course” (course, the pansy-leaf)
-
-Page 189, “maccaroni” changed to “macaroni” (but not macaroni)
-
-Page 194, “urdona” changed to “urdon” (own esog urdon)
-
-Page 194, “Mda” changed to “Nda” (Nda lilst i okwn)
-
-Page 194, “aec dn” changed to “aecdn” (Het iteesvf aecdn)
-
-Page 194, “f’tfrdnei” changed to “fetfrdnei” (Os fetfrdnei rmof)
-
-Page 196, “eyes” changed to “hair” (hair was so brown)
-
-Page 199, “tlp” changed to “tip” (tip of nose)
-
-Page 199, “smilar” changed to “similar” (similar to example)
-
-Page 200, “wth” changed to “with” (with pots, pans, dishes)
-
-Page 235, “similiar” changed to “similar” (similar ludicrous blunders)
-
-Page 240, split across two lines, “forget-getting” changed to
-“forgetting” (the trouble, forgetting)
-
-Page 249, “the” changed to “this” (negligent this time)
-
-Page 255, “immates” changed to “inmates” (difficulty the inmates of)
-
-Page 316, paragraph break introduced after the line ending, “with me
-anytime” as the quotation pattern seemed to suggest it.
-
-Page 319, “eharge” changed to “charge” (charge of the entertainment)
-
-
-
-
-
-
-End of the Project Gutenberg EBook of Fun for the Household, by Emma J. Gray
-
-*** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK FUN FOR THE HOUSEHOLD ***
-
-***** This file should be named 51540-0.txt or 51540-0.zip *****
-This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
- http://www.gutenberg.org/5/1/5/4/51540/
-
-Produced by Chris Curnow, Emmy and the Online Distributed
-Proofreading Team at http://www.pgdp.net (This file was
-produced from images generously made available by The
-Internet Archive)
-
-Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions will
-be renamed.
-
-Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
-law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
-so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United
-States without permission and without paying copyright
-royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
-of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm
-concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
-and may not be used if you charge for the eBooks, unless you receive
-specific permission. If you do not charge anything for copies of this
-eBook, complying with the rules is very easy. You may use this eBook
-for nearly any purpose such as creation of derivative works, reports,
-performances and research. They may be modified and printed and given
-away--you may do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks
-not protected by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the
-trademark license, especially commercial redistribution.
-
-START: FULL LICENSE
-
-THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
-PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
-
-To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
-Project Gutenberg-tm License available with this file or online at
-www.gutenberg.org/license.
-
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
-destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your
-possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
-Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
-by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the
-person or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph
-1.E.8.
-
-1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this
-agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the
-Foundation" or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
-of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual
-works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
-States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
-United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
-claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
-displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
-all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
-that you will support the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting
-free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm
-works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
-Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with the work. You can easily
-comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
-same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg-tm License when
-you share it without charge with others.
-
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
-in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
-check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
-agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
-distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
-other Project Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no
-representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
-country outside the United States.
-
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
-immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear
-prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work
-on which the phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the
-phrase "Project Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed,
-performed, viewed, copied or distributed:
-
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
- most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no
- restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it
- under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this
- eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the
- United States, you'll have to check the laws of the country where you
- are located before using this ebook.
-
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is
-derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
-contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
-copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
-the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
-redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
-either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
-obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
-additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
-will be linked to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works
-posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
-beginning of this work.
-
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
-
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm License.
-
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
-any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
-to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format
-other than "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official
-version posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site
-(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
-to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
-of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original "Plain
-Vanilla ASCII" or other form. Any alternate format must include the
-full Project Gutenberg-tm License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-provided that
-
-* You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
- to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he has
- agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
- within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
- legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
- payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
- Section 4, "Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation."
-
-* You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
- License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
- copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
- all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg-tm
- works.
-
-* You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
- any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
- receipt of the work.
-
-* You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
-
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work or group of works on different terms than
-are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
-from both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and The
-Project Gutenberg Trademark LLC, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark. Contact the Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
-
-1.F.
-
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
-Gutenberg-tm collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
-contain "Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
-or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
-intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
-other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
-cannot be read by your equipment.
-
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
-of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
-with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
-with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
-lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
-or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
-opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
-the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
-without further opportunities to fix the problem.
-
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS', WITH NO
-OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
-LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
-damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
-violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
-agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
-limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
-unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
-remaining provisions.
-
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in
-accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
-production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
-including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
-the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
-or any Project Gutenberg-tm work, (b) alteration, modification, or
-additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any
-Defect you cause.
-
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
-computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
-exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
-from people in all walks of life.
-
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future
-generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
-Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at
-www.gutenberg.org
-
-
-
-Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
-
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
-U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
-
-The Foundation's principal office is in Fairbanks, Alaska, with the
-mailing address: PO Box 750175, Fairbanks, AK 99775, but its
-volunteers and employees are scattered throughout numerous
-locations. Its business office is located at 809 North 1500 West, Salt
-Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up to
-date contact information can be found at the Foundation's web site and
-official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
-
-For additional contact information:
-
- Dr. Gregory B. Newby
- Chief Executive and Director
- gbnewby@pglaf.org
-
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
-spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
-DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular
-state visit www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-
-Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
-donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works.
-
-Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm concept of a library of electronic works that could be
-freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
-distributed Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of
-volunteer support.
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
-the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
-necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
-edition.
-
-Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search
-facility: www.gutenberg.org
-
-This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
-
diff --git a/old/51540-0.zip b/old/51540-0.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index 977aca0..0000000
--- a/old/51540-0.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/51540-h.zip b/old/51540-h.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index 30f01e2..0000000
--- a/old/51540-h.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/51540-h/51540-h.htm b/old/51540-h/51540-h.htm
deleted file mode 100644
index 321e22a..0000000
--- a/old/51540-h/51540-h.htm
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,12638 +0,0 @@
-<!DOCTYPE html PUBLIC "-//W3C//DTD XHTML 1.0 Strict//EN"
- "http://www.w3.org/TR/xhtml1/DTD/xhtml1-strict.dtd">
-<html xmlns="http://www.w3.org/1999/xhtml" xml:lang="en" lang="en">
- <head>
- <meta http-equiv="Content-Type" content="text/html;charset=utf-8" />
- <meta http-equiv="Content-Style-Type" content="text/css" />
- <title>
- The Project Gutenberg eBook of Fun For the Household, by Emma J. Gray..
- </title>
- <style type="text/css">
-
-body {
- margin-left: 10%;
- margin-right: 10%;
-}
-
- h1,h2,h3,h4 { margin-bottom: 0;
- text-align: center; /* all headings centered */
- clear: both;
-}
- .faux {
- font-size: 0.5em; /*this font size could be anything */
- visibility: hidden;}
-
-p {
- margin-top: .75em;
- text-align: justify;
- text-indent: 1.25em;
- margin-bottom: .75em;
-}
- .maintitle {font-size: 200%; font-weight: bold; text-align: center; text-indent: 0;}
- .copyright {text-align: center; font-size: 70%; text-indent: 0;}
- .adtitle2 {font-size: 150%; font-weight: bold; text-align: center; text-indent: 0;}
- .author {font-size: 120%; text-align: center; text-indent: 0;}
- div.hangsection {text-indent: -3em; margin-left: 7em; margin-right: 7em;}
- div.chapter {page-break-before: always;}
- .sig {margin-right: 10%; text-align: right;}
-
-
- img {border: 0;}
- .tnote {border: dashed 1px; margin-left: 10%; margin-right: 10%; padding-bottom: .5em; padding-top: .5em;
- padding-left: .5em; padding-right: .5em; text-indent: 0;}
-
- .unindent {margin-top: .75em;
- text-align: justify;
- margin-bottom: .75em;
- text-indent: 0;}
-hr {
- width: 33%;
- margin-top: 1em;
- margin-bottom: 1em;
- margin-left: auto;
- margin-right: auto;
- clear: both;
-}
-
-hr.tb {width: 45%;}
-hr.chap {width: 65%}
-hr.full {width: 95%;}
-
-ul { list-style-type: none; }
-
-.brb {border-right: 1px solid black; border-top: 1px solid black; border-bottom: 1px solid black;}
-
-/* Poetry */
-.poetry-container
-{
- text-align: center;
-}
-
-.poetry
-{
- display: inline-block;
- text-align: left;
-}
-
-.poetry .stanza
-{
- margin: 1em auto;
-}
-
-.poetry .verse
-{
- text-indent: -3em;
- padding-left: 3em;
-}
-
-
-
-table {
- margin-left: auto;
- margin-right: auto;
-}
-
-
-
-.pagenum { /* uncomment the next line for invisible page numbers */
- /* visibility: hidden; */
- position: absolute;
- left: 92%;
- font-size: smaller;
- text-align: right;
- font-style: normal;
- text-indent: 0;} /* page numbers */
-
-.blockquot {
- margin-left: 10%;
- margin-right: 10%;
-}
-
-.center {text-align: center; text-indent: 0;}
-
-.right {text-align: right; text-indent: 0;}
-
-.smcap {font-variant: small-caps;}
-
-/* Images */
-.figcenter {
- margin: auto;
- text-align: center;
-}
-
-
-@media handheld
-{
- .chapter
- {
- page-break-before: always;
- }
-
- h2.no-break
- {
- page-break-before: avoid;
- padding-top: 0;
- }
-
- .poetry
- {
- display: block;
- margin-left: 1.5em;
- }
-
-}
- </style>
- </head>
-<body>
-
-
-<pre>
-
-The Project Gutenberg EBook of Fun for the Household, by Emma J. Gray
-
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and most
-other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
-whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms of
-the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online at
-www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the United States, you'll have
-to check the laws of the country where you are located before using this ebook.
-
-Title: Fun for the Household
- A Book of Games
-
-Author: Emma J. Gray
-
-Release Date: March 24, 2016 [EBook #51540]
-
-Language: English
-
-Character set encoding: UTF-8
-
-*** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK FUN FOR THE HOUSEHOLD ***
-
-
-
-
-Produced by Chris Curnow, Emmy and the Online Distributed
-Proofreading Team at http://www.pgdp.net (This file was
-produced from images generously made available by The
-Internet Archive)
-
-
-
-
-
-
-</pre>
-
-<h1 class="faux">Fun for the Household.</h1>
-<div class="figcenter" style="width: 487px;">
-<img src="images/cover.jpg" width="487" height="800" alt="cover: This cover was created by the transcriber by putting color on the tiitle page and is placed in the public domain" />
-</div>
-<hr class="chap" />
-<div class="chapter"></div>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_3" id="Page_3">[3]</a></span></p>
-
-
-
-
-<div class="maintitle">Fun for the Household.</div>
-
-<div class="adtitle2">A BOOK OF GAMES.</div>
-
-
-<div class="figcenter" style="width: 549px;">
-<img src="images/i_title.jpg" width="549" height="390" alt="groupo of people playing a game, one man blindfolded in center of room" />
-</div>
-
-<p class="center"><br /><br /><br />
-<small>BY</small><br />
-<br />
-<span class="author">EMMA J. GRAY.</span><br />
-<br /><br />——————<br />
-<br /><br />
-<small>PUBLISHED BY</small><br />
-<b>THE CHRISTIAN HERALD.</b><br />
-<span class="smcap">Louis Klopsch</span>, Proprietor,<br />
-BIBLE HOUSE, NEW YORK.<br />
-</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_4" id="Page_4">[4]</a></span></p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-<div class="chapter"></div>
-
-
-<p class="copyright">
-Copyright 1897<br />
-<span class="smcap">By</span> LOUIS KLOPSCH.<br />
-</p>
-
-<div class="figcenter" style="width: 137px;">
-<img src="images/emblem.jpg" width="137" height="139" alt="Emblem: PRESS·OF·J·J·LITTLE·&amp;·CO ASTOR PLACE·NEW·YORK" />
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-<div class="chapter"></div>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_5" id="Page_5">[5]</a></span></p>
-
-
-
-
-<h2>CONTENTS.</h2>
-
-
-
-
-<div class="center">
-<table border="0" cellpadding="4" cellspacing="0" summary="Contents">
-<tr>
-<td align="left">&nbsp;</td>
-<td align="right"><small>PAGE</small></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td align="left">Introductory</td>
-<td align="right"><a href="#Page_7">7</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td align="left">Little Folks</td>
-<td align="right"><a href="#Page_9">9</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td align="left">Boys and Girls</td>
-<td align="right"><a href="#Page_29">29</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td align="left">Grown-Ups</td>
-<td align="right"><a href="#Page_102">102</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td align="left">Special Fêtes</td>
-<td align="right"><a href="#Page_128">128</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td align="left">Methods of Choosing Partners</td>
-<td align="right"><a href="#Page_184">184</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td align="left">Tangles and Forfeits</td>
-<td align="right"><a href="#Page_187">187</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td align="left">In the Adirondacks</td>
-<td align="right"><a href="#Page_204">204</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td align="left">The Flower Test</td>
-<td align="right"><a href="#Page_220">220</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td align="left">Hours with the Poets</td>
-<td align="right"><a href="#Page_235">235</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td align="left">“Thank You!”</td>
-<td align="right"><a href="#Page_239">239</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td align="left">A Story within a Story</td>
-<td align="right"><a href="#Page_244">244</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td align="left">Orrin the Bootblack</td>
-<td align="right"><a href="#Page_258">258</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td align="left">Breakfast Table Decorations</td>
-<td align="right"><a href="#Page_270">270</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td align="left">How they Planted the Nasturtiums</td>
-<td align="right"><a href="#Page_273">273</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td align="left">A Garden Party</td>
-<td align="right"><a href="#Page_276">276</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td align="left">The King’s Children</td>
-<td align="right"><a href="#Page_281">281</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td align="left">For the Boys</td>
-<td align="right"><a href="#Page_287">287</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td align="left">I wish I were a General</td>
-<td align="right"><a href="#Page_293">293</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td align="left">A Hebrew Christian</td>
-<td align="right"><a href="#Page_298">298</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td align="left">The Baby’s Lesson</td>
-<td align="right"><a href="#Page_305">305</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td align="left">Parlor Fortune Telling</td>
-<td align="right"><a href="#Page_308">308</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td align="left">Church Courtesy</td>
-<td align="right"><a href="#Page_314">314</a></td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td align="left">A Brave Boy</td>
-<td align="right"><a href="#Page_317">317</a></td>
-</tr>
-</table>
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-<div class="chapter"></div>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_6" id="Page_6">[6]</a><br /><a name="Page_7" id="Page_7">[7]</a></span></p>
-
-
-
-
-<h2>INTRODUCTORY.</h2>
-
-
-<p>When children have passed beyond the rattle age,
-they reach out their hands for baa-lambs, woolly sheep,
-cows with bells, cats that meaw, and dogs that say
-bow-wow.</p>
-
-<p>The next advance in amusement is to play with a toy
-that goes on wheels, and therefore for a half hour at a
-time, little folk will be content by drawing around the
-nursery such toys as trains of cars, horses with long
-tails, express wagons, etc., etc.; and then follows the
-period when pretty lady dolls must go out to drive in
-a pretty carriage accompanied by mistress baby, whose
-chubby hands push the doll’s carriage ahead, and
-nurse’s ever vigilant eyes keep watch, so that neither
-baby nor the baby’s doll, like the historic Jack and
-Jill, fall down and break their crown. And mechanical
-dollies are also in demand,—lady dolls that lift their
-veils, smile and bow; gentlemen dolls that are orchestrian
-leaders; boy dolls that can turn somersaults
-and effect other athletic feats. And about this time if
-nurse is careful to keep sharp eyes on the scissors,
-colored pictures may be cut out and pasted in scrapbooks,
-or paper dolls may be arrayed as their youthful
-mothers desire. Or bright pieces of silk may be sewed
-together, provided the thread is tied into the needle’s
-eye, so that it cannot be pulled out. Or wonderful
-castles may be built with packs of cards, or towers and
-steeples with building blocks. Noah’s ark will do
-great service, as will also tops that spin, and hoops that
-may be rolled or twirled, and drums that may be beat,
-and whistles and horns that may be blown.</p>
-
-<p>But, notwithstanding all the toys and amusement
-therefrom, there will be heard the oftentimes plaintive<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_8" id="Page_8">[8]</a></span>
-wail, “Play with me, please play with me.” And then
-it is that the wise mother or nurse will introduce a
-simple game. Perhaps Puss in the Corner, or Blind
-Man’s Buff, or perhaps hide behind a large chair or
-screen and call aloud, “Where am I?” and such a
-mischievous laugh will follow when the toddling child
-finds the one who has thus hidden!</p>
-
-<p>From this period game follows game, just as naturally
-as year follows year, and even when the little tot
-has grown to womanhood or manhood, the cry is still
-heard, “Play with me, please play with me,” thus illustrating
-the trite words, men and women are only
-children grown up.</p>
-
-<p>Therefore the variety of games within this book:
-Games suitable for all ages, for all temperaments;
-games for the house, and games for the field; games
-for the girls, and, games for the boys; games for the
-young, and games for the old; games for St. Valentine’s
-Day, games for Christmas Day,—games for all
-seasons, games for all climes. Thus may the year be
-filled with jollity.</p>
-
-<p>Several games in this volume were originally published
-in the periodicals of Messrs. Harper &amp; Brothers,
-and are reprinted by their kind permission.</p>
-
-<p class="sig">
-<span class="smcap">Emma J. Gray.</span></p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-<div class="chapter"></div>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_9" id="Page_9">[9]</a></span></p>
-
-
-
-
-<h2>FUN FOR THE HOUSEHOLD.</h2>
-
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<h2>LITTLE FOLKS.</h2>
-
-
-<h3>A LITTLE CHILD’S PARTY.</h3>
-
-<p>Invite both boys and girls for a short
-frolic. Between three and five o’clock in
-the afternoon would be excellent hours.</p>
-
-<p>Provide for their entertainment, flowers,
-birds, worsted and rubber balls, dolls, tea-services,
-horses, whips, and music. If you
-have a music-box it will prove very serviceable.
-The children will be much interested;
-some of the shorter ones will stand on tiptoe,
-the better to discover the way the wheels
-go around.</p>
-
-<p>Two or more grown people should
-be present; those who understand little
-children, and have a knack in amusing
-them.</p>
-
-<p>The toys will greatly aid in getting the
-children acquainted. Play ball with the
-boys, throwing it lightly back and forth.
-Set out the tea-services. Show off the dollies.
-Put a small boy on a hobby horse,
-and start the horse on a trot, and after he
-has his ride, give another boy his turn.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_10" id="Page_10">[10]</a></span>
-After a while play polkas and waltzes, and
-then</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
- <div class="poetry">
-<div class="verse">What a merry rout,</div>
-<div class="verse">See the wee ones dance about!</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p>Change the amusement. Show them
-flowers, canary birds, butterflies, anything
-you may have to attract, always remembering
-the toys and going back to them again
-and again.</p>
-
-<p>Low chairs and hassocks will make it
-easier for the little people than to have to
-climb into the great chairs and sofas used
-by older folks.</p>
-
-<p>Refreshments should be exceedingly simple,
-and a souvenir, such as a cornucopia
-or handful of motto-papers, gayly tinted and
-full of candy, will be much appreciated.</p>
-
-
-<h3>THE FARMER’S SONG.</h3>
-
-<p class="center"><i>A Motion Game.</i></p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
- <div class="poetry">
- <div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse">As over the field the farmer goes,</div>
-<div class="verse">And grain by grain he sows in the rows,</div>
-<div class="verse">He sings and shouts, Oh, you crows, you crows,</div>
-<div class="verse">Keep away from my rows, away from my rows.</div>
- </div>
- <div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse">This is the way the glad farmer reaps</div>
-<div class="verse">His wheat, and when it is bunched he keeps</div>
-<div class="verse">An eye on all his workers around,</div>
-<div class="verse">And laughs at their faces, merry and round.</div>
- </div>
- <div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse">This is the way the glad farmer binds</div>
-<div class="verse">All the ripe sheaves he’s able to find,</div>
-<div class="verse">And when no more wheat is on the ground,</div>
-<div class="verse"><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_11" id="Page_11">[11]</a></span>He laughs ha, ha, ha, and turns all around.</div>
- </div>
- <div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse">Hurrah, hurrah for the farmer bold</div>
-<div class="verse">He laughs and is merry e’en when ’tis cold,</div>
-<div class="verse">He shouts ha, ha, on an August day,</div>
-<div class="verse">And gathers his wheat as if ’twas his play.</div>
- </div>
- <div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse">Oh, who would not be a farmer lad,</div>
-<div class="verse">And clap one’s hands hard and never be sad,</div>
-<div class="verse">And sing, while working all the day long,</div>
-<div class="verse">I’m jolly and happy and brave and strong?</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p>Let all the players form a ring, with a boy
-in the centre for farmer. After the song is
-sung through, the farmer must choose two
-players to clasp their hands and raise them,
-thus forming an arch. The ring having
-broken, now forms a long line, and one by
-one each individual passes under the arch,
-singing as they go,</p>
-
-<div class="center">
-Oh, who would not be a farmer lad,
-</div>
-
-<p class="unindent">and with the last word of the verse the arch
-falls, and thus some one is caught, and he
-or she is now farmer. A ring is then again
-formed, and the game proceeds as before.</p>
-
-<p>This being a motion game, the words of
-the song must be acted. Every child has
-seen farmers sow, reap and bind, and while
-singing those words they must copy the
-farmer (the boy in the ring) as nearly as
-possible, also remember to clap the hands,
-turn around, etc., at the proper time, indeed
-lose no opportunity to act the words as
-well as to sing them. Tune, “Oats, peas,
-beans, and barley grows.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_12" id="Page_12">[12]</a></span></p>
-
-
-<h3>THE PIE-MAN’S SONG.</h3>
-
-<p class="center"><i>A Motion Game.</i></p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
- <div class="poetry">
- <div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse">Solo.</div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1em;">If a body meet a body, coming to my fire,</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1em;">If a body greet a body, why should I have ire?</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1em;">All the lassies and the laddies</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1em;">Come to me and buy</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1em;">Buns and bread and muffins sweet,</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1em;">And all my jelly pie.</span></div>
- </div>
- <div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse">Chorus.</div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1em;">This is the way the pie-man takes</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1em;">The roller to smooth the crust he makes;</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1em;">Then putting the crust in a bright tin pan.</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1em;">He fills it with quince and raspberry jam.</span></div>
- </div>
- <div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1em;">This way the pie-man carries bread,</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1em;">Holding the board on top of his head;</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1em;">While to the oven he hurries along,</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1em;">All the time merrily singing his song.</span></div>
- </div>
- <div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse">Solo.</div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1em;">If a body meet a body, coming to my fire,</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1em;">If a body greet a body, why should I have ire? etc.</span></div>
- </div>
- <div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse">Chorus.</div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1em;">This is the way we eat the cakes,</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1em;">And pies and buns the pie-man makes,</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1em;">And when we are through we ask yet for more,</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1em;">While we dance on the baker’s clean wood floor.</span></div>
- </div>
- <div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1em;">Then we run as fast as we can,</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1em;">And leave this jolly baker man,</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1em;">While to the oven he hurries along,</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1em;">All the time merrily singing his song.</span></div>
- </div>
- <div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse">Solo.</div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1em;">If a body meet a body, coming to my fire,</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1em;">If a body greet a body, why should I have ire? etc.</span></div>
-</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_13" id="Page_13">[13]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>The verses may be sung to the tune, “Pop
-Goes the Weasel.” The solo is sung by the
-baker, to the tune, “Coming Through the
-Rye.”</p>
-
-<p>All the children should sing and imitate
-the pieman, who illustrates each action that
-is mentioned.</p>
-
-
-<h3>FLY SOUTH.</h3>
-
-<p>Very small children would delight in playing
-Fly South.</p>
-
-<p>All the players should sit around a table,
-and each having put their right hand on it,
-the leader should exclaim, “Fly South,
-Sparrow.” The second that this is said
-everybody must lift their hand, and then at
-once put it down as before. Again the
-leader speaks, perhaps to say, “Fly South,
-Pigeon,” and instantly the players must act
-as at the first command.</p>
-
-<p>But if on the contrary something is named
-that cannot fly, such as, “Fly South, Bear,”
-or “Fly South, Cat,” the players must keep
-their hands on the table. All removing them
-at the wrong time should pay a forfeit.</p>
-
-<p>The leader should speak rapidly, in order
-to catch all he can.</p>
-
-
-<h3>THREE BLIND MICE.</h3>
-
-<p>Ask three small boys to be blindfolded.
-When this is done, and they each state that<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_14" id="Page_14">[14]</a></span>
-they cannot see, even the least little bit, a
-big sister or mother should say, “You are
-three blind mice and I am the farmer’s
-wife, and I am going to run, and as soon as I
-count three you must run after me. Whoever
-catches me first shall have a big apple; whoever
-catches me second shall have two big
-apples; and when I am caught by the third
-I shall present that blind mouse with three
-big apples.”</p>
-
-<p>Having made the above explanation, the
-farmer’s wife deliberately counts one, two,
-three, and on the instant three is spoken,
-the blind mice run.</p>
-
-<p>As soon as the running starts, all others
-sing,</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
- <div class="poetry">
-<div class="verse">Three blind mice, see how they run,</div>
-<div class="verse">They all ran after the farmer’s wife.</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p>This may be sung over and over until the
-blind mice succeed. Having run a few moments,
-the farmer’s wife should allow herself
-to be caught, as this game being particularly
-suited to little children, they would
-not have the skill in catching known to
-older people.</p>
-
-<p>If it is not convenient to give apples as
-reward, substitute something else. Almost
-any trifling gift would do.</p>
-
-<p>While running is in continuance, be careful
-the children do not trip.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_15" id="Page_15">[15]</a></span></p>
-
-
-<h3>THE HOLIDAY CALENDAR.</h3>
-
-<p>“I have a holiday calendar,” a little boy
-should say to a little girl.</p>
-
-<p>“Where is it?”</p>
-
-<p>“Here.” And directly he holds up his
-hand with fingers spread towards her.</p>
-
-<p>“See my five fingers. They stand for
-our five holidays.” Then touching his
-thumb he should continue,</p>
-
-<p>“This is for Mayday, so sweet,” and then
-touching the finger next, “Jolly Fourth,
-with its noise,” afterwards indicating the
-middle finger, “Thanksgiving and pumpkin
-pies,” and touching the next finger,
-“Christmas, for girls and boys,” and holding
-up his little finger concludes, “Happy
-New Year to all.”</p>
-
-
-<h3>THE SEA AND HER CHILDREN.</h3>
-
-<p>The players, with the exception of one
-sent from the room, must be seated in a
-circle. The person having left will represent
-the Sea. All others must now decide
-on an assumed name, which is also the
-name of a fish; for example, trout, red
-snapper, pickerel. This done, the Sea returns
-and walks slowly around the outside
-of the ring, calling her children, one after
-another, by the different names they have
-selected, until all have risen and followed
-her. Then the Sea must run with a varied<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_16" id="Page_16">[16]</a></span>
-motion, sometimes rapid, sometimes slow,
-exclaiming, “The Sea is troubled! the Sea
-is troubled!” Suddenly she seats herself,
-and her example is followed by her children.
-The unfortunate individual who is unable to
-secure a chair becomes the Sea, and the
-game is continued as before.</p>
-
-
-<h3>CINDERELLA’S SLIPPER.</h3>
-
-<p>Every child has heard the pretty story of
-Cinderella and her glass slipper. Now learn
-who will have bright enough eyes to find it.</p>
-
-<p>The fairy godmother cannot really let you
-have Cinderella’s slipper, but she allows any
-of the children to hunt for a slipper that is
-made of fur, or trimmed with fur. This
-slipper should have Cinderella’s card pinned
-to it, and whoever finds the slipper should
-be given the card as a souvenir.</p>
-
-<p>Cinderella’s slipper should be well hidden,
-but not where little people could not reach.
-While the hunt is in progress, whoever has
-hidden the slipper should call “Warm,
-Warmer, Cold, Colder,” as the children get
-nearer or further away.</p>
-
-
-<h3>THE MAN IN THE MOON.</h3>
-
-<p>Have a circle two feet in diameter cut out
-of plain white paper. At the time the game
-is to be played some one should pin this on
-the back of the Lord of Misrule. He must<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_17" id="Page_17">[17]</a></span>
-then whistle and caper all about the room,
-thus attracting attention, and seat himself
-at the piano, and sing at the top of his
-lungs,</p>
-
-<div class="center">
-Girls and boys, come out to play.</div>
-
-<p>As soon as he sings the word <i>play</i>, every
-girl and boy rushes forward and catching
-each other by the hand, they dance and skip
-about to the tune played by the Lord of
-Misrule, while all sing,</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
- <div class="poetry">
-<div class="verse">Girls and boys come out to play,</div>
-<div class="verse">The moon doth shine as bright as day,</div>
-<div class="verse">Leave your supper and leave your sleep,</div>
-<div class="verse">And meet your playfellows in the street,</div>
-<div class="verse">Come with a whoop and come with a call.</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p>The second the words whoop and call are
-uttered the most throat-splitting whoops and
-calls should be given; such as cat calls,
-wild beast groans, crying, barking, bird
-notes, etc. The circle disbands during the
-laughter and confusion, but the game may
-be played over and over as long as the Man
-of the Moon shall will.</p>
-
-
-<h3>HOW MANY?</h3>
-
-<p>This is really a game of guess. Shake a
-small bag full of beans before the children,
-and ask each to guess how many beans are
-inside.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_18" id="Page_18">[18]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>It will be amusing to watch the eagerness
-which all will show, and how far apart the
-guesses will be.</p>
-
-<p>Whoever comes nearest to the correct
-number should be presented with the bag of
-beans. And this gift will immediately afford
-healthful and jolly entertainment, because
-the bean-bag should be tossed and caught
-by one and another until the rosy-cheeked
-and out-of-breath children call a halt.</p>
-
-
-<h3>ALPHABETICAL PLAY.</h3>
-
-<p>Cut out a square of cardboard, six inches
-wide by six inches long. Put an eyelet in
-each of the two upper corners and run tape
-or ribbon through. Cut it of sufficient length
-to go over a child’s head. The children
-should wear the cardboard as if it was a
-breastplate.</p>
-
-<p>You should have twenty-six children, and
-you will therefore require twenty-six pieces
-of cardboard. In the centre of each piece,
-paint a letter of the alphabet. Should you
-have fewer children, paint two or more
-letters on each cardboard, for you must use
-the entire alphabet.</p>
-
-<p>The children should first march up and
-down in alphabetical order, keeping time to
-music. They may then join hands in couples
-and skip or waltz or whatever pleasing movements
-may be suggested.</p>
-
-<p>After these exercises call for words, being<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_19" id="Page_19">[19]</a></span>
-careful which words you will require if you
-have doubled or trebled the letters. As each
-word is called, the child wearing the first
-letter steps forward, then the one wearing the
-second letter comes and stands by her side,
-and so on, until the word is spelled.</p>
-
-<p>Very short and simple words should be
-called if the children are not sufficiently
-advanced to allow for longer or more difficult
-ones. Dog, Cat, Bird, will furnish just
-as much amusement as Prodigy, Yclept,
-Bask.</p>
-
-<p>Intersperse the word exercises with
-marches and other movements, such as
-“Right-about-face,” to be done by a chord,
-or “wheel to the left,” to be done by another.
-Form squares and circles. Join
-hands, thus making a ring. Into this ring the
-letter A goes, the others skip around her, until
-she makes a motion like something commencing
-with A; for example, Apple, which she
-pretends to eat. One or more of the company
-guesses what word she represents, and
-then B enters the ring, and so on as long as
-the game amuses.</p>
-
-
-<h3>BLINDFOLDED PLATTER TWIRLING.</h3>
-
-<p>This game is similar to the old-time favorite.</p>
-
-<p>All players should sit in a circle, and each
-number themselves in rotation.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_20" id="Page_20">[20]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Two of the party should be blindfolded.
-They are then each given a platter, and they
-enter the ring.</p>
-
-<p>The others call, one, two, three. As soon
-as three is called, those inside the ring twirl
-the platters, and at the same moment they
-each shout a number which corresponds to
-two of the players in the circle. Should
-either of the bearers of the numbers catch
-his platter before it falls, the original twirler
-must try over again and continue to twirl
-and call until the platter is not caught.</p>
-
-<p>But should the platter have fallen before
-the child bearing the number called has
-caught it, he must not only change places
-with the one who has twirled the platter, but
-also pay a forfeit.</p>
-
-<p>Much amusement is derived, not only
-from catching the platter, but in watching
-the ridiculous movements of those who are
-blindfolded.</p>
-
-
-<h3>THE WILD BEAST EXHIBIT.</h3>
-
-<p>By the side of a pier-glass stand a lamp,
-and before both put a screen.</p>
-
-<p>The one in charge stands in front, and having
-stated that he is ready to exhibit his wild
-beasts to any one present who will not tell
-what he has seen, asks who would like to
-come to the exhibition, all desiring to, please
-rise. He then takes them in turn, always
-exacting the promise of secrecy, and asks<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_21" id="Page_21">[21]</a></span>
-the name of the animal each would like to
-see.</p>
-
-<p>On learning the name, the showman describes
-the animal as funnily as possible,
-making all manner of sport, and engaging
-every one’s attention to the individual who
-is to go to the show. As for example, if
-the person be a boy, and says he would like
-to see a lion, when the boy laughs, the
-showman will say, “And the lion roars
-<i>just like you</i>.” After this he is admitted, and
-sees himself in the looking-glass.</p>
-
-
-<h3>NEW TAG.</h3>
-
-<p>The tallest player should begin the game.</p>
-
-<p>This person turning to the first right hand
-player should say “Yes”; to the second,
-“No”; and so on all around, saying yes or
-no, as the case may be, to yourself last.
-Whoever is the last person to whom “No”
-is said, however, is out of the game, and the
-one who commenced the game, again goes
-around the ring. If she has said “Yes” to
-herself last, then the one to her right hand
-is now told “No,” and thus “Yes,” “No,”
-is said all around again and again and so on,
-until there are but two players. Whichever
-one is Yes, must then be “It.”</p>
-
-<p>All the players now stand at a given distance
-from “It,” and a tree or object being
-selected as a place of safety, they are ready
-to begin.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_22" id="Page_22">[22]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“It” calls to the others, “One foot off,”
-then each player raises one of their feet.
-“Two feet on,” at which order everybody’s
-feet are immediately upon the sidewalk.
-“Two feet off,” may then be called, at which
-order all rush at their utmost speed, and “It”
-after them. Should anybody be caught before
-reaching the tree of safety, that person
-must change places with “It,” and the game
-continues as before.</p>
-
-<p>The orders, “One foot off,” “Two feet
-on,” etc., should be called very rapidly, so
-that everybody is mixed up and will not
-suspect when two feet off will be called.
-Sometimes the orders are repeated over and
-over, and again, “Two feet off” may be
-said the first time.</p>
-
-
-<h3>THE GREENGROCER.</h3>
-
-<p>Any boy may start the game, by saying,
-“I am a greengrocer and I sell O.” All of
-the children must now guess what the
-grocer would have for sale that would commence
-with the letter O.</p>
-
-<p>He means he has onions for sale. Whoever
-is the first to guess, whether it is a girl
-or a boy, now becomes the greengrocer
-and uses the same words as before, only
-substituting another letter. Perhaps the
-greengrocer has cucumbers or carrots for
-sale; in that case he would sell C.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_23" id="Page_23">[23]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>This game is capable of a variety of
-changes, for example, “I am a milliner, and
-I am going to put F on your hat.” All the
-girls must now guess what a milliner could
-put on a hat that would commence with F,
-and some one is not long in deciding that the
-milliner means “Flowers.”</p>
-
-<p>The next milliner may say, “I am a
-milliner and I am going to put D flowers on
-your hat.”</p>
-
-<p>And all must think what varieties of
-flowers commence with the letter D, and
-in a second some one calls out, “Daisies.”</p>
-
-<p>This being correct, the one who has
-guessed becomes milliner.</p>
-
-<p>In like manner a boy may say, “I am a
-New York jeweler, and I sell G,” and all the
-players must think what a jeweler could
-offer for sale that would commence with
-the letter G.</p>
-
-<p>Soon a voice asks, “Is it Gold?” But
-that is not correct, this jeweler is selling
-Garnets.</p>
-
-<p>Or the game may be confined to a country.
-Example: “I am a Japanese merchant and
-I sell S.”</p>
-
-<p>The players must think what the merchant
-has for sale that comes from Japan, and
-that commences with the letter S.</p>
-
-<p>Thus with care this game may be played
-by a small child with as much success as by
-an adult.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_24" id="Page_24">[24]</a></span></p>
-
-
-<h3>RUBIES AND EMERALDS.</h3>
-
-<p>Two players decide as to which one will
-represent rubies and which emeralds, without
-telling the others.</p>
-
-<p>They then join hands to form an arch.
-All the rest take hold of each other’s jackets
-or frocks, and while going through the arch
-they sing,</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
- <div class="poetry">
-<div class="verse">All of a row,</div>
-<div class="verse">Bend the bow,</div>
-<div class="verse">Shot at a pigeon</div>
-<div class="verse">And killed a crow.</div>
-<div class="verse">The cock doth crow</div>
-<div class="verse">To let you know,</div>
-<div class="verse">If you be well.</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p>The second that the last word is sung,
-those who have formed the arch drop their
-arms around the neck of the child just passing
-under. Then they inquire in a whisper
-which he would rather have, Rubies or Emeralds.
-When he decides, he must whisper
-the answer, and he will then be told to go
-back of the player that represents that stone.</p>
-
-<p>When all have been caught, those back of
-the stone that has had the most admirers
-now hide, while the others seek for them.
-Should the rubies have precedence, the emeralds
-are the ones to hunt, or if the emeralds,
-the rubies are the ones to hunt. Whichever
-stone is in the minority must seek for the
-others. Whoever finds the most rubies or
-emeralds, as the case may be, is counted the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_25" id="Page_25">[25]</a></span>
-richest, as this player possesses the most
-treasure.</p>
-
-<p>The players who have formed the arch
-keep watch that all is done fairly.</p>
-
-
-<h3>WHAT THE DANDELIONS SAID</h3>
-
-<p>Is the old game familiar to all from babyhood—that
-of blowing the soft down of the
-ripened dandelion to learn, “How old am
-I?” Blow once, one year old; blow twice,
-two years, and so on, until all the downy
-stuff has gone. The number of times the
-blows have been given before the down has
-altogether disappeared indicates the age.</p>
-
-<p>Or, “What time is it?”</p>
-
-<p>This is indicated in the same way. Blow
-once, and if all the down is gone, it is one
-o’clock, twice, two o’clock, and so on.</p>
-
-
-<h3>DAISY CATCH.</h3>
-
-<p>All the boys and girls should stand in a
-group, with the exception of one girl, and to
-her is given a bunch of daisies. She is
-known as “Daisy Girl.” A tree is selected
-as a place of safety and the other girls count
-ten, allowing ten seconds for the count.
-During the counting, Daisy Girl runs wherever
-she pleases, but the moment ten is
-spoken, the boys and girls may race after
-her. The idea is to tag her while the flowers
-are in her hand. If she is tagged the girl<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_26" id="Page_26">[26]</a></span>
-must then throw the daisies as if they were
-a ball to the boy or girl tagging her. If
-they are caught the game proceeds as before,
-by reversing the players, but if the flowers
-are not caught, Daisy Girl may try again.
-She may also demand another chance, if,
-when fearing she would be tagged, she
-throws the daisies away, and catches them
-again before any of the other players. When
-the game is repeated it commences regularly
-from the beginning, the players taking the
-same position as at the start.</p>
-
-
-<h3>DIBBS.</h3>
-
-<p>This is the English name for Jack-Stones.</p>
-
-<p>Where a number of children are playing
-together, test who can pick up the greater
-number without dropping any, within ten
-minutes.</p>
-
-<p>The oldest child should keep count, and
-also watch the time, in order that no mistakes
-occur. The counter should have each
-of the players’ names written on a slate
-or piece of paper, with sufficient room for
-his scores. When a Dibb or Jack-Stone
-has been dropped, this party must commence
-afresh. He, however, may yet win;
-for his opponents may drop many more
-Dibbs than he. The only score to count is
-after the last Dibb has been dropped. A
-player might have reached a score of thirty
-or more, but having failed to catch his Dibb,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_27" id="Page_27">[27]</a></span>
-it drops and he must now count one, two,
-and so on without regard to former count.</p>
-
-<p>When the ten minutes have expired, the
-counter should call “Game,” and the players
-must stop on the second.</p>
-
-
-<h3>TOUCH.</h3>
-
-<p>This game is for little children, though it
-may be played by children of all ages. It
-is at its best as an out-of-door recreation.</p>
-
-<p>Chalk off a part of a lawn or use a small
-grass plot. On this put a number of paper-covered
-packages. Then blindfold one of
-the children, and, in the sight of all the
-others, touch a package. When this is done
-the blindfold may be removed, and the
-child told he may have all the packages for
-his own, until he takes the one touched, then
-he must stop. Sometimes the player is unfortunate
-enough to pick up the touched
-package first, if so, he must surrender this
-also, unless the players vote he may try
-again. No one may try more than twice.</p>
-
-<p>On the contrary an occasional child may
-pick up every package before the one
-touched, when that happens the touched
-package is also added as a reward.</p>
-
-<p>This game interests all, and when the
-touched package is picked up, the children
-scream with laughter. The contents of the
-packages may be a little candy, inexpensive
-toys, an apple, pear or other fruits, also<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_28" id="Page_28">[28]</a></span>
-nuts. Each present is temptingly wrapped,
-and as this game is played over and over
-no one gift should cost beyond a penny or
-two. It makes great fun to undo the packages,
-and generous children always divide
-with the unfortunate.</p>
-
-
-<h3>SNAPPING-ROPES.</h3>
-
-<p>This is a Scotch game, usually played by
-girls, but there is no reason why boys should
-not play also.</p>
-
-<p>Two skipping-ropes are required. Two
-players turn the pair of ropes, holding the
-ends of both ropes in one hand precisely
-the same as if they were turning a single
-rope, and the third player stands between
-and jumps. Whoever is jumper cannot be
-lazy, as that party has to jump twice as
-rapidly as if jumping in a single rope.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-<div class="chapter"></div>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_29" id="Page_29">[29]</a></span></p>
-
-
-
-
-<h2>BOYS AND GIRLS.</h2>
-
-
-<h3>SILHOUETTES.</h3>
-
-<p>Place a lighted candle behind a tall screen
-covered with white linen. The hostess
-should sit before it and each of the company
-must in turn pass between the candle
-and the screen. The game is to guess the
-person behind the screen by means of their
-shadow.</p>
-
-<p>The guesser should leave the room while
-the one to be named is selected, and on returning,
-he should not look to find out who
-is missing, but honestly guess from the silhouette.</p>
-
-<p>Sometimes it adds to the fun to use a disguise,
-as at a masquerade, for example, put
-on a long skirt, fasten up the hair, etc., in
-no case cover the face, as it is difficult to
-give the right name, with every advantage.</p>
-
-
-<h3>THE SURPRISE.</h3>
-
-<p>Learn what you can do with five pieces
-of paper. The margin of a newspaper may
-be utilized if no other paper is convenient.
-These pieces should be one inch long by
-half an inch wide. The scheme is to shape
-them into squares, triangles, etc., the one<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_30" id="Page_30">[30]</a></span>
-who wins the game is the one who can accomplish
-the most with his five pieces.</p>
-
-<p>He need not use the entire five each time,
-but he cannot add to the number of papers,
-nor can he mark them with pen, pencil or
-any other thing.</p>
-
-<p>As a matter of fact the whole alphabet
-can be formed with them, and so many
-other unique designs that this game fully
-merits its name.</p>
-
-
-<h3>HAPHAZARD READING.</h3>
-
-<p>To be played by nine people; should
-there be more present, draw for the players.
-And, as but one of the party will read, draw
-to decide which one.</p>
-
-<p>The reader then, having a pencil and
-paper, writes the parts of speech, as the
-players in turn whisper to him:</p>
-
-<p>No. 1. An Article.</p>
-
-<p>No. 2. An Adjective.</p>
-
-<p>No. 3. A Noun.</p>
-
-<p>No. 4. A Verb.</p>
-
-<p>No. 5. An Adverb.</p>
-
-<p>No. 6. A Number.</p>
-
-<p>No. 7. An Adjective.</p>
-
-<p>No. 8. A Noun.</p>
-
-<p>These having been written, the sentences
-must then be read aloud:</p>
-
-<p>Example:</p>
-
-<p>No. 1 whispers the article The.</p>
-
-<p>No. 2, the adjective Pink.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_31" id="Page_31">[31]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>No. 3, the noun Hawthorn.</p>
-
-<p>No. 4, the verb Plays.</p>
-
-<p>No. 5, the adverb Prettily.</p>
-
-<p>No. 6, the number Three hundred and
-three.</p>
-
-<p>No. 7, the adjective Fantastic.</p>
-
-<p>No. 8, the noun Operas.</p>
-
-<p>The sentence to be read, therefore, is,
-The pink hawthorn plays prettily three hundred
-and three fantastic operas.</p>
-
-<p>The easiest way to draw will be to provide
-several slips of paper, of exact size and
-shape. Some of the papers must be blank,
-others numbered, 1, 2, 3, and so on, making
-nine in all. Put these papers on a tray and
-pass to all in the room. The one drawing
-the number 9 must be the reader, the other
-numbers decide whether that individual
-must whisper an article or an adjective, according
-to the example given. Those having
-blank papers do not play.</p>
-
-
-<h3>SING, BIRDIE, SING.</h3>
-
-<p>This game provokes laughter from the
-most solemn individual. The company
-should be seated in a ring. The one in
-command enters the ring and makes much
-ceremony in giving each player the name of
-a bird; which may be, for example, heron,
-kingfisher, bluebird, cat-bird, wood-thrush.
-When each have been named, the commander
-then whispers something to every<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_32" id="Page_32">[32]</a></span>
-person. What he whispers is a motion or
-sound or both, which he wishes the person to
-give. When everybody has received their
-cue, the commander steps to the centre of the
-ring and calls, “One, two, three.” The moment
-“Three” is spoken, each of the company
-rise, and running round the circle of empty
-chairs, flap their arms in imitation of wings,
-sing or call as they have been directed.
-The heron should make a motion as though
-trying to get little fish out of holes in the
-bottom of a pond, or he should stand on one
-leg and appear to be asleep. The kingfisher
-should brush up his hair, making it
-rough on the top, and then act as if diving
-for minnows. The bluebird should warble
-a sweet song. The cat-bird should appear
-full of fun and make melodious notes, but
-he should also add the complaining <i>mee-aa;</i>
-for the cat-bird is sometimes a wonderful
-songster, but after nesting gives a sound
-that is decidedly cat-like. The wood-thrush
-should sing a most tender melody, and the
-more melancholy the better. Hawks,
-wood-peckers, chickadees, parrots, screech-owls,
-ducks, geese and many other birds
-might be added. The greater variety introduced
-the better.</p>
-
-
-<h3>SQUIRREL IN THE MIDDLE.</h3>
-
-<p>This is a game for boys, and the player is
-decided by lot.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_33" id="Page_33">[33]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>The easiest way to arrange the lot is to
-throw as many bits of paper, of similar size
-and shape, into a hat as there are players.
-All of these papers are blank excepting one,
-this has the word “player” written on it.
-The hat is then passed, and the boy drawing
-the word “player” immediately sits on the
-floor, the others stand in a circle around
-him. Whoever is behind his back, pulls his
-coat, or gently pulls his hair, taking him
-unawares. He turns to catch this boy, but
-while doing so another boy buffets him.
-As the players dance about the circle, they
-exclaim, “Squirrel in the middle catch him
-if you can.”</p>
-
-<p>Finally one of the boys is caught, and he
-must then change places with the one he
-has been tormenting.</p>
-
-
-<h3>TABLESPOONS.</h3>
-
-<p>Form a circle, one of the number going
-into the ring. Present that person with a
-tablespoon for each hand, and blindfold
-him.</p>
-
-<p>Then state that the others will skip around
-him three times and then stop. As soon as
-they stop, they will let go hands and stand
-perfectly still. The party in the ring now
-moves towards one of the players and must
-tell who he is by touching him with the
-spoons only. If his guess is correct, the
-person caught now exchanges places with<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_34" id="Page_34">[34]</a></span>
-the one in the ring; if he is incorrect, he
-must try again.</p>
-
-<p>This game is not as difficult as it at first
-appears. Carefully notice the peculiarity
-of clothing each one has on before you enter
-the ring, whether, for instance, the frock
-is trimmed, buttoned, etc., or the scarf is a
-four-in-hand ornamented with a scarf-pin,
-or if the scarf is run through a ring or tied in
-a bow. Note also the wearing of the hair
-and every detail that may occur to you, and
-remember that the spoons may be used
-whichever way one pleases. So, if they
-touch beads, and there is only one person
-who is wearing beads that will at once indicate
-the individual; or if the spoon knocks
-against a scarf pin and there is only one
-boy wearing a scarf pin, he will of necessity
-be recognized, and thus each player is
-caught.</p>
-
-
-<h3>THE EMPEROR’S COURT.</h3>
-
-<p>Put a conspicuously handsome chair in
-the centre of the room, also an ottoman for
-the feet. On either side of this put as many
-ordinary chairs as would accommodate the
-players.</p>
-
-<p>One of the company now goes to the
-piano, and plays a march, all of the others,
-rise, and, with considerable ceremony, escort
-the tallest boy in the room to the chair of
-honor.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_35" id="Page_35">[35]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>This boy now becomes an Emperor, and
-the chair at his disposal, his throne, the rest
-of the players his court. Immediately the
-Emperor is seated, the music stops, and the
-pianist together with the court seat themselves
-also.</p>
-
-<p>This game consists in copying the Emperor.
-If he pretends to cry, the court must
-cry, if he sings, the court must sing. The
-Emperor should make himself as ridiculous
-as is possible.</p>
-
-<p>Or he might order one of the court to play
-the piano and have a dance, or give a set of
-military tactics.</p>
-
-<p>Should any of the court laugh at a time
-the Emperor is not laughing, he or she must
-pay a forfeit.</p>
-
-
-<h3>THREE LITTLE PIGS.</h3>
-
-<p>This game is played after the same manner
-as is Silhouettes, only those taking part
-should be in costume, representing the words
-they illustrate. It makes capital sport, and
-nobody can fail to enjoy it, whether taking
-part or not. The game is easily understood,
-and is best described by an example.</p>
-
-<p>One of the company should distinctly say,</p>
-
-<div class="center">
-Three little pigs went to market.</div>
-
-<p class="unindent">When this is said, three pigs should appear<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_36" id="Page_36">[36]</a></span>
-as if going to market, passing between a
-candle and a white covered screen, they
-should grotesquely walk, so adding to the
-amusement. When these three have hobbled
-off, the reader then recites,</p>
-
-<div class="center">
-Three little pigs stayed at home,</div>
-
-<p class="unindent">which is likewise shown by three others of
-the company; then in like manner,</p>
-
-<div class="center">
-Three little pigs have bread and butter,</div>
-
-<p class="unindent">and so on through the rhyme, illustrating
-every scene.</p>
-
-<p>Paper will be found all the material necessary
-to effect a disguise. Cut it in the form
-of ears, etc., as is needed, and practise effects
-before producing the game to amuse an
-audience.</p>
-
-
-<h3>THE FUNNY PRIMA DONNAS.</h3>
-
-<p>Three girls should wear ridiculous costumes,
-making themselves as grotesque as
-possible. Each one being a prima donna,
-should try to outdo the other in appearance
-as also in voice. The hair should be fashioned
-after the same arrangement as that of
-a celebrated vocalist, the hands and arms
-should be covered with evening gloves.
-The material of the frock need not be costly,
-but it should be smart and showy; the frock
-should be made with a train. Each should<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_37" id="Page_37">[37]</a></span>
-carry a conspicuous fan, or immense bouquets
-of large bright flowers, such as full-blown
-roses, poppies, yellow chrysanthemums,
-etc. The bouquets should be trimmed
-elaborately around with white paper lace.</p>
-
-<p>At an appropriate time the hostess will
-announce the arrival of three celebrated
-Prima Donnas, and before they appear she
-will give each of the company a noticeably
-colored paper flower, or bunch of flowers,
-such as marigolds, morning glories, scarlet
-geraniums. Having given the flowers, she
-will say, “When the artists have concluded
-their song, let each one do as I do.”</p>
-
-<p>This said, the artists enter, and having
-promenaded to the front room, gesticulating
-all the time, they bow and sing a line each,
-and each in a different key, to the tune of
-“Auld Lang Syne,” the following:</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
- <div class="poetry">
-<div class="verse">Young Mousy Mouse</div>
-<div class="verse">Has made a house</div>
-<div class="verse">Out of the farmer’s cheese.</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p>Then in chorus,—</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
- <div class="poetry">
-<div class="verse">And eats away</div>
-<div class="verse">With friends each day,</div>
-<div class="verse">As jolly as you please.</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p>Then separately the first three lines of the
-second verse,—</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
- <div class="poetry">
-<div class="verse">But Mousy Mouse</div>
-<div class="verse">Don’t see her house</div>
-<div class="verse">Soon swallowed up must be.</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_38" id="Page_38">[38]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>In chorus,—</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
- <div class="poetry">
-<div class="verse">And with that house</div>
-<div class="verse">Goes that poor mouse</div>
-<div class="verse">As sure as sure can be.</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p>The instant the last word is sung, the hostess,
-with all her might and main, throws her
-flower to reach the artist’s feet, and as the
-company has been told to copy her, there
-is a perfect rain of flowers. Afterwards they
-are gathered, and divided between the
-Prima Donnas, who triumphantly carry
-them home as souvenirs of their charming
-reception.</p>
-
-
-<h3>DO YOU HEAR?</h3>
-
-<p>This game needs two persons.</p>
-
-<p>Stand at a distance from your confederate
-who will ask, “Molly, do you hear?” and
-who will keep up asking the question until
-some one speaks. Then Molly says she
-hears and leaves the room.</p>
-
-<p>No sooner out, than her confederate will
-explain to the company, “I shall hand some
-one in this room a button, and I shall then
-ask Molly to tell me who has it.” Having
-thus explained, he hands the button to the
-individual who spoke just before Molly left
-the room. Then the confederate calls,
-“Molly, who has the button?”</p>
-
-<p>At once Molly replies correctly. The key<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_39" id="Page_39">[39]</a></span>
-is very simple, being only to remember the
-person who spoke as she left the room.</p>
-
-<p>The game when played with a boy, should
-have the word Johnny substituted for Molly.</p>
-
-
-<h3>LAUGHABLE DINNER.</h3>
-
-<p>Each girl in succession leads a boy to a
-position to dance a reel.</p>
-
-<p>First girl then says to first boy, “This is
-my flower to decorate the table,” and she
-gives him a flower which he puts in his
-buttonhole.</p>
-
-<p>Second girl to second boy, “This is my
-flower to decorate the table,” and she gives
-him a different flower, which he puts in his
-buttonhole.</p>
-
-<p>Third girl to third boy, “You tread clams
-for dinner,” and the boy must make the
-motion of treading clams.</p>
-
-<p>Fourth girl to fourth boy, “You catch
-trout for dinner,” and the boy makes believe
-he is a fly-fisherman.</p>
-
-<p>Fifth girl to fifth boy, “You get lamb to
-roast,” and the boy calls, “Bah! bah!”</p>
-
-<p>Sixth girl to sixth boy, “You get the turkey
-to roast,” and the boy gives the call of
-a turkey-gobbler.</p>
-
-<p>Seventh girl to seventh boy, “You shoot
-the duck for roasting,” and the boy calls,
-“Quack! Quack!”</p>
-
-<p>Eighth girl to eighth boy, “You are my<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_40" id="Page_40">[40]</a></span>
-pigeon to bake in a pie,” and the boy flaps
-his arms in imitation of wings.</p>
-
-<p>Ninth girl to ninth boy, “You are a baker
-and must bake our cake,” and this boy pretends
-to beat eggs.</p>
-
-<p>Tenth girl to tenth boy, “You are the
-young man who grinds good coffee,” and
-he makes believe he is turning the crank of
-a coffee-mill. As soon as the tenth boy responds,
-a couple of good whistlers whistle
-Yankee Doodle, all the others dance a reel,
-repeating their calls and motions while
-dancing.</p>
-
-
-<h3>JOLLY PLAY.</h3>
-
-<p>Arrange chairs in couples back to back,
-placing them in different parts of the room,
-and have one too few for your company.</p>
-
-<p>All the players stand, one behind the
-other, the one in charge at the head of the
-line. He leads the party whichever way he
-pleases. As they march, the leader sings to
-the tune of, “There were Three Crows sat
-on a Tree,”</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
- <div class="poetry">
-<div class="verse">I must be gay</div>
-<div class="verse">This merry day,</div>
-<div class="verse">But game obey</div>
-<div class="verse">I will, I will.</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p>He may march about and sing this verse
-as often as he wishes, but while singing, “I
-will, I will,” he must some time fling himself
-into a chair. As soon as the leader is<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_41" id="Page_41">[41]</a></span>
-seated, the others make a bold rush to follow
-his example. The player for whom there is
-no seat, now becomes leader, and the rest
-of the company follow as before.</p>
-
-
-<h3>THE DWARF.</h3>
-
-<p>A boy should put his hands into small
-stockings and shoes. Then put on a wig of
-different color from his own hair. He must
-fasten on a moustache, and put some black
-sticking plaster over one or two of his front
-teeth. His coat should be of a different
-shape and his necktie should be of a different
-style from that which he usually
-wears. Indeed, he must be thoroughly
-disguised. Back of him, another boy must
-stand, and pass his arm around the first
-boy’s shoulder.</p>
-
-<p>Curtains must be drawn so that no part
-of the second boy is seen but his arms.</p>
-
-<p>Put a small table before them, and from
-the back of this table drop a cloth, so as to
-conceal the first boy below his waist. The
-front boy puts his hands dressed in shoes
-on the table, the boy back of him supplies
-his arms and hands, and if properly arranged
-a dwarf from three to four feet tall is thus
-produced.</p>
-
-<p>Of course, a tiny costume must be made.
-Little Turkish trousers, a blouse-like coat, a
-fez, a belt and small sword.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_42" id="Page_42">[42]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>It is well to have an exhibitor who should
-tell some wonderful tale about the dwarf.
-And the exhibitor should indicate that the
-dwarf jokes, sings and dances, an exhibition
-of which should then follow.</p>
-
-<p>The dwarf should be fully prepared as to
-what he will say and do. Several spicy
-jokes should be at his tongue’s end. He
-should gesticulate violently with his hands
-and arms, and likewise sing the jolliest of
-songs and dance the drollest dances.</p>
-
-<p>It requires practice.</p>
-
-
-<h3>CROWN GAME.</h3>
-
-<p>A girl enters the ring; all the others take
-firm hold of the rope. No sooner is she in
-than they skip about her, keeping the rope
-in motion. As they skip they sing, to the
-tune of “Auld Lang-syne,”</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
- <div class="poetry">
-<div class="verse">Who’ll crown our queen, our merry queen,</div>
-<div class="verse">Who’ll crown our queen to-day?</div>
-<div class="verse">Who’ll crown our queen, our merry queen,</div>
-<div class="verse">Who’ll crown our queen to-day?</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p>When this is sung, the children stop skipping
-just where they are. And at once one
-of the boys puts his head under the rope,
-and, standing by the queen, replies, “I
-will.” Then raising a crown of wild flowers,
-he puts it on her head. No sooner is
-she crowned than she blindfolds the boy,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_43" id="Page_43">[43]</a></span>
-and another girl enters, thus making two
-girls in the ring. The game is to “tag” the
-right girl before the other players count nine.
-When the boy “tags” the girl, he must at
-once say whether or not she is the queen,
-and if he makes a mistake he must remain
-in the ring and try again. The first girl
-withdraws, the second girl is crowned queen,
-and the game is repeated. But should he
-make no mistake, the boy remains in the
-ring, is crowned king, and the game goes
-on, only that two boys are in the ring when
-a girl is blindfolded.</p>
-
-
-<h3>GUESS.</h3>
-
-<p class="center"><i>A Rope Game.</i></p>
-
-<p>Put a rope on the ground in the form of a
-circle; in the centre put a stone about the
-size of a duck’s egg. The players stand
-backwards around the rope, with their heels
-touching it. Each one in turn throws a
-grace-hoop over his right shoulder, with the
-hope it will encircle the stone. As soon as
-the hoop is thrown all may turn and see the
-position. If the hoop encircles the stone
-the player may try again and again, until
-he fails, counting one for each time. Then
-the party to his right tries, and so on all
-around the rope. Whoever has the largest
-count wins the game.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_44" id="Page_44">[44]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>This game is also played facing the stone;
-it is then no longer a game of guess, but a
-game of skill.</p>
-
-
-<h3>THE CIRCLE.</h3>
-
-<p>On the floor or ground mark a circle, the
-diameter of which is two feet.</p>
-
-<p>The easiest way would be to use a hoople
-of the correct size, and chalk it all around
-close to the wood. Be careful not to move
-the hoople while marking. Therefore, one
-person would better hold the hoople, while
-another uses the chalk.</p>
-
-<p>Eight players are required, two and two
-standing together, taking the same positions
-as if they were to dance a quadrille. The
-circle must be in the centre of the space
-around which they stand, and the players
-should be six feet from the outer edge.</p>
-
-<p>In the circle place four small articles, three
-without much value, and the other of some
-little value. As an example, put in three
-empty bottles, and one filled with inexpensive
-perfume, or if you use flowers, put three
-dandelions, and one half-blown rose. All
-articles must be laid side by side, and as
-nearly as possible, in the exact centre of the
-circle.</p>
-
-<p>When all is ready, the host, being at the
-piano, should play “Pop Goes the Weasel,”
-and if the game is played out of doors,
-the same tune should be hummed or whistled.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_45" id="Page_45">[45]</a></span>
-When the music starts, the head
-couples join hands and skip to the circle and
-then back, this must be again and again
-repeated, until the pianist suddenly stops.
-Those who have been skipping must then
-bow to each other wherever they happen to
-be, also unclasp their hands, and neither
-run nor walk, but skip as rapidly as possible
-to the circle; sometimes they are fortunate
-enough to be by it when the music stops;
-then at once pick up one of the articles, and
-skip back to the position held at the time
-the game started.</p>
-
-<p>These movements must be finished before
-the musician again commences to play.
-Then, holding the article in one hand and
-your partner’s hand in the other, you skip
-twice around the circle, and return to position.
-The head couple leading, all the
-others following after the same order, as the
-march in a quadrille.</p>
-
-<p>The articles are then put where they were
-at the game’s start, and the side couples
-repeat what the head couples have already
-done.</p>
-
-<p>The musician should allow enough time
-to make it possible for all the players to pick
-up an article, but he must not allow too
-much time, or a prominent feature in the
-game is missed.</p>
-
-<p>Every one is desirous to pick up the valuable
-article, but if you are not careful the
-music will start before you have gotten anything:<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_46" id="Page_46">[46]</a></span>
-in that case you must be blindfolded
-and skip all alone four times around the circle.
-While you are skipping, the spectators
-are clapping. Whoever is fortunate enough
-to have picked up the valuable article, may
-retain it as a favor. This must therefore
-have a duplicate, as the side couples have
-equal chances with the heads.</p>
-
-
-<h3>TWO SKIPPING-ROPE GAMES.</h3>
-
-<p>Take a skipping-rope whenever you go
-for a country frolic. One treat will be given
-through clover blossoms. Each player
-should gather enough of these sweet-scented
-flowers to make three fair-sized bouquets,
-when these are made, put them in a convenient
-and cool place.</p>
-
-<p>Take turns turning the rope; as soon as one
-girl is through skipping, she should exchange
-with one that has been turning. In that
-way nobody is tired.</p>
-
-<p>Enter the rope according to height, the
-shortest player should go first. As soon as
-the rope is in even motion, all the players
-excepting the one to skip, should say, “One,
-two, three,” the moment “Three” is said,
-whoever is to skip must enter or lose her
-turn. Should she trip before skipping eight
-times she must give her successor a bouquet,
-on the contrary, should she skip five times
-without a break, her successor must present<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_47" id="Page_47">[47]</a></span>
-her with a bouquet. No one may be allowed
-to skip more than fifteen times, as
-too much rope skipping is injurious.</p>
-
-<p>These rules must receive strict adherence.
-When all have had opportunity to skip three
-times, the game is finished. The winner
-is the one who has received the most bouquets.</p>
-
-<p>Another game requires ten players, two
-turning and eight skipping. In this game
-those who turn cannot be relieved, but must
-turn until the game is concluded.</p>
-
-<p>This time the tallest player is the first to
-enter, the others stand according to height,
-one directly back of the other. As soon as
-the rope is in steady motion, the first player
-starts, skips once, runs out and around to a
-rock or tree previously decided on, where
-she is safe, the second immediately enters
-the rope, after the first one runs out, the
-point being for the second one to tag the
-first before she can reach her destination.
-The third player, however, enters the rope as
-the second has run out, and is trying just as
-hard to tag the second, as the second is to
-tag the first, and so on, each rapidly following
-the one before, and thus this game keeps
-steadily on until all have been through the
-rope three times.</p>
-
-<p>Whoever has been tagged is out of the
-game, and can no longer play; this decides
-who are the winners.</p>
-
-<p>It now becomes the duty of all who have<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_48" id="Page_48">[48]</a></span>
-played, to gather quantities of clover or other
-field blossoms, enough to trim the rope from
-one end to the other. In this form the pretty
-flowers are taken home, and used for dining-room
-decoration. Festoon the mantel,
-or wind it around the chandelier, allowing
-the ends to drop low towards the table.</p>
-
-<p>As only one person can have this rope of
-flowers, decide which one, by counting out.</p>
-
-
-<h3>RUNNING FOR THE CAP.</h3>
-
-<p>The boys must be equally divided; one
-set is called catchers, the other runners, and
-these sets must stand fifty yards apart. The
-catcher’s position is thirty yards from the
-post, and the runners’ twenty. The call,
-one, two, three, is given, and on the second
-three is spoken one boy from each party
-runs to the post. The runner will naturally
-get there first, and he has to put the cap on
-his head, and then replace it. He must do
-this with the utmost rapidity, as, should the
-catcher overtake him on his way back to the
-position which he held before starting to run,
-the boy becomes the catcher’s prisoner, and
-can no longer play.</p>
-
-
-<h3>FIRE-ARCH DISCOUNT GAME.</h3>
-
-<p>A strip of wood two inches thick, five
-inches wide, and one yard long will be required.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_49" id="Page_49">[49]</a></span>
-In this cut five arches, making the
-centre one four inches in width, the others
-three inches each; stand it up on the floor
-or on a table, and make the starting-point
-six feet away. Four marbles may be rolled
-by each player. When a marble goes
-through the centre arch it counts sixty, but
-if, instead, it goes through either of the small
-arches, thirty is counted off. If a marble
-fails to pass through either, it is counted out
-of the game, and must be removed. The
-next turn around, the player will use only
-three instead of four marbles. The boy who
-has the highest tally has won; should there
-be a tie, they must roll again.</p>
-
-<p>This game requires practice, or some
-players will find that they have lost more
-than they have made.</p>
-
-
-<h3>THE BAGATELLE BOARD COUNT GAME.</h3>
-
-<p>Chalk a floor or mark a space in exact
-copy of a bagatelle-board ten feet long by
-three wide. In the inclosure, at correct distances,
-mark the numbers; this may be done
-with chalk, or the numbers may be painted
-on thin wooden blocks and laid in position.
-Each player must start his marble at the
-extreme left-hand corner, and state before
-starting the number he wishes to roll to.
-Should the marble go to that number, and
-not roll on so as to touch another, the player<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_50" id="Page_50">[50]</a></span>
-counts the number selected, and can then
-state another number and play for that, and
-can so continue for seven minutes, provided
-his marble always hits the number selected,
-and though rolling on, does not touch or
-stop at any other. When his time is up his
-count is scored, and the next player follows,
-subject to the same rules. Should the
-marble stop on the number selected, it is
-counted double in favor of the player.
-Again, should the marble, having reached
-the selected number, still roll on and touch
-another, no count is allowed, and the player
-must stop until his turn comes again.</p>
-
-
-<h3>FUNNY QUESTIONS WITH FUNNY ANSWERS.</h3>
-
-<p>All the players stand in a circle and join
-hands.</p>
-
-<p>The tallest one in the room whispers a
-question to her right-hand neighbor, who
-answers her in a whisper, and then turns
-and asks <i>her</i> right-hand neighbor a question,
-who replies in like manner. When questions
-and answers have all gone around, the
-party who commenced states aloud the
-question her <i>left</i>-hand neighbor asked, and
-the reply her <i>right</i>-hand neighbor gave.</p>
-
-<p>Example: Suppose three players.</p>
-
-<p>First questions.</p>
-
-<p>Second answers, then turns and ask third.</p>
-
-<p>Third answers, and asks the first, who answers.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_51" id="Page_51">[51]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Then, questions and answers having gone
-all around, first says aloud, “My left-hand
-neighbor asked, and my right-hand neighbor
-answered.”</p>
-
-<p>First Player: What is the brightest idea
-this season?</p>
-
-<p>Second Player: Your eye, dear (idea).</p>
-
-<p>How many blackbirds were baked in the
-pie?</p>
-
-<p>Third Player: Four-and-twenty. What
-was the name of Goliath of Gath’s grandmother’s
-straw bonnet maker?</p>
-
-<p>First Player: Nobody knows.</p>
-
-<p>When all have played.</p>
-
-<p>First Player, aloud: The question asked
-me was, “What was the name of Goliath of
-Gath’s grandmother’s straw bonnet maker?”
-the answer was, “Your eye, dear (idea).”</p>
-
-<p>Second Player: The question asked me
-was, “What is the brightest idea this
-season?” The answer was, “Four-and-twenty!”</p>
-
-<p>Third Player: The question asked was,
-“How many blackbirds were baked in
-the pie?” The answer was, “Nobody
-knows.”</p>
-
-<p>The one whose question has been most
-appropriately answered aloud, must be entertained
-by the others, as he desires—by
-dancing, playing a favorite game, by music,
-recitations or any other suggested amusement.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_52" id="Page_52">[52]</a></span></p>
-
-
-<h3>JUDGE AND JURY.</h3>
-
-<p>Draw lots for a Judge and five Jurymen.
-Pass six numbered paper slips in a fancy
-bag. Whoever draws number one is Judge,
-and the others the Jury. All the other
-players take the name of a celebrated musician
-or composer, as Beethoven, De Pachmann,
-or Schubert, etc.</p>
-
-<p>The Judge now takes a seat at one end of
-the room. The Jurymen sit at one side in
-a row, and the rest of the people sit at a
-distance. The Judge calls one of the other
-players up to the bar and proceeds to question
-him or her. The <i>prisoner</i> is bound to
-answer any question the Judge may see fit
-to ask, and the business of the Jury is to
-decide the name of the musician the prisoner
-has assumed.</p>
-
-<p>Ten questions are all that may be asked.
-At the end of those the prisoner seats himself
-and awaits the Jury’s verdict. If the
-first decision of the Jury is incorrect, the
-prisoner is released. But if correct, the
-prisoner takes the place of one of the Jurymen,
-who must draw to determine which
-one is relieved. The ex-Juryman then takes
-his place among the waiting prisoners and
-assumes a character.</p>
-
-<p>After three trials the Judge must be a
-Juryman, and one of them must take his
-place. This, too, is decided by lot.</p>
-
-<p>By so doing all are on duty all the time,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_53" id="Page_53">[53]</a></span>
-and the end of the game is when the players
-are tired.</p>
-
-
-<h3>THE CARD INTRODUCTION.</h3>
-
-<p>When young people are not very well acquainted,
-play this game, and by the time
-that it is finished every one will think he
-must have known everybody else for the
-last seven years.</p>
-
-<p>Place chairs so as to form a ring, and ask
-your friends to be seated. Then have a pack
-of say, authors’ cards in your hand, state
-that every one must say what you say, and
-give what you give to his left-hand neighbor.
-Then lifting up the top card in the
-pack, you say to your guest at your left,
-“Here’s my card, Longfellow.” The one
-who receives it instantly turns to the party
-at his left and, giving the card, repeats
-the same words, “Here’s my card, Longfellow.”
-The next card follows at once in
-the same manner, repeating whatever its
-portrait, may be, and so card follows
-card without a second’s delay, and the
-laughter and fun that is made causes even
-the dullest person in the room to wake up
-and be hale fellow for the next entertainment.
-Should any card drop, let it go.
-There will not be enough time to pick it up
-until the game is ended.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_54" id="Page_54">[54]</a></span></p>
-
-
-<h3>HARMONY SOLOISTS.</h3>
-
-<p>One of the young men must represent the
-Lord of Misrule, and in fantastic attire he
-goes from one to the other of the guests and
-asks each to draw one slip of paper from the
-basket which he carries.</p>
-
-<p>On each slip are written four lines of any
-popular or well-known song. Each slip
-contains a different song.</p>
-
-<p>As soon as the papers are drawn five of
-the people stand up in a line, and with the
-Lord of Misrule as director they each sing
-separately their particular four lines to the
-correct tune. When each of the five have
-sung, all sing together as chorus, each carefully
-keeping his own words and music.</p>
-
-<p>Then another five, and then another, until
-all have sung. Then for a grand finale, all
-the guests stand as chorus and in duets,
-trios, quartettes sing the one stanza through,
-all joining in the refrain each time.</p>
-
-<p>The harmony will be remarkable.</p>
-
-
-<h3>JIG-I-TY JIG.</h3>
-
-<p>Chairs are placed to form a circle, and all
-the players excepting two occupy the chairs.</p>
-
-<p>One of the two players must play a polka
-or waltz. The other one stands outside of
-the circle.</p>
-
-<p>The one standing outside dances as soon<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_55" id="Page_55">[55]</a></span>
-as the music starts, and continues dancing
-as long as she pleases, but all of a sudden
-she stops a second before a chair, and then
-dances up to the chair. Whoever occupies
-it instantly rises and dances back to her,
-and after a while the first dancer waves a
-backward movement of the hand toward
-her friend, thus indicating she is not wanted
-to continue dancing. But she must walk or
-waltz back to her chair and then sit down.</p>
-
-<p>The first dancer continues dancing, however,
-and goes to another party in precisely
-the same way as she did to the first, and
-when she concludes she has the right one,
-she dances to that party’s seat and takes it.</p>
-
-<p>The individual then on the floor continues
-dancing, as did the first one. When she sits
-down a third party dances, and so on until
-all have danced.</p>
-
-<p>If any of the company do not dance, they
-should make a feint of doing so. If the
-individual is full of fun, much amusement
-is created.</p>
-
-
-<h3>CIRCLE GAME.</h3>
-
-<p>Make a target of brown wrapping-paper,
-and put the number 100 on the bull’s eye.
-Outside of this mark five rings, making the
-largest one two feet in diameter, the others
-proportionately smaller. Inside of these
-rings put the numbers 10, 20, 30, 40, 50, the
-centre as stated being 100. Mark out a<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_56" id="Page_56">[56]</a></span>
-space on the ground for a base five feet
-away; place the target on the ground,
-blindfold a player, lead him to the base,
-and turn him around twice, and leave him
-facing the target. He is now entitled to roll
-three marbles, and then remove the blindfold.
-His count will be the added numbers
-in the rings at which his marbles have
-stopped. Should any of them stop on a
-line, he is entitled to the largest number
-adjoining. No marbles must be moved,
-and each boy has the privilege of trying the
-ground once with each marble, before being
-blindfolded.</p>
-
-
-<h3>THE HUNT FOR THE KEYHOLE.</h3>
-
-<p>A tall boy should put on the skirt of a
-lady’s dress. This skirt should just escape
-the floor. In his hands he should carry
-a broom, with the broom end held directly
-above him, and the broom handle held
-close in front of him.</p>
-
-<p>A ball to simulate a person’s head should
-be secured by strong twine to the broom.
-This ball should have a false face securely
-fastened to the front of it, while, as a cover
-for the rest of the ball there should be a
-lady’s bonnet. This bonnet cannot be too
-grotesquely trimmed. Long plumes, brilliant
-flowers, natural or artificial, sunflowers,
-hollyhocks, cucumber blossoms,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_57" id="Page_57">[57]</a></span>
-etc., would be correct decoration. The bonnet
-should be tied underneath the false face,
-being careful to have the bow ends voluminous
-and the streamers long. The ribbon
-should be vivid scarlet, or bright orange
-color.</p>
-
-<p>Just below the bonnet and around the
-broom fasten a cloak, the bottom of which
-should reach beyond the boys waist; in this
-way the boy and the broom are entirely concealed.</p>
-
-<p>The company should be asked to take
-seats at the rear end of the room, then announce
-that they are to be entertained by
-the pantomime entitled “The Hunt for the
-Keyhole.”</p>
-
-<p>Then the door should be opened, and at
-once a tall, odd-looking individual enters.
-His appearance creates roars of laughter, as
-also his ridiculous actions when having
-bowed to the audience he turns to the door
-through which he has come and commences
-his search. The effect is ridiculous, as the
-head is bobbed around in every direction
-whichever way the boy chooses to turn, as
-also whichever way he chooses to move the
-broom. When enough amusement has been
-gotten, the boy again bows and comically
-waltzes out of the room.</p>
-
-<p>The boy will need an assistant to dress,
-and this game should be privately practised
-before showing it to an audience.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_58" id="Page_58">[58]</a></span></p>
-
-
-<h3>ACTING PROVERBS</h3>
-
-<p>This is played by one of the party leaving
-the room, and on his return acting in such a
-manner as to indicate to the others a well-known
-proverb. Example, “A rolling stone
-gathers no moss,” may be indicated by the
-one having left the room returning with a
-round stone in his hand and rolling it on the
-floor.</p>
-
-
-<h3>GOSSIP.</h3>
-
-<p>This title suggests an amusing <i>tableau
-vivant</i> for an evening at home.</p>
-
-<p>Two girls should withdraw and put over
-their pretty dresses queer-looking old shawls,
-and cover their curls with odd-looking bonnets
-tied under the chin.</p>
-
-<p>They should sit very close together, and
-with cups of tea in their hands gaze intently
-at each other, busily stirring the while.
-They must nod their heads as though one
-were telling a bit of scandal.</p>
-
-<p>Suddenly one exclaims in a high-pitched
-voice, “You don’t say so!” whereupon the
-hostess should inquire, “Who can tell what
-these girls represent?”</p>
-
-<p>A number of the company will naturally
-reply, “Gossip.”</p>
-
-
-<h3>THE FLORIST.</h3>
-
-<p>Whoever assumes this character should
-explain that he has flowers for sale, and that<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_59" id="Page_59">[59]</a></span>
-he will try and sell all that he has by putting
-questions to the persons whom he
-thinks will buy, and that whoever in answering
-his questions uses the words <i>flowers</i>, <i>yes</i>,
-or <i>no</i> would have to pay a forfeit, and that
-he will try all that he can to get them to use
-one of the prohibited words.</p>
-
-<p>Then the Florist should turn to one of the
-players and ask, “Can I sell you any fresh
-flowers to-day?”</p>
-
-<p>“I am fully supplied, thank you.” And
-addressing another, “Do buy my sweet
-violets.”</p>
-
-<p>“Not to-day, sir.”</p>
-
-<p>“How about carnations?”</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t wish flowers of any kind.”</p>
-
-<p>And in that way a forfeit is incurred.</p>
-
-<p>The questions should be rapidly asked,
-and as rapidly answered, or the players will
-not get caught.</p>
-
-
-<h3>MY LADY’S RECEPTION APPAREL.</h3>
-
-<p>One of the players should act the part of
-lady’s maid. Each of the players should
-take the name of something which a lady
-would wear to a reception, as an article of
-clothing or jewelry. Or a player may take
-the name of an article a lady would use in
-getting ready for a reception, as a comb and
-brush.</p>
-
-<p>The lady’s maid should stand at one end
-of the room, and looking towards the players<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_60" id="Page_60">[60]</a></span>
-announce, “My lady is going to a reception
-to-night, and wishes a handkerchief,”
-or whatever article she may choose
-to select. The one named instantly rises,
-and steps two feet forward, makes a low
-bow, then suddenly starting up twists
-about, and turning to her right-hand neighbor
-says, “Change chairs.”</p>
-
-<p>No sooner said than done. Everybody
-on the instant rushes for a chair, including
-the lady’s maid, and the one that is left
-without a chair becomes the next lady’s
-maid.</p>
-
-<p>This person may continue the game, as
-did the previous maid, or she may say,
-“My lady is going to a reception to-night
-and wants her salts.”</p>
-
-<p>The moment salts are desired some of the
-players must sneeze as if the salts were too
-strong, others should appear to faint, and
-others wave their hands forward and back
-as if fanning.</p>
-
-<p>Any second that the lady’s maid may
-choose she may exclaim, “Change chairs!”
-and again there is another scramble, with
-one person left without, and there is therefore
-a new lady’s maid.</p>
-
-<p>This maid may try yet another way, which
-will result in getting almost all of the players
-on their feet before they can change
-chairs. She asks the players to re-name
-themselves, and for nearly all of them to
-select articles of apparel.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_61" id="Page_61">[61]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Then the maid says, for instance, “My
-lady desires her white ivory fan.”</p>
-
-<p>The person so named should rise, go two
-feet forward and, having bowed very low,
-should stand just where she is until the
-signal for change chairs is given.</p>
-
-<p>The maid might then say, “My lady
-desires her white satin gown.” The person
-named white satin gown rises, and repeats
-the action of the one going before. And thus
-the maid continues to call, until having all
-the requisite articles of apparel. But when
-she exclaims, “My lady wishes her white
-kid shoes!” all rush for a seat.</p>
-
-<p>Whoever is left without a chair after this
-method of playing must rapidly tell the bootblack
-story.</p>
-
-<p>“As I was going down the street I saw
-two bootblacks. One was a black bootblack
-and the other a white bootblack, and both
-had black boots, as well as blacking and
-blacking brushes. The black bootblack
-asked the white bootblack to black his, the
-black bootblack’s black boot with blacking.
-The white bootblack consented to black
-the black boots of the black bootblack with
-blacking, but when he, the white bootblack
-had blacked one black boot of the black bootblack
-with blacking, he the white bootblack
-refused to black his, the black bootblack’s,
-other black boot with blacking unless he,
-the black bootblack, paid him, the white
-bootblack, the same as what he, the white<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_62" id="Page_62">[62]</a></span>
-bootblack, got for blacking other people’s
-black boots; whereupon, the black bootblack
-grew still blacker in the face, and called the
-white bootblack a blackguard, at the same
-time hitting the white bootblack with the
-black boot that he, the white bootblack, had
-already blacked with blacking.”</p>
-
-<p>Should any one not leave his chair he must
-pay a forfeit.</p>
-
-<p>Should the maid ask for an article that has
-not been taken for a name, she must pay a
-forfeit.</p>
-
-
-<h3>THIMBLE GAME.</h3>
-
-<p>In order to be enjoyable this game requires
-several players, and it is better that
-they should be both boys and girls, as it then
-has the added element of a match between
-the boys and girls.</p>
-
-<p>Put a silver or gold thimble in full view,
-in any convenient room, into which your
-friends have not yet entered. It makes the
-game more difficult if this room is well filled
-with <i>bric-à-brac</i>, hangings, pictures, plants,
-etc., for the reason that the eye is confused
-with so much ornament and therefore cannot
-so easily detect such a small thing as a
-thimble.</p>
-
-<p>State clearly the following directions before
-your friends enter. No one can touch
-anything. Each player must stand until he
-sees the thimble. Every one may walk<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_63" id="Page_63">[63]</a></span>
-about as much as he pleases, but talking is
-prohibited. Having seen the thimble, immediately
-sit down. It is a point of honor
-that no player will give information. When
-all are seated the game is finished.</p>
-
-<p>Of course the girls want to get ahead of
-the boys, and the boys ahead of the girls,
-in locating the thimble. Therefore if a
-boy sits down first, the girls are sorry;
-and if a boy sits down last, the boys are
-sorry.</p>
-
-<p>The one who first sits down is the one to
-receive honor, and he has the privilege of
-selecting the next game as well as deciding
-on the forfeit to be given by the boy or girl
-who has been the last to sit down. Sometimes
-the hostess gives the thimble to the
-one winning the game.</p>
-
-<p>Players must be very cautious, or their
-eyes will tell what their tongues would not;
-therefore, having seen the thimble, at once
-glance in another direction, and you will
-thus mystify where you would otherwise
-assist.</p>
-
-
-<h3>THE TOUCH GAME.</h3>
-
-<p>This requires an assistant to whom the
-secret of the game is intrusted. The assistant
-leaves the room, the other party remains
-with the company, and states that during the
-assistant’s absence she will put her hand on
-some object, person, or thing, and when the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_64" id="Page_64">[64]</a></span>
-assistant returns he will tell what has been
-touched.</p>
-
-<p>The assistant now being out, the piano
-stool is touched. On the assistant’s return
-he is asked, “What did I touch?” at once
-he replies, “The piano stool.”</p>
-
-<p>Of course this causes great surprise and
-the assistant is asked to go out again, the
-company expecting, perhaps, to be able to
-guess this time. For a change a girl is
-touched, and on the assistant’s return he
-is asked, “Whom did I touch?” and he
-promptly says, “Bessie Brown,” or whatever
-the girl’s name.</p>
-
-<p>Then the players think there must be some
-look or gesture given to aid the assistant
-when he re-enters, and so they are given the
-privilege of blindfolding him before his return,
-but all in vain, the assistant is as correct
-as before and no one is able to guess.</p>
-
-<p>Then the company beg: “Do tell us the
-secret.” So when all give up they are told
-that just before the assistant leaves the room,
-the other player secretly touches some person
-or thing, or perhaps indicates what the
-object is with his foot or perhaps sits on it,
-if it be a chair or stool. Occasionally, to
-further mystify, it would be well to simply
-fold one’s arms. This would signify to the
-confederate, “I am touching myself.”
-Therefore the assistant, whether blindfolded
-or not, can answer correctly, because he
-has received his clue before he went out.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_65" id="Page_65">[65]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Of course, this game requires an intelligent
-assistant; indeed, both players must
-be very careful, as so many eyes are on the
-constant lookout.</p>
-
-<p>This will be found a satisfactory game
-for a rainy afternoon in a summer hotel,
-when the grown people are taking naps and
-there seems absolutely nothing left for
-young people to do, and they are tired
-watching the weather, and saying, “If it
-would <i>only</i> clear!”</p>
-
-
-<h3>THE CONCERT.</h3>
-
-<p>Select a conductor. All others sit before
-him in a semicircle, and each is given an
-imaginary musical instrument.</p>
-
-<p>The conductor next directs them to tune
-their instruments, after which, taking a cane
-he waves it, as if it were a baton. He also
-whistles or hums a gay, familiar air. In this
-all join, imitating by voice and gesture the
-instruments they are supposed to be playing
-on, such as the flute, the harp, the hand-organ,
-the cymbals, violin, cornet, etc.</p>
-
-<p>Suddenly he waves his baton and the
-music ceases.</p>
-
-<p>The conductor then calls for solos. All
-the musicians give close attention, and the
-conductor makes believe he is playing, thus
-indicating which instrument he wishes to
-hear.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_66" id="Page_66">[66]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>The player having that instrument must
-at once obey, imitating both sound and
-gestures. Should he fail, he must pay a
-forfeit.</p>
-
-
-<h3>A CURIOUS CAT.</h3>
-
-<p>This is a trick to be played only where
-the people know each other very well.</p>
-
-<p>A tall screen is required, a cat, a saucer
-of milk, a table and a showman.</p>
-
-<p>The showman is the most important, for
-on his ready wit and tactful manner the
-success of the trick depends.</p>
-
-<p>He stands by the screen and says to the
-audience,</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
- <div class="poetry">
-<div class="verse">Come behind this screen and you will see</div>
-<div class="verse">A cat with her head where her tail ought to be.</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p>One by one, the guests may go, and each
-must observe a discreet silence, so that the
-rest may not guess what the trick is.</p>
-
-<p>As each goes behind the screen, a table is
-seen on which is a cat with her tail towards
-a saucer of milk, where, were it not for the
-showman’s efforts, her head would naturally
-be. This foolish trick will always cause a
-hearty laugh.</p>
-
-
-<h3>A BOAT RACE.</h3>
-
-<p>Girls who do not care to row should act
-as umpires. A grand stand may be a massive<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_67" id="Page_67">[67]</a></span>
-rock ornamented with a tangle of vines
-and for a canopy a wide-branched tree.</p>
-
-<p>There should be three races, one between
-the girls, another between the boys, and a
-third between the girls and boys together.
-Two large willows or other trees, conspicuously
-overhanging the water, and therefore
-impossible to mistake, should be selected
-as the points to start and end the race, the
-prow of the boat should be even with the
-centre of the tree trunk at starting, and the
-stern of the boat should be even with the
-centre of the tree trunk on closing. Only
-one person should be in the boat at a time,
-and no person can have a second chance.</p>
-
-<p>As the water is frequently too narrow for
-all boats to be out at once, it is wiser to try
-two boats at a time, and then two more
-should row and so on. After the race is
-over the victors must row again, two and
-two, as at the first, and so determine the
-winners. When the winning girl and the
-winning boy are known, they should
-race together, and thus the champion rower
-will be discovered. Whoever is champion
-should be rewarded with a wreath of laurel,
-after the fashion of the great Roman victors;
-if laurel cannot be found, use oak leaves
-and tell the hero they are meant for laurel.
-The wreath must be made and at the grand
-stand before the race opens. The coronation
-should take place at the stand.</p>
-
-<p>While gathering the leaves for the crown<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_68" id="Page_68">[68]</a></span>
-it would prove a pleasure to gather quantities
-of wild flowers, with which to decorate the
-boats. A simple and pretty trimming would
-be to carpet the boat with moss and edge
-it around with fern leaves. Another way
-would be to canopy a boat with apple
-blossoms; the branches are easily held in
-place between the narrow strip of wood
-that forms the border, and the boat itself.
-But a canopy retards motion, and the rowers
-must consider speed before they decide on
-decoration.</p>
-
-
-<h3>THREE LITTLE MAIDS FROM SCHOOL.</h3>
-
-<p>Three tall boys should dress as prima
-donnas, carry bouquets, and sing the popular
-song, “Three Little Maids from School
-are we.”</p>
-
-<p>After this they should appear as giants
-and perform a variety of tricks.</p>
-
-<p>For example: Hold an umbrella over
-their heads, which is covered with a long
-cloak. To the top of the umbrella-stick
-fasten a ball the size of a person’s head,
-on to this ball put a round hat, and a veil so
-as to conceal the face. Thus the boys will
-be of gigantic size, and their very appearance
-will provoke laughter.</p>
-
-<p>After bowing to their friends, they should
-dance a few reel figures, then walk about
-the room and examine the chandeliers, tops<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_69" id="Page_69">[69]</a></span>
-of the pictures or frescoing. Then play
-“Puss in the corner.” When they repeat
-“Puss, Puss, Puss,” they should use unnatural
-tones.</p>
-
-<p>It is very funny, and those who are not
-“little maids” will have almost as much
-sport as if they were.</p>
-
-
-<h3>THE WAR OF THE ROSES.</h3>
-
-<p>This is a pretty, interesting and instructive
-game, as those engaged in it and not
-familiar with the period of history to which
-it refers may be led to study it, and the
-knowledge received through playing may
-thus prove beneficial.</p>
-
-<p>It is particularly suited to out-of-door
-amusement, though it may be played indoors
-by making a field of battle. This
-could be done by putting a rug in the centre
-of a room, and stating, that rug represents
-the battlefield of Saint Albans, or the battle-field
-of Towton, or you may have both
-battles, should you so prefer.</p>
-
-<p>When played out of doors, mark out a
-piece of lawn in the same way that a tennis
-court is marked. Or, should there be no
-lawn, mark an oblong on the ground by
-means of a sharp-pointed stick.</p>
-
-<p>The battle-field should be five feet one
-way, and three the other.</p>
-
-<p>Choose two of the largest boys for leaders;<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_70" id="Page_70">[70]</a></span>
-one of them will personate Richard the
-Duke of York, the other the nearest relative
-of the house of Lancaster, who was the
-Duke of Somerset.</p>
-
-<p>Then in turn, commencing with the Duke
-of York, the boys will call their soldiers,
-which may be (as this is a game) girls as
-well as boys. As each one’s name is called,
-he stands in line on the side of his leader.
-When all are chosen, the Duke of York
-gives his soldiers, as also himself, the
-symbol of the Yorkists, which was a white
-rose, and in like manner the Lancastrians
-receive their symbol, which was a red
-one.</p>
-
-<p>Commencing at the foot of the line, the
-Duke of York will blindfold his soldier, and
-lead him around for one minute, thus confusing
-him as to location; but when he stops
-leading him, he must be six feet from the
-battlefield, and his face so turned as to
-make it possible to reach it. Then the
-leader calls one, two, three, and at once the
-soldier throws his rose. The blindfold is
-then removed, and he will see how near the
-field his charge has reached.</p>
-
-<p>It is now the turn of the house of Lancaster,
-and the Duke of Somerset will blindfold
-the soldier at the end of his line, and
-thus the game proceeds as before. When
-every one has played, the roses on the battlefield
-are counted. Whichever side has on
-the most roses has won. Then all the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_71" id="Page_71">[71]</a></span>
-roses are picked up and presented to the
-victors by the losing side. Each one of the
-winners then adorns himself with a red and
-white rose.</p>
-
-<p>No rose can be counted on the battlefield,
-unless every part of it is on, including the
-stem and foliage.</p>
-
-<p>There must be an even number of players.</p>
-
-
-<h3>UNBAR.</h3>
-
-<p>Every player excepting the boy known
-as Bear, must twist and knot his handkerchief.
-The Bear selects a tree as a starting
-point, and states his object will be to tag
-the others. Whoever is tagged becomes a
-Bear, and must return to the tree, pursued
-and beaten all the way back with the knotted
-handkerchiefs. The two Bears then
-join hands, and, starting out, try to tag every
-one that is possible, and this action is repeated
-until all the players are Bears.
-Whenever the chain of Bears is broken, as
-it sometimes is by an attack from the rear,
-the Bears again return to the tree.</p>
-
-
-<h3>BIRD TEST.</h3>
-
-<p>Give each player a slip of paper on which
-he must write the birds’ names. Also the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_72" id="Page_72">[72]</a></span>
-number of times the word bird and birds’
-names occur.</p>
-
-<p>The correct number to find is seventy-six.</p>
-
-<p>Time allowed is six minutes.</p>
-
-<p>The slip should be headed Bird Test.</p>
-
-<p>One day while walking along a grassy
-lane conspicuously edged with blackberry
-bushes, my attention was riveted by the
-song of a bird, a sort of up and down warble,
-and in the branches of a maple tree
-near, I saw a red-eyed viero, and not far off,
-quietly looking towards the singer, was
-such a pretty warbler, another greenlet, the
-white-eyed viero.</p>
-
-<p>Listening to the red-eye, the viero’s warble
-grew less and less distinct as the distance
-lengthened between us. The warbler
-warbled the same sweet song, but my ear
-was less able to catch the warbling warbler’s
-notes, and soon the greenlet, the viero, the
-musical, silver-tongued warbler, warbled for
-me all in vain.</p>
-
-<p>But as I walked I thought how rarely that
-we meet people who are indifferent to birds,
-and how desolate our lanes, woods and gardens
-would be without them. And how
-much beauty is added to bushes, flowers, and
-trees, if a singing bird rests on them long
-enough for us to listen to his song. And
-then I named over some favorite birds. The
-meadow lark, blue jay, Carolina wren, wood
-thrush, robin, swallow. But suddenly I
-heard “Me-au, me-au,” as if a cat was near.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_73" id="Page_73">[73]</a></span>
-I stood just where I was, to discover the
-creature. My thought of birds gave a
-thought of protection. A moment later and
-I laughed aloud, for flying over my head was
-the jolly song-bird, called cat-bird, who has
-a bad habit of mewing. But the sunshine
-seemed pleasant company for him; for
-watching the cat-bird’s movements I saw
-him alight on a tree close by, and with a
-hop and a skip go from limb to limb.</p>
-
-<p>Whip-poor-will, whip-poor-will, and again
-on the alert, my eyes were almost strained,
-this time in effort to follow the sad cry, looking
-everywhere for whip-poor-will. When
-what a pleasant surprise, to learn that whip-poor-will
-was none other than the brilliantly
-colored mocking bird, whose fancy had dictated
-the whip-poor-will’s melancholy notes
-and now whizzed close to me, to nestle on
-the blackberry blossoms a few steps beyond.</p>
-
-<p>Then walking on I thought of the many
-birds about us, the brown thrasher, and
-white-throated sparrow, the tree sparrow,
-the bank and barn swallows, and the sociable
-sparrow, dear little chippy, and of what
-I had read about fly-catchers and veerys,
-and the crested titmouse who gleefully
-shouts in the wildest winds, “T’ sweet
-here! t’ sweet here!”</p>
-
-<p>My walk by this time was hurried into a
-run, and I caught my foot into some poor
-bird’s nest that was hidden in the long grass,
-and I almost fell, but being glad I had not<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_74" id="Page_74">[74]</a></span>
-tripped over a rut-runner, I thought of the
-quotation, “Runs like the kill-deer up the
-rut,” and a warbler near sang so cheerily that
-I forgot my accident and soon reached the
-creek towards which I was hastening.
-When who should come first to greet me but
-a yellow-billed cuckoo. And thus my mind
-dwelt on other birds that liked creeks and
-lakes, such as the kingfisher, and on the instant
-I heard the report of a gun, and sure
-enough one of these birds had just been shot.
-I knew this because of the excitement of a
-group of gunners.</p>
-
-<p>Poor bird! How many birds’ lives end in
-a similar way. The cardinal grosbeak and
-the myrtle bird, a greenlet in color, we
-fancy myrtle suggests greenlet, the snow-buntings,
-horned larks, golden-crowned
-kinglet and vesper sparrows, the red-polls
-and crossbills, the plovers, the golden
-herons, night-herons, sandpipers, coots,
-hawks, geese, and swans,—all are marks for
-the hunter.</p>
-
-<p>And then I thought, Oh, if I could fly over
-this clapper-rail ahead of me! It is so very
-stupid to keep my feet on the earth. How
-jolly to flap my wings to the Lapland long-spur.
-I would visit the raven and all
-the rest of the feathered family on the
-way.</p>
-
-<p>But my walk had ended and such a pretty
-warbler warmly welcomed me home,—my
-golden-hued, night-singing canary.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_75" id="Page_75">[75]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>PARLOR FORTUNE-TELLING.</p>
-
-<p>This amusement is sure to interest, and
-may be played by any number of people,
-the more the merrier.</p>
-
-<p>Those to have their fortune told should
-have a slip of paper and a pencil. The one
-telling the fortune dictates from the book
-what to write. After all the answers are
-written, the fortune-teller reads the questions,
-and the players in turn read the answers
-aloud, according to what they have written.
-Suppose the following fortune:</p>
-
-<p>1. Have you a favorite? Yes.</p>
-
-<p>2. What is her name? A girl’s name.</p>
-
-<p>3. What color is her hair? A color.</p>
-
-<p>4. What color are her eyes? A color.</p>
-
-<p>5. Does she wear spectacles? Yes or no.</p>
-
-<p>6. How old is she? A number.</p>
-
-<p>7. How tall is she? A number of feet.</p>
-
-<p>8. Is she pretty? Yes or no.</p>
-
-<p>9. How many teeth has she? A number.</p>
-
-<p>10. How much money has she? An
-amount of dollars.</p>
-
-<p>11. What shape is her mouth? A shape.</p>
-
-<p>12. What shape is her nose? A shape.</p>
-
-<p>13. How large is her hand? A number
-of inches.</p>
-
-<p>14. How large are her feet? A number
-of inches.</p>
-
-<p>15. Is she fond of music? Yes or no.</p>
-
-<p>16. What is her favorite book? The
-name of a book.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_76" id="Page_76">[76]</a></span>
-17. Does she dance? Yes or no.</p>
-
-<p>18. Can she sing? Yes or no.</p>
-
-<p>19. Does she recite? Yes or no.</p>
-
-<p>20. What can she cook best? Mention an article of diet.</p>
-
-<p>21. Does she use a chafing dish? Yes or no.</p>
-
-<p>22. Can she make her own hats? Yes or no.</p>
-
-<p>23. What is her greatest virtue? A virtue.</p>
-
-<p>24. What is her greatest fault? A fault.</p>
-
-<p>25. Where does she live? A city.</p>
-
-<p>26. In a handsome house? Yes or no.</p>
-
-<p>27. Does she ride a bicycle? Yes or no.</p>
-
-<p>28. Are you glad you are acquainted with her? Yes or no.</p>
-
-<p>29. Does she like you? Yes or no.</p>
-
-<p>30. Will her father give her a marriage dowry? Yes or no.</p>
-
-<p>31. How many dollars? An amount of money.</p>
-
-<p>32. Where will you be married? A place.</p>
-
-<p>33. Will you be a model husband? Yes or no.</p>
-
-<p>34. How many dollars a year will you give her for housekeeping
-purposes? An amount of money.</p>
-
-<p>35. Where will you live? A city.</p>
-
-<p>36. Will you entertain much? Yes or no.</p>
-
-<p>37. Will you travel? Yes or no.</p>
-
-<p>38. What city will you first visit? A city.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_77" id="Page_77">[77]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>39. How long will you remain there? A period of time.</p>
-
-<p>40. When will you return home? A period of time.</p>
-
-<p>41. Will your home be happy? Yes or no.</p>
-
-<p>42. Would you be sorry if you were never
-married? Yes or no.</p>
-
-<p>43. Next to yourself, whom do you like
-best? A girl’s name.</p>
-
-<p>44. Will your wife be jealous? Yes or
-no.</p>
-
-<p>45. Will your wife lecture? Yes or no.</p>
-
-<p>46. What is she doing now? Describe a
-motion.</p>
-
-<p>47. What would you like her to do? Describe
-a motion.</p>
-
-<p>48. What is your highest ambition? A
-state of being.</p>
-
-<p>49. Will your life be crowned with success?
-Yes or no.</p>
-
-
-<h3>“IT.”</h3>
-
-<p>Many of the games with which we are
-familiar in the United States are well known
-throughout Great Britain and on the Continent.
-But among the most amusing and
-most popular of English games is one of
-which we know little or nothing. It is dignified
-by the two-lettered name, “It.”</p>
-
-<p>This is altogether suitable for the parlor,
-and may be played by everybody if we will<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_78" id="Page_78">[78]</a></span>
-except the very young people. It creates
-roars of laughter, on account of the funny
-mistakes made by the questioners. “It”
-is a great mystery, and the longer it is played
-the greater mystery often it becomes. Only
-those understanding this game may remain
-in the room. All others must leave; there
-is no alternative. One of the party, unfamiliar
-with the game, is then selected to
-return, and must, by questioning those in
-the parlor, learn what “it” is. When he
-knows “it,” he too must remain behind,
-and some one else is selected to fill his
-place. In this way the game is carried on,
-until each one in turn comes in and finds out
-the secret.</p>
-
-<p>“It” is really the person who sits at your
-left, but, before this is discovered, usually
-much amusement is made. The game is
-played in the following way:</p>
-
-<p>All in the parlor must sit in a circle, and
-must not change their positions. When the
-player is called in, he is told to ask a question
-of whomsoever he may please, and the
-person must correctly answer. For example—“Is
-‘it’ white?” As everybody
-present is white, the answer is necessarily
-“Yes.”</p>
-
-<p>The questioner then asks another person.
-“Is ‘it’ thin?” and if the person thus questioned
-is thin, the answer is again, “Yes.”
-Perhaps this question may be repeated, and
-some one else is asked, “Do you also think<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_79" id="Page_79">[79]</a></span>
-‘it’ is thin?” and if this person has someone
-for a left-hand neighbor who is very
-stout, of course he answers, “No.”</p>
-
-<p>And thus the questioner is mystified, and
-must continue question after question. For
-a long time he may think “it” is a thing.
-Therefore a good question to put would be,
-“Is ‘it’ alive?” And then he might ask,
-“Is ‘it’ in this room?” Then he might try
-complexion, and again would be mystified,
-for if he asked, “Is ‘it’ a brunette?” and
-the reply being “Yes,” his next question,
-“Has ‘it’ dark eyes?” would perhaps have
-for answer, “No,” and, “Has ‘it’ light
-hair?” “Yes.” And so the secret seems
-harder than ever.</p>
-
-<p>A good way is to ask the same questions
-over and over, and try to locate “it” in that
-way. But the questioner should not easily
-be discouraged. A few points may be given
-to him, such as some of the above. The
-players would better announce “It” as a
-trick game.</p>
-
-
-<h3>THE CENT HUNT.</h3>
-
-<p>Say that a cent is wrapped in tissue-paper
-and is within sight. The discoverer quietly
-tells you, and if he is correct, reward
-him.</p>
-
-<p>Afterwards give a cent, pencil and paper
-to everybody, and state five minutes are allowed
-to write what each side of the cent<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_80" id="Page_80">[80]</a></span>
-will tell. This game is called, A Penny for
-your Thoughts.</p>
-
-<p>“Find on one side: A beverage—T. A
-messenger—one c(s)ent. A piece of armor—shield.
-A symbol of victory—wreath. A
-weapon—arrow. A mode of punishment—stripes.
-A gallant—bow. A sheet of water—C.</p>
-
-<p>“Find on the other side: A portion of a
-hill—brow. A place of worship—temple.
-An animal—hare. Youth and old age—18—96.
-One way of expressing marriage—U. S.
-A cultivated flower—tulip. An emblem of
-royalty—crown. Fruit—date.”</p>
-
-
-<h3>A FAGOT PARTY.</h3>
-
-<p>This is a very entertaining amusement
-and suitable for all ages.</p>
-
-<p>As the word fagot means a bundle of
-twigs, it suggests an open fire. Therefore
-home and hearth are indispensable environment.</p>
-
-<p>There should be just as many twigs as
-there are girls and boys. The idea being
-that each should draw a twig from the bundle
-as his name is called. And they are
-called by the hostess according to the letters
-of the alphabet. Whosever name therefore
-commences with A, should draw the first
-twig. Having drawn the twig, A puts it on
-the open fire and at once commences to tell<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_81" id="Page_81">[81]</a></span>
-a story. As long as the twig lasts, A must
-continue to talk, but when it is burned he
-must stop, and as twigs are apt to burn
-very rapidly when toward the end, the story
-is not infrequently wound up in a jiffy. As
-soon as A has finished, the next name is
-called and that person does exactly as did
-the first one, only he must tell a different
-story. And so on until everybody has taken
-his turn.</p>
-
-
-<h3>THE HUNTER.</h3>
-
-<p>This very lively game is played by both
-boys and girls, and the more, of course, the
-merrier. The hunter must be a boy, and to
-decide which boy, it is best to count out.
-Use for counting the old rhyme,</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
- <div class="poetry">
-<div class="verse">Ana, mana, mona, mike,</div>
-<div class="verse">Bassa, lona, bona, strike,</div>
-<div class="verse">Hare, ware, frown, stack,</div>
-<div class="verse">Halloka, balloka, wee, woe, why, whack.</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p>Whoever is fortunate enough to have the
-word “whack” counted to him is out, and
-then the rhyme must be repeated over and
-over, and finally the hunter is left. It now
-becomes his duty to name the rest of the
-company as his equipments as sportsman,
-and also as his game; for example, pointer,
-setter—two species of hunting dogs—and
-shot, belt, powder, gun, powder-flask, rifle,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_82" id="Page_82">[82]</a></span>
-cartridge, rabbit, squirrel, partridge, kingfisher,
-etc., etc.</p>
-
-<p>Put two rows of chairs back to back.
-There should be one chair less than there
-are players. This done, each one of the
-company except the hunter takes a chair.
-The hunter, standing before the rest of the
-players, then sings, to the tune of “I Love
-a Sixpence,”</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
- <div class="poetry">
-<div class="verse">I am a hunter, a jolly, jolly hunter;</div>
-<div class="verse">I love hunting as I love my life.</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p class="unindent">This he may sing over as many times as he
-likes, but finally stops short in the middle or
-anywhere, and immediately calls out a name—for
-instance, “Shot.” The person bearing
-this name must at once rise, and hurrying
-towards the hunter, must take hold of the
-back of his coat or jacket. Then the hunter
-continues his song, and calls for each one,
-until all are behind him, each holding firmly
-to the one in front. When all are in place,
-the hunter starts running, all of the party
-following and holding tightly together. He
-may run around the chairs or wherever he
-pleases, provided he keeps in the room. For
-fully two minutes this must keep up, when
-suddenly he will call, “Bang!” and instantly
-sit on one of the chairs. Of course there is
-a great scramble for every one to do likewise,
-but as one chair is short, some one is
-necessarily left out, and this person now becomes
-the hunter.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_83" id="Page_83">[83]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>The game now continues as before, or it
-may be varied by the hunter having to find
-something hidden.</p>
-
-<p>Any object may be placed out of sight in
-the room, and when the hunter nears it, the
-company may aid him by the usual words,
-“warm, warmer, hot,” or “cool, very cold,
-freezing, zero, below zero,” etc. If he finds
-it within five minutes, he may choose
-another hunter, but if not he must pay a
-forfeit, to be determined by the rest of the
-players.</p>
-
-<p>Or the game may be played in a similar
-way by the use of nautical instead of hunting
-terms. Should this be preferred, the
-hunter becomes the captain, and instead of
-singing to his company he may blow a few
-blasts on a horn. He is supposed to be on
-shipboard, so he must have ship equipment,
-crew, officers, passengers, cargo. Again the
-players must be named, only this time call
-them lifeboat, rope, anchor, sailor, steward,
-captain’s boy, purser, first-mate, doctor, etc.</p>
-
-
-<h3>FIVE.</h3>
-
-<p>Select a boy and hand him a knotted
-handkerchief. He must throw the handkerchief
-at a player, and before he can count
-aloud five the person to whom it is thrown
-must mention a round thing, such as an
-apple, a globe. If that person fails, he must<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_84" id="Page_84">[84]</a></span>
-change places with the one who has caught
-him, and throw the handkerchief at another.
-As no repetitions are allowed it will soon
-be difficult to find an object that is round.</p>
-
-
-<h3>BREAKFAST.</h3>
-
-<p>Every player is seated. Turn to the
-person at your right and ask, “Will you
-come to breakfast?” To which the answer
-is “Yes.” When that question and answer
-have gone around the room, the first one
-must ask, “What would you like for breakfast?”
-Perhaps the reply would be, “Milk;”
-and he then puts the question to his right-hand
-neighbor, who perhaps would say
-“Oatmeal,” and so on, until no sensible answer
-can be made, for no repetitions can
-occur in this game also. As the different
-players fail to respond they must stand.</p>
-
-
-<h3>ALPHABET.</h3>
-
-<p>Give any letter of the alphabet—for example,
-S—to the company, also some paper
-and pencils. In five minutes’ time they
-should write the names of three celebrated
-men, and also three sensible sentences, one
-for each man’s name, as, Shakespeare was
-born in Stratford on the Avon. Forfeits are
-required for failures.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_85" id="Page_85">[85]</a></span></p>
-
-
-<h3>NINETY-NINE.</h3>
-
-<p>Cut an equi-triangle out of soft wood or
-cardboard. It should measure one foot
-each way, and be one-quarter of an inch or
-less in thickness. Besides the triangle you
-will require white celluloid chips, or the
-game may be played with large-sized white
-bone buttons.</p>
-
-<p>Lay the triangle on a smooth-surfaced
-table, play in turn, and each player should
-start at the place. All players must be
-close enough to the table to watch the game.
-The point of the game is to make a count
-of ninety-nine. Whoever first makes that
-number has won.</p>
-
-<p>The triangle must be placed far enough
-from the table’s edge to allow freedom of
-room all around it, and it should be kept
-firm.</p>
-
-<p>Put a chip or button with its upper edge
-even with the angle from which you start,
-and just close enough to make it possible
-for it to slide and not receive hindrance.
-The chip should touch the entire sliding
-length. When all is in correct position, rest
-the knuckle of the right thumb (unless you
-are left-handed, in that case your left thumb)
-on the table, and put the back of the nail of
-your second finger about half an inch down
-on the inside of the thumb’s fore-joint.
-Then push the finger suddenly outward,
-running its nail along the table, close to the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_86" id="Page_86">[86]</a></span>
-thumb’s point, and finally raising the finger
-so that its tip is on the table at the exact
-moment that it has touched the chip. This
-should result in sending the chip the entire
-length of the angle’s side. To make a full
-count the chip must stop with its outer edge
-even with the next angle; the entire chip,
-with the exception of the edge, being below
-it. When this done, score three, and do
-the same thing with the next side, you then
-score three more; and again with the third
-side, making a count of nine in all. Having
-gone around three sides, stop until your
-turn is reached again. If however, the
-chip is not even with the angle, but has not
-gone <i>entirely</i> beyond it, the player may
-count one, and may continue playing, the
-same as if making a full count. But should
-the chip slide entirely beyond the angle, he
-cannot count at all, but must withdraw until
-his turn comes again.</p>
-
-<p>He must not be discouraged, however,
-but remember that “He laughs best who
-laughs last.” Very often those who start successfully,
-become too self-conscious, and
-make a bad break towards the close of the
-game.</p>
-
-<p>Every time your turn comes, therefore be
-as careful as if just commencing. Even
-numbers are not counted, make one or three.
-To be entitled to three you must be perfect;
-short of perfection the count is one or nothing,
-as the above rules decree.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_87" id="Page_87">[87]</a></span></p>
-
-
-<h3>THE DAILY PAPER.</h3>
-
-<p>This game is suitable for either girls or
-boys, and furnishes amusement at almost
-any age. The interest will be increased or
-diminished, according to individual carefulness,
-for no one need be caught if they give
-close attention. Therefore, to be often
-caught indicates lack of interest, which is
-not complimentary to your leader, or stupidity,
-which is not complimentary to yourself.</p>
-
-<p>Every player assumes the character of a
-business man or woman, or they may have
-a profession. They may be manufacturers
-or tradespeople, it matters little what, provided
-there be no duplicates. Choose one
-for your leader who will assume no trade
-or profession, but will read the newspaper
-as will be explained.</p>
-
-<p>All should sit before the leader, so there
-can be no mistake about seeing each other.</p>
-
-<p>When every person has settled her and
-his part, the leader takes up any daily paper
-which is convenient and reads from it; but
-whenever the leader pauses, and looks at a
-player, whether the pause and look is intentional
-or accidental, the one looked at
-must at once make a suitable remark about
-his profession, business or trade. There
-must not be a second’s hesitation, and the
-more ridiculous such a remark may be, the
-more amusement is gotten out of the game.</p>
-
-<p>As soon as the player has concluded his<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_88" id="Page_88">[88]</a></span>
-observation, the leader continues reading,
-the same as if his theme had not been interrupted,
-and in a few seconds, pauses
-again, and looks at another player. Then
-this player makes his remark instantaneously
-about his trade, and thus the game
-goes on.</p>
-
-<p>In order to better understand, suppose the
-leader reads, “This is Bunker Hill Day.
-It is not a legal holiday, but by general
-consent the banks and stores laid aside,”
-(here he looks at the dressmaker).</p>
-
-<p>Dressmaker: “The big sleeves and wide
-skirts are not liked by everybody.”</p>
-
-<p>“The observance of the day by a—”</p>
-
-<p>Marine Artist: “Sale of my painting
-‘Off the Rocks at Scarborough.’”</p>
-
-<p>“Is limited to Charlestown district, on one
-of whose hillslopes stood the Middlesex
-farmers, the hayseed still in their—”</p>
-
-<p>Butcher: “Marrow bones and spareribs.”</p>
-
-<p>“And in their hands the guns that had
-been gaining reputation in the shooting
-of—”</p>
-
-<p>Grocer: “Eggs twenty-five cents a dozen.”</p>
-
-<p>“And wild fowl. How they refused to
-budge before British regulars, until they
-had fired all their—”</p>
-
-<p>Confectioner: “Chocolate caramels packed
-in layers with waxed paper between.”</p>
-
-<p>“Away, and felt the pricks of the enemy’s
-polished—”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_89" id="Page_89">[89]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Ironmonger: “Poker and tongs, shovels
-and spades.”</p>
-
-<p>“The world well knows Charlestown
-keeps up the remembrance of these—”</p>
-
-<p>Florist: “Water-lily pads, and moss-rose
-buds.”</p>
-
-<p>“At a lively rate.”</p>
-
-<p>And so on reads the newspaper, making
-the proper pauses and glances, until everybody
-has taken part and indeed over and
-over again taken part. Care should be used
-as to the selection read, as some paragraphs
-allow for much more amusement than do
-others.</p>
-
-<p>When any player fails to at once make a
-suitable remark he must pay a forfeit, which
-can only be redeemed by music or recitation.</p>
-
-
-<h3>THE NEW DIXEY’S LAND.</h3>
-
-<p>This is an out-of-door game, and may be
-played on the ground or on the grass, marking
-the court or lawn with the same material
-as if arranging a court for tennis.</p>
-
-<p>Form a circle with a diameter of twelve
-feet, divide the circle into quarters, each
-quarter representing a section of our country,
-east, west, north, south, and should be so
-marked. One letter would represent each
-word,—E, for east, W, for west, and so on.
-The oldest boy now becomes the owner of
-the entire territory, and is named Dixey.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_90" id="Page_90">[90]</a></span>
-This boy must stand directly at the point
-where the lines unite, the middle of the
-circle, and as soon as he is in position,
-any player may run into any quarter of the
-ground. He must not stand on the line;
-should he do so, and be tagged on that line,
-he can no longer play.</p>
-
-<p>But having run into a quarter, he must
-loudly call, “Dixey, I’m on your North
-land, now it belongs to me.” Or, “Dixey,
-I’m on your South land,” etc. He must
-rightly name the section on which he stands.</p>
-
-<p>Dixey must tag him before he is through
-stating words above given. Should he fail
-to do so, the invading player must then
-run from the part he has claimed, all around
-the outside of the circle, and then to Dixey’s
-station, the centre. Dixey, of course, runs
-after him, trying to tag him before he completes
-the circuit. Neither may take short
-cuts by darting across lines, until the run
-around the circle is completed, and the invader
-strikes in toward Dixey’s middle
-ground. Whoever gets there first is now
-owner of all, and the original Dixey can
-only get back by earning the position, as
-the new Dixey has just done.</p>
-
-<p>The winner of the game is the one who
-has been Dixey the greatest number of
-times, or should no one be Dixey but once,
-whoever holds the position at the game’s
-close.</p>
-
-<p>Therefore the necessity of deciding how<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_91" id="Page_91">[91]</a></span>
-long you will play before the game commences.</p>
-
-<p>Any number that can stand on a quarter,
-may be there at the same time, as only one
-can be Dixey.</p>
-
-<p>Dixey cannot save himself by failing to
-leave his post. The first call he hears, he
-must obey, just as any other landowner
-would keep off an intruder.</p>
-
-<p>Every rule must be strictly obeyed.
-Should any one fail, he is no longer a player.</p>
-
-<p>The game is peculiarly adapted to boys,
-and each one must be careful neither to be
-rough nor rude. In the straining to get
-ahead, it will be such an easy thing to
-knock another boy down, or to prevent him
-from reaching the goal. First, remember to
-be honest; second, to be polite.</p>
-
-
-<h3>BATTLE OF FLOWERS.</h3>
-
-<p>Why should not boys and girls take the
-lead in the popular <i>fête?</i> All who own
-pony carts, phaetons, wagons of any sort,
-or who can borrow them, may enter the
-parade and battle, and why not interest
-your Sunday or day school in such an
-entertainment and secure a large float?</p>
-
-<p>The designs for floats are innumerable;
-among them might be mentioned Flora and
-the seasons, America, pagodas, chariots,
-Daughters of the American Revolution, the
-Floral Queen. The teachers should have<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_92" id="Page_92">[92]</a></span>
-the matter in charge, and one of them
-should act as chairman, and appoint committees
-to attend to all the necessary business.
-The scholars should willingly assist
-in the gathering of flowers, trimming, or
-whatever would be required.</p>
-
-<p>All the vehicles must be transformed into
-moving bowers, and this necessitates considerable
-work, but it is work that pays;
-besides, the real jolly boys and girls will
-only consider that they have had great fun.</p>
-
-<p>Decide on your decorations, and then
-gather flowers. You will need a great
-many to make much show. And wire will
-be found helpful in making the flowers
-stand upright, or giving the desired twist.
-Flowers may be tied upon cord, and when a
-long rope is made, it can be wound around,
-or fastened to the carriage, but it will take
-less time, and be less hurtful to the hands,
-if you cut a piece of wire netting the desired
-shape, and run the flower stems through
-the holes, or cut a piece of soft muslin the
-correct shape, and baste the flowers on.
-Flowers such as golden-rod, will need to
-have all the leaves stripped before commencing
-to decorate. Wreaths the exact
-size of the wheel hubs will look very handsome,
-particularly if the spokes are wound
-about with satin ribbon the same color as
-the flowers. If you cover the reins, sew
-two pieces of ribbon lengthwise, through
-which the reins will slip; put full bows of<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_93" id="Page_93">[93]</a></span>
-the same on the harness, and cover the
-collar with flowers. The same ribbon
-should also appear in the carriage decoration.</p>
-
-<p>A very pretty effect is gotten from white
-hydrangeas and yellow satin ribbons, or
-white hydrangeas tipped with pink and pink
-satin ribbons. Violet-colored flowers look
-well in such a parade, and a stylish cut carriage
-may be trimmed with ears and husks
-of corn, suspending the ears by the husks.
-The costume of those inside the carriage
-must be complementary to the decoration.</p>
-
-<p>The streets through which you pass should
-look festive and the spectators be dressed in
-holiday attire. A line of march must be
-arranged, and, on the counter-march, the
-battle begins. Then roses and flowers of
-all sorts are thrown from carriage to carriage,
-and from the carriages to the people on the
-street, and from those on the street to the
-carriages; indeed people throw them with
-both hands, so excited they become.</p>
-
-<p>Until it is time for the battle, have your
-baskets full of flowers to throw well hidden.
-And when the pelting begins have a sufficient
-supply, so that it will not be necessary
-to use any of the decorations.</p>
-
-
-<h3>GRACE HOOPS.</h3>
-
-<p>This game is usually played out of doors,
-but it may be played in large rooms or<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_94" id="Page_94">[94]</a></span>
-conservatories, provided you put out of
-accident’s way all the <i>bric-à-brac</i>, potted
-plants, and palms. Try the game also in
-an enclosed veranda or sun-parlor, should
-the time appointed prove stormy, or the
-grass be soggy from last night’s storm, or
-there be too high a wind.</p>
-
-<p>Grace hoops require a pole, not as tall
-as a maypole, but one smooth at the top.
-The one we lately saw had been a noticeable
-balsam tree, until cut off five feet from
-the ground. Its top was stocky, its side
-branches as healthful and green appearing
-as ever, notwithstanding the fact that they
-had been trimmed close enough to allow a
-small hoop to easily fall over them.</p>
-
-<p>The rings called grace hoops are made of
-light wood, not dissimilar to embroidery
-rings, excepting that they are nearly two
-feet in diameter. To make such a game
-very pretty, trim the hoops with wild
-flowers, wintergreen berries or leaves. All
-the girls should wear gay frocks and flower-dressed,
-broad-brimmed hats.</p>
-
-<p>If you are playing the game in the spring,
-suggest spring flowers and colors in your
-costume. A pretty effect would be gotten
-from a violet-colored cloth, trimmed with
-purple velvet, with a glint of gold revealed
-in the shoulder-bow ribbons and wide sash,
-the hat being a deep yellow straw flat,
-massed with single violets. Arbutus, wild
-roses, lilies of the valley, lilacs and cowslips,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_95" id="Page_95">[95]</a></span>
-as, also, the new green, are all suggestive
-of spring, and catchy lawn toilets.</p>
-
-<p>Throw the grace hoops over the pole, and
-there let them hang until the score has
-counted. You may each throw in turn, as
-often as has been decided before the game
-opens. Each time the hoop hangs on the
-pole it counts one.</p>
-
-<p>Pretty silk badges may be lettered or gold-starred,
-to denote your score, or you may
-use plain cardboard, and mark such with a
-lead pencil. Between each round the score
-must be marked. After the last round is
-played distribute rewards, which may assume
-any character you please, but it is
-better to give wreaths of flowers, or crown
-the hero with laurel. The wreath might go
-to the highest girl scorer, and the laurel to
-the boy, or give each wreaths, or each bouquets.</p>
-
-<p>A simple grace-hoop game is played by
-two people. Stand facing each other, ten
-feet apart, and rapidly toss the hoop from
-one to the other, catching it on sticks. Try
-and see how often you can keep it from
-falling.</p>
-
-
-<h3>AN AMATEUR CIRCUS.</h3>
-
-<p>When so many young people are trained
-in athletic sports, calisthenics, delsarte exercises,
-etc., why not form an amateur circus
-company? Limit the number to twenty<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_96" id="Page_96">[96]</a></span>
-four, the girls and boys being equal or unequal
-in number, as seems best. Such a
-company might easily arrange an attractive
-entertainment, and invite their friends to an
-occasional matinée performance, or, should
-they feel inclined, they could give a performance
-as a charity benefit.</p>
-
-<p>Musicians, tricksters, clowns, animals and
-a ring would be required.</p>
-
-<p>The space for the ring would be the most
-difficult to obtain, but many people have
-large shady grounds connected with their
-homes that it would be a pleasure to lend to
-their young friends.</p>
-
-<p>Outline a ring as you would mark a court,
-and make it sufficiently large to comfortably
-give your exhibition. Do not attempt a
-tent.</p>
-
-<p>Place the seats for your audience six feet
-back of the ring, as this allows freedom for
-both performers and spectators. Keep an
-entrance to the ring free, so that performers
-do not disarrange the seats.</p>
-
-<p>As nearly as possible, copy the programme
-of the regular circus; therefore, the first display
-should be the grand tournament and
-triumphal <i>entrée</i>, when the entire company
-should march several times around the ring.
-Every one should look fantastic; some of
-the girls might go bareheaded, others wear
-wreaths of artificial flowers, and again others
-wear jaunty caps, etc. Remember that
-fancy-colored paper, muslin, gold paper, and<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_97" id="Page_97">[97]</a></span>
-spangles, will give showy effect. The
-clowns should be either very thin or very
-stout. The thin ones may be made stout
-by building themselves with cotton batting.
-A noticeable costume for the clowns might
-be white muslin, showered with gold and
-silver stars and spangles, or yellow muslin
-ornamented with silver or red full moons,
-circles or polka dots. And their head
-covering might be white beaver hats or
-fools’ caps.</p>
-
-<p>Throughout the procession, carry numerous
-flags and banners. An effective banner
-might be made of white canton flannel,
-showered with diamond dust; indeed make
-the <i>entrée</i> as gay as flowers, color and
-spangles can produce.</p>
-
-<p>The entire company should be active
-members, some of them being the drum
-corps, others musicians; comic songs should
-be sung by the funny clown, assisted by a
-chorus.</p>
-
-<p>There should be walking and running
-matches, three-legged and sack races, jumping,
-fancy tumbling, sensational feats of all
-sorts. There could be a mimic football
-match, and a tennis tournament between
-those who had never held a racket; indeed
-anything could be introduced that would
-give genuine fun. The clowns should tell
-several jokes, and laughable stories, ride
-pigs, cows, and make themselves generally
-ridiculous.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_98" id="Page_98">[98]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Perhaps some of the company could borrow
-trained dogs or other trained animals.
-If so, remember that tricks are always
-entertaining.</p>
-
-
-<h3>THE STILL HUNT.</h3>
-
-<p>Possibly some of the boys’ fathers have
-been still hunting, and if so they fully understand
-that it means deer hunting without
-hounds.</p>
-
-<p>The game still hunt differs from the real
-hunt in many ways, but possibly the most
-important one is in the fact that the deer in
-this case is only the form of a deer. It is
-better to play it out of doors, but if you have
-a large enough room it may be played anywhere.</p>
-
-<p>Whoever can draw best should be the
-individual to outline the deer, and it must be
-drawn on the ground. The best ground is
-gravel, though, as in the case of tennis, or
-other field games, the deer may be designed
-on the grass.</p>
-
-<p>The deer should be fully grown and have
-large antlers. After he is distinctly drawn
-he must be surrounded by a circle, the line
-of which measures four feet from the nearest
-point of the deer.</p>
-
-<p>When the game is played out of doors, a
-smooth round stone about the size of a walnut
-will be required; but when played inside
-use a fifty-cent piece, or an old-fashioned<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_99" id="Page_99">[99]</a></span>
-cent. And for the indoor drawing use
-chalk.</p>
-
-<p>The deer circle being now ready, the
-girls and boys become hunters, and state
-which part of the deer they want. Some
-will decide on the antlers, because they will
-make a useful ornament, and they will have
-them serve as a rack for a gun or umbrella.
-Others again want a hoof, because it will
-make such a fine hunting-knife or paper-cutter
-handle, and so each part of the deer
-is divided.</p>
-
-<p>When everybody has selected their part,
-the tallest hunter takes his stand, with his
-toes to the outer edge of the circle, and as
-far from the part he selected as is possible.
-He then throws the stone. If it rests on any
-part of the chosen place, he may count ten,
-but if the stone stops outside of the part, he
-is marked down five. He then picks up the
-stone, and hands it to the next player, who
-is the one next to himself in height. Then
-this hunter takes his stand at the place furthest
-from his selected part, and thus the
-game continues, until all have played in
-turn. Then the first hunter takes another
-chance, and so on again all follow. The
-one counting fifty first has won.</p>
-
-<p>It is necessary to keep an accurate score,
-as the fives marked against the hunters have
-to be deducted; indeed if great care is not
-used, a hunter will be in debt, instead of
-earning his game. Therefore, the best hunter<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_100" id="Page_100">[100]</a></span>
-is he who keeps <i>still</i> and takes accurate
-aim. If he fails at the first throwing, notice
-where the fault lies,—it may be less force is
-required.</p>
-
-<p>It is better to have an umpire; therefore
-select one before the game begins, and remember
-to pleasantly abide by his decision.</p>
-
-<p>The stone must be altogether on, to be
-counted on, and in the case of the antlers
-the stone must touch some of the antler
-points.</p>
-
-
-<h3>LAWN GOLF.</h3>
-
-<p>This is played somewhat like croquet,
-only twenty-five wickets are used, instead
-of nine, and they are placed one after another,
-all around the ground. Beyond each
-wicket is a small hole, large enough for the
-ball to enter, and the game is to send the
-ball through the wicket and into the hole at
-one shot. When a player fails to do this,
-he may be allowed three shots to an inning.</p>
-
-<p>Before commencing the game, state the
-time it will be played.</p>
-
-<p>Decide who is to lead by shooting an arrow
-from a selected point. Whoever throws
-the farthest is to go first, the others follow,
-according to the distance made. In considering
-space, measure the distance between
-the starting place and the arrow’s
-sharp end.</p>
-
-<p>If you want a famous good time give a
-Lawn Golf Party.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_101" id="Page_101">[101]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>When you do so trim the handles of your
-golf sticks with gay-colored ribbons, and at
-the game’s close, give the champions paper-flower
-rewards.</p>
-
-<p>Exquisite flowers may nowadays be made
-out of paper, and the making of such afford
-only pleasure. Roses of all shades are fetching,
-so also are violets, and some varieties
-of lilies. Every one who lives in a large
-city will at once know where to get materials
-and instruction, and one girl can readily
-teach another. Those who live in the country
-or small villages, surely have some kind
-city friend who can select and send materials,
-and possibly written directions about
-the making.</p>
-
-<p>After presenting the rewards, have supper
-on the lawn, and afterwards other games
-are in order.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-<div class="chapter"></div>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_102" id="Page_102">[102]</a></span></p>
-
-
-
-
-<h2>GROWN-UPS.</h2>
-
-
-<h3>ALPHABETICAL GEOGRAPHY.</h3>
-
-<p>Give every one in the room a number.
-And when you call for a number announce
-a letter of the alphabet. The person called
-must, before you count six, apply the letter
-to the name of a place and to two things he
-might see there.</p>
-
-<p>For example:</p>
-
-<p>No. 1. Y.</p>
-
-<p>I am going to York to see Youngsters and
-Yachts.</p>
-
-<p>No. 2. B.</p>
-
-<p>I am going to Baltimore to see Belles and
-Beaux.</p>
-
-
-<h3>COMPOSITION.</h3>
-
-<p>Arrange for it beforehand, and therefore
-have the requisite slips of paper, and nicely
-sharpened lead pencils ready for all, but if
-you are not ready there is a certain satisfaction
-in knowing that part of the amusement
-may be in the preparation. In the latter
-case, have a competition as to who will
-make the sharpest points on the pencils, or
-cut the papers the most accurately; when
-all is prepared, however, give slips of paper<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_103" id="Page_103">[103]</a></span>
-and lead pencils to your friends, and ask
-them to write the words you will name.
-State that they will have fifteen minutes in
-which to write a composition, and put into
-the same every word you have mentioned.
-No one can look over his neighbor’s paper,
-and each composition must be signed with
-the writer’s full name.</p>
-
-<p>When the time has expired, all the compositions
-are collected and read aloud, votes
-are taken as to which is the best, and the individual
-having received the highest number
-of votes is entitled to a prize.</p>
-
-<p>Example: Wreath, Mausoleum, suicide,
-farewell, another, conjointly, starred, huntsman’s
-song, early, queen, historical, many,
-dramas.</p>
-
-<p>Alfred, Lord Tennyson, was for <i>many</i>
-years Poet Laureate. He wrote several
-poems, descriptive, <i>historical</i>, national and
-otherwise. He also wrote three notable
-<i>dramas</i>, one called Becket, known as
-Thomas à Becket, Chancellor of England,
-afterwards Archbishop of Canterbury, <i>another</i>
-called <i>Queen</i> Mary, the ill-<i>starred</i>
-daughter of Henry the Eighth, and Harold,
-who was Earl of Wessex, afterwards King
-of England.</p>
-
-<p><i>Early</i> in life Tennyson wrote several
-poems, <i>conjointly</i> with his brother Charles.
-Among these were the <i>Huntsman’s Song</i>,
-The Grave of a <i>Suicide</i>, The Fall of Jerusalem,
-and the Bard’s <i>Farewell</i>.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_104" id="Page_104">[104]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Tennyson’s monument is in that great
-English <i>mausoleum</i>, Westminster Abbey.
-On the dark stone slab, the visitor may frequently
-see a <i>wreath</i> of laurel, so placed in
-grateful memory.</p>
-
-<p>As this game would oftener than otherwise
-be played informally, the matter of
-prizes cannot be too simple. If you are in
-the birch-bark section, why not make a bookmark
-or a napkin ring out of the bark?
-Should you be at the seashore make a nest
-of shells. For example, find a large mussel
-shell, and next to it put one a size smaller,
-and so on fit in the others, graduating them
-evenly, the top one being very small. Or
-give a curious shell, which may be used as
-an ornament or receptacle.</p>
-
-
-<h3>INITIAL PLATTER TWIRLING.</h3>
-
-<p>This is very amusing, but the players
-must be on the alert or they will surely be
-caught.</p>
-
-<p>Before the game commences, every player
-must tell the initials of his and her name,
-and to aid memory, slips of paper may be
-given, on which each one may write his initials.</p>
-
-<p>When the sentence is called by the person
-twirling the platter, all the company must
-eagerly listen, or else the platter will fall to
-the floor before the one who should have<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_105" id="Page_105">[105]</a></span>
-run for it, recognizes he is the one called.
-If the platter is not caught by the proper
-person before it ceases to whirl, he or she
-must exchange places with the one who has
-whirled the platter. As the sentences are
-impromptu, they are apt to be absurd and
-ridiculous, but in any case they should be
-correct, or the one making the error must
-give a forfeit. Each sentence must have as
-many words as the initials of the one called,
-and each word must commence with the
-right letter. Example: Frank Fraser Phillips
-might be called French Fried Potatoes. Or
-Janet Belle Roberts might be June Brings
-Roses.</p>
-
-<p>This game should cause much merriment.
-It quickens thought and language, and it is
-suitable to all ages,—the boys and the girls,
-or their fathers and mothers.</p>
-
-
-<h3>OVER, OVER, WHOSE HEAD IS IT OVER?</h3>
-
-<p>This is a clever trick, and it requires two
-persons. The idea is for the confederate
-out of the room to correctly name the individual
-over whose head the other person is
-holding a wand.</p>
-
-<p>A person takes a cane, which he carelessly
-points toward some one; while so doing he
-is cleverly explaining what he is about to
-do, asking people to move, in order to further
-mystify, etc. The confederate notes<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_106" id="Page_106">[106]</a></span>
-where the cane is pointing, then goes from
-the room, and the one holding the wand
-puts it over several heads, saying “Over,”
-which the confederate echoes, until finally
-the question comes, when the wand is over
-the person before surreptitiously pointed
-out, “Whose head is it over?” The confederate’s
-answer is naturally correct.</p>
-
-
-<h3>TEAKETTLE.</h3>
-
-<p>This may be played by a number of
-people.</p>
-
-<p>A noun which has two or more meanings
-is selected. One may be thought of by any
-of the players, and in describing the same
-he should use the word “teakettle” instead
-of the proper name. All meanings of the
-word must be explained, but not too clearly
-at the first, else the “teakettle” will be
-at once guessed. When any of the listeners
-think they have discovered the word, instead
-of naming it, he should ask a question
-regarding the “teakettle” which would indicate
-to the one describing the same,
-whether the interrogator was correct. If
-correct, he too joins in the description, and
-throws light on the word. This should be
-continued until all the company show by
-their conversation that they know the noun
-selected. Not infrequently it is necessary
-to talk very plainly, or throw “electric
-light” on the teakettle before it is guessed.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_107" id="Page_107">[107]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Example: The teakettle I have in my
-mind, has been from the creation of the
-world, and will continue until the world
-ends. It is also peculiar in being of the
-most service during the winter, and forms a
-distinguished position in the homes of all
-American households at Thanksgiving dinners.
-My teakettle is cultivated on the farm
-of many a plain countryman, but graces the
-table of many a fastidious city millionaire,
-and the longer it lasts, the shorter it grows.
-Already somebody is sure they know the
-word, and says, “Your teakettle may be
-squandered, may it not?” and another asks,
-“Wasn’t it Queen Elizabeth who would have
-given her crown for a diminutive teakettle?”
-And yet another asks, “Is it not savory, and
-of great assistance to the poultry cook?”
-And thus light is thrown, until the teakettle
-in question is known to be another name for
-<i>thyme</i>, and <i>time</i>.</p>
-
-
-<h3>AUTHORS.</h3>
-
-<p>This is a popular game for students young
-or old.</p>
-
-<p>Some one who understands should have
-charge.</p>
-
-<p>Give each person the same sized piece of
-writing paper and a lead pencil. On the
-piece of paper he must write a familiar
-quotation, and then pass it to his left-hand
-neighbor. The one who receives it must<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_108" id="Page_108">[108]</a></span>
-add the author’s name, and also his own.
-If he does not know the author, he must
-write underneath the quotation the word
-“Unknown,” and his own name.</p>
-
-<p>Five minutes are allowed in which to
-write a quotation, and three minutes to
-affix the name of the author, and the signature
-of the writer. The papers are then
-collected by the person in charge, who will
-then proceed to read aloud the quotations,
-authors, and signatures.</p>
-
-<p>All persons unable to write a quotation
-must pay a forfeit. All unable to transcribe
-the name of the author, must also pay a
-forfeit.</p>
-
-<p>Should there be a dispute regarding an
-author, the one in charge must decide.</p>
-
-<p>Example:</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
- <div class="poetry">
-<div class="verse">Bottles and blisters, powders and pills,</div>
-<div class="verse">Catnip, boneset syrup and squills;</div>
-<div class="verse">Drugs and medicines, high and low,</div>
-<div class="verse">I throw them as far as I can throw</div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 13em;"><span class="smcap">Will Carleton</span></span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 13em;"><span class="smcap">George Jones</span>.</span></div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-
-<h3>AUTHORS.</h3>
-
-<p class="center">No. 2.</p>
-
-<p>The hostess should form a ring with herself
-in the centre, and to make it more comfortable
-all should have chairs. Number
-each person, naming yourself last. Number
-one repeats a quotation, Number two tells
-the author, Number three gives another<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_109" id="Page_109">[109]</a></span>
-quotation, and Number four gives the author,
-and so on. The person in charge, who
-is the one in the centre of the ring, keeps
-the game under proper control and time.
-No longer than ten seconds should be allowed
-for each person to respond. Every
-wrong guess of an author demands a forfeit.
-Surely, every one can give a quotation.</p>
-
-<p>Example:</p>
-
-<p>No. 1, gives,</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
- <div class="poetry">
-<div class="verse">Old Mother Hubbard</div>
-<div class="verse">Went to the cupboard.</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p>No. 2, Mother Goose.</p>
-
-<p>No. 3,</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
- <div class="poetry">
-<div class="verse">Between the dark and the daylight,</div>
-<div class="verse">When the night is beginning to lower.</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p>No. 4, Longfellow.</p>
-
-<p>No. 5,</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
- <div class="poetry">
-<div class="verse">Not a lord in all the country</div>
-<div class="verse">Is so great a lord as he.</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p>No. 6, Tennyson.</p>
-
-
-<h3>GHOST.</h3>
-
-<p>This is a spelling game. A person gives
-a letter, not necessarily having any particular
-word in mind, his next neighbor must<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_110" id="Page_110">[110]</a></span>
-think of a word beginning with this letter,
-and then say the second letter, the third
-person must think of a word using the two
-letters previously given, and add the third
-and so on, to the end of the word. A person
-is not a ghost until he is four times
-caught.</p>
-
-<p>The penalties are to be challenged rightfully,
-to challenge wrongfully, or to complete
-a word. The challenging consists in
-doubting a letter which a player has given.
-A player may say, “I challenge you,” when
-a person has added a letter, if he feels sure
-there is no word spelled in that order. If
-rightfully challenged, the speaker has one
-penalty against him as ghost. If, on the
-contrary, he gives the word which he had
-in his mind, as he is bound to do when
-challenged, the challenger is one-fourth of
-a ghost.</p>
-
-<p>Every word finished makes one-fourth of
-a ghost, but it is proper to add a letter and
-thus form a new syllable. If a syllable of
-a word is a complete word in itself, the one
-pronouncing the last letter has incurred the
-penalty. For example, take the word revelry.
-R-e-v-e have been given, and unless
-the fifth player can think of n, and change it
-to revenue, or some other word, he must say
-l, and thus the word ends.</p>
-
-<p>Whoever is ghost has to keep absolute
-silence throughout the game.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_111" id="Page_111">[111]</a></span></p>
-
-
-<h3>CELEBRATED AUTHORS.</h3>
-
-<p>One member of the company should leave
-the room, while those who remain determine
-what celebrated author he is to represent.</p>
-
-<p>On his return, he must in all respects be
-treated as that author would be were he the
-guest of the evening. He must be entertained
-by conversation and questions which
-would be of interest. Neither the conversation
-nor the questions may be misleading,
-but on the contrary helpful to the discovery
-of himself. He may be Shakespeare or Kirk
-Monroe, or if a girl she may be Lucy Larcom
-or Mary E. Wilkins.</p>
-
-<p>Suppose Shakespeare is the distinguished
-guest. Of course all polite people would
-rise to receive him, and the hostess would
-offer him the most comfortable chair; every
-one’s manner would indicate that they were
-in the presence of greatness.</p>
-
-<p>The conversation would naturally be of
-England and the changes that had come to
-her within the last three hundred years.
-That the town in which he was born had
-changed greatly; that the streets once so
-full of mud and refuse were now not only
-clean and tidy but almost uncomfortable
-with too great cleanliness and neatness.
-That the town owned a very pretty theatre,
-ornamented with statues of heroes and heroines.
-That a fine drinking fountain had<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_112" id="Page_112">[112]</a></span>
-lately been put there by a philanthropic visitor
-from Philadelphia, now dead. That
-the townspeople had been known to express
-their delight over the fact that he had been
-so obliging as to be born there.</p>
-
-<p>He might be asked how he liked Queen
-Elizabeth, and if it was true she was as fond
-of him as had been expressed, and if so why
-didn’t he write something In Memoriam of
-her?</p>
-
-<p>If the company discovers that the person
-who is personating Shakespeare is not able,
-after a few minutes of opportunity, to guess
-who he is, they should then throw on more
-light, by either asking him more prominent
-questions, or in connection with each other
-indicate more clearly. Ask some such
-question as, How far was the Mermaid
-Tavern from the home of John Milton? and,
-Did you meet Ben Jonson there? or did
-you call for each other and go and dine
-together?</p>
-
-<p>There is great difference of opinion as to
-the correct way to spell your name. In the
-register which marks your birth, we noticed
-in reading the surname, that the letter E
-was left out of the first syllable. Do you
-put it in the last syllable, or is it out of that
-also? Did the boys ever call you Bill?
-Isn’t Warwickshire beautiful? What do
-you think of the river Avon? In what year
-did Bacon write Hamlet?</p>
-
-<p>Of course, by this time, the celebrated<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_113" id="Page_113">[113]</a></span>
-Author would be guessed and some one else
-would leave the room, another Author be
-selected, and the game proceed as before.</p>
-
-
-<h3>THE ARSENAL.</h3>
-
-<p>The players must be seated in a circle,
-with the understanding that whoever smiles
-must pay a forfeit. No. 1 turns to his neighbor
-on the left and sings, while nodding
-his head,</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
- <div class="poetry">
-<div class="verse">Are you going to the Arsenal, the Arsenal,</div>
-<div class="verse">And see the animals in Central Park?</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p class="unindent">The person addressed replies in the same
-tune, nodding,</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
- <div class="poetry">
-<div class="verse">Yes, I’m going to the Arsenal, the Arsenal,</div>
-<div class="verse">And see the animals in Central Park.</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p class="unindent">Then both sing and nod,</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
- <div class="poetry">
-<div class="verse">Two of us are going to the Arsenal, the Arsenal,</div>
-<div class="verse">And see the animals in Central Park,</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p>No. 2 then turns to No 3, nodding and
-singing the same question, who replies in
-the same way, only singing,</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
- <div class="poetry">
-<div class="verse">Three of us are going to the Arsenal, the Arsenal,</div>
-<div class="verse">And see the animals in Central Park.</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p class="unindent">And so complete the circle, the chorus being
-added to by one or more each time.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_114" id="Page_114">[114]</a></span></p>
-
-
-<h3>MAGICAL READING.</h3>
-
-<p>Ask your audience to be seated, while
-you talk for a few minutes on the wonders
-of occult science. Having mystified them
-as much as possible, you arouse their curiosity
-by announcing that you are now prepared
-to state whatever they may choose to
-draw or write, provided the sentence is a
-short one, by pressing the words or picture
-against your forehead, instead of reading
-with the eye.</p>
-
-<p>You then distribute lead pencils, and
-equal sized slips of paper to all who wish to
-try, and take your seat at a table, on which
-you put a work-basket, with the request
-that when they are finished, they will fold
-the papers over once and then drop them
-in the basket.</p>
-
-<p>When this is done you draw out any
-paper you may first touch; unfolding it so
-that you cannot read, you press it against
-your forehead, being careful to cover the
-entire paper with the fingers of each hand,
-which touch each other. You must explain
-that this contact is necessary for your
-revelation. After some minutes spent in
-thought, you read it and immediately draw
-another paper, laying each one before you,
-behind the basket.</p>
-
-<p>The trick is simple, and consists in reading
-any word or sentence which may first
-occur to you, for the first paper, but reading<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_115" id="Page_115">[115]</a></span>
-the words thereon, or noting the picture
-when you lay it behind the basket. The
-picture or words on the first paper are read
-for the second, the second read for the
-third, and so on, until the last one has been
-pressed to the forehead, in removing which
-it is hidden by being crushed in the hand, or
-in whichever way may prove the easiest at
-the time, as the last paper is a necessity to
-make up for the one you falsely read.</p>
-
-<p>It is not often that this trick is detected,
-unless it is bunglingly shown, and for that
-there is no excuse, as it is ridiculous to exhibit
-magic without long and careful practice.</p>
-
-<p>Always change as much as possible the
-method of exhibition and never show this
-feat twice in one evening. Remember that
-diversion is an important feature in all magical
-entertainment; therefore you should
-be a capital story-teller, have a fund of funny
-stories on which you call at a moment’s need,
-for the attention of your friends must be
-constantly turned from your nervousness.</p>
-
-<p>Every one understands that they are being
-deceived. You must be a clever magician or
-they will discover how.</p>
-
-
-<h3>LAUGHABLE RHYMES.</h3>
-
-<p>This game may amuse any number, if those
-playing will each pleasantly do their part.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_116" id="Page_116">[116]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>The company should be seated in a circle
-and the one in charge repeats from memory,
-reads from a book, or makes up a line of
-poetry. The individual to whom he addresses
-it, must add a line of the same
-rhyme and sense.</p>
-
-<p>When the director has given his line, he
-runs three times around the outside of the
-circle, or he may spin a large tin platter.
-The second line of poetry <i>must</i> be added
-before he completes his third round of the
-circle, or before the platter has ceased to
-spin. Should the line fail to be given in
-time, the one to give it must pay a forfeit.
-The director then gives another line to another
-person, the game thus continuing
-until all have taken part, or the players
-desire a change.</p>
-
-<p>The director may change any time with
-any one of the company. Poetry of merit
-is not expected.</p>
-
-<p>Examples:</p>
-
-<p>Director, (giving a line),</p>
-
-<p>“Miss Beecher’s class came down the
-street.”</p>
-
-<p>Answer.</p>
-
-<p>“And every one looked perfectly sweet.”</p>
-
-<p>Director,</p>
-
-<p>“Ring, ring, rosy,”</p>
-
-<p>Answer,</p>
-
-<p>“I’m your Josy.”</p>
-
-<p>Director,</p>
-
-<p>“I wandered by the brook-side.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_117" id="Page_117">[117]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Answer,</p>
-
-<p>“I saw you on my morning ride.”</p>
-
-<p>Another way of playing laughable rhymes,
-is to give each one of the company a piece
-of paper and a pencil. Each paper has a
-verse written on it of the same number of
-lines in length. But these lines are incomplete,
-as each line is minus one word. This
-word may be the last one of a line, or it
-may be any of the others. Five minutes is
-a fair time to allow for the completion of
-these rhymes. Then the papers should be
-collected and read aloud, the reader indicating
-the supplied words. All failing to
-complete their verses within the time allowed
-must pay a forfeit.</p>
-
-<p>Examples:</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
- <div class="poetry">
-<div class="verse">“It fell of <span style="margin-left: 2em;">itself</span></div>
-<div class="verse">The lazy <span style="margin-left: 2em;">ball</span></div>
-<div class="verse">And you needn’t tell <span style="margin-left: 2em;">me</span></div>
-<div class="verse">I let it <span style="margin-left: 2em;">fall</span></div>
-<div class="verse">Perhaps it was <span style="margin-left: 2em;">tired</span></div>
-<div class="verse">Like me and <span style="margin-left: 2em;">you</span></div>
-<div class="verse">And wanted to <span style="margin-left: 2em;">rest</span></div>
-<div class="verse">A minute or <span style="margin-left: 2em;">two.”</span></div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p>Supplied word in parentheses above</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
- <div class="poetry">
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 4.5em;">(you)</span></div>
-<div class="verse">“What do <span style="margin-left: 2em;">think</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 4em;">(don’t)</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_118" id="Page_118">[118]</a></span>I’m sure I <span style="margin-left: 2em;">know.</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 2.5em;">(tell)</span></div>
-<div class="verse">Don’t <span style="margin-left: 2em;">anybody</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 3em;">(oh)</span></div>
-<div class="verse">Oh, no! <span style="margin-left: 2em;">no!</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 4em;">(told)</span></div>
-<div class="verse">Somebody <span style="margin-left: 2em;">me</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 6em;">(else)</span></div>
-<div class="verse">That some one <span style="margin-left: 2em;">said</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 5.5em;">(told)</span></div>
-<div class="verse">That so and so <span style="margin-left: 2em;">them</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 5.5em;">(what)</span></div>
-<div class="verse">You won’t tell <span style="margin-left: 2em;">I said?”</span></div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p>For older people, try and pique their memories;
-therefore some familiar poem should
-be selected, or some sonnet of Shakspeare.</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
- <div class="poetry">
-<div class="verse">“On either side the river <span style="margin-left: 2em;">lie</span></div>
-<div class="verse">Long fields of barley and of <span style="margin-left: 2em;">rye</span></div>
-<div class="verse">That clothe the world and meet the <span style="margin-left: 2em;">sky;</span></div>
-<div class="verse">And thro’ the field the road runs <span style="margin-left: 2em;">by</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 2em;">To many tower’d</span> <span style="margin-left: 2em;">Camelot;</span></div>
-<div class="verse">And up and down the people <span style="margin-left: 2em;">go</span></div>
-<div class="verse">Gazing where the lilies <span style="margin-left: 2em;">blow</span></div>
-<div class="verse">Round an island there <span style="margin-left: 2em;">below</span>,</div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 2em;">The island of</span> <span style="margin-left: 2em;">Shalott.”</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 11em;">(for)</span></div>
-<div class="verse">“So oft have I invoked thee <span style="margin-left: 2em;">my Muse</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 13em;">(in)</span></div>
-<div class="verse">And found such fair assistance <span style="margin-left: 2em;">my verse</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 10em;">(got)</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_119" id="Page_119">[119]</a></span>As every alien pen hath <span style="margin-left: 2em;">my use</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 6em;">(their)</span></div>
-<div class="verse">And under thee <span style="margin-left: 2em;">poesy disperse.</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 13em;">(on)</span></div>
-<div class="verse">Thine eyes that taught the dumb <span style="margin-left: 2em;">high to sing,</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 8.5em;">(aloft)</span></div>
-<div class="verse">And heavy ignorance <span style="margin-left: 2em;">to fly,</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 9.5em;">(the)</span></div>
-<div class="verse">Have added feathers to <span style="margin-left: 2em;">learned’s wing</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 7em;">(double)</span></div>
-<div class="verse">And given grace a <span style="margin-left: 2em;">majesty.</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 10em;">(which)</span></div>
-<div class="verse">Yet be most proud of that <span style="margin-left: 2em;">I compile,</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 11.5em;">(born)</span></div>
-<div class="verse">Whose influence is thine and <span style="margin-left: 2em;">of thee:</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 11.5em;">(mend)</span></div>
-<div class="verse">In others’ works thou dost but <span style="margin-left: 2em;">the style,</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 9.5em;">(graces)</span></div>
-<div class="verse">And arts with thy sweet <span style="margin-left: 2em;">gracèd be;</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 9em;">(and)</span></div>
-<div class="verse">But thou art all my art <span style="margin-left: 2em;">dost advance</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 8em;">(my)</span></div>
-<div class="verse">As high as learning <span style="margin-left: 2em;">rude ignorance.”</span></div>
-<div class="verse"></div>
-</div>
-
-
-<h3>MAKING A DICTIONARY.</h3>
-
-<p>This game is more suitable for scholars;
-those who have made a study of biography
-and definition. It is readily divided in two
-parts, and each part may be played separately,
-but it is more satisfactory to unite<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_120" id="Page_120">[120]</a></span>
-them. The first part is to guess who is personated,
-and the second is to write definitions.
-If everybody understands or is
-studying French it would be a change to
-personate a Frenchman, and, in like manner,
-if every player understands or is studying
-German, personate a German, perhaps some
-author, whose book is authority in school.</p>
-
-<p>The leader of the game commences by
-stating, “I have compiled a dictionary,” and
-if he is personating a German, before proceeding
-further he must give that clue. Example:
-“Ever since the appearance of the
-vocabulary to my German Reader in 1870,
-I have been receiving, from various quarters,
-suggestions and solicitations of a more general
-German dictionary, to be constructed
-upon the same plan.” And if he is personating
-a Frenchman he must be equally
-helpful.</p>
-
-<p>After this the leader is silent until asked
-questions, which he must correctly answer.
-Should he be representing the notable Noah
-Webster, the following would readily discover
-him.</p>
-
-<p>“Were you born in the United States?”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes.”</p>
-
-<p>“Were you born in the South?”</p>
-
-<p>“No.”</p>
-
-<p>“In the East?”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes.”</p>
-
-<p>“Are you living?”</p>
-
-<p>“No.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_121" id="Page_121">[121]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Were you very old when you died?”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, in my eighty-fifth year.”</p>
-
-<p>“What college did you attend?”</p>
-
-<p>“Yale.”</p>
-
-<p>“What was your father’s business?”</p>
-
-<p>“He was a farmer and justice of the
-peace.”</p>
-
-<p>“Tell me about your mother.”</p>
-
-<p>“She was a descendant of William Bradford,
-the second Governor of Plymouth
-Colony.”</p>
-
-<p>“Were you married?”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes.”</p>
-
-<p>“How many children had you?”</p>
-
-<p>“Six; one son and five daughters.”</p>
-
-<p>By this time any player knowing the biography
-of Mr. Webster would have guessed
-him.</p>
-
-<p>The leader now distributes to each person
-equal sized pieces of paper, on which the
-same and several words have been written.
-He also gives them lead pencils. The test
-is to write the best definitions for these
-words, which, if honestly done, is without
-consultation. A minute is allowed for each
-word, and the papers being signed are then
-collected, and by the leader read to the
-audience. With a dictionary for reference
-there will be no dispute as to who has won.</p>
-
-<p>Test words should be common ones, as
-they are much more difficult to define. For
-instance, Defy,—a challenge. Fortieth,—following
-the thirty-ninth, or preceded by<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_122" id="Page_122">[122]</a></span>
-thirty-nine units, things or parts, the quotient
-of a unit divided by forty. To-morrow,—a
-day after the present. Wrist,—the
-joint connecting the hand with the arm.
-Rather than such as Homing Home,—used
-specifically of carrier pigeons. Subpœna,—a
-summons for witnesses. Xanthine,—yellow
-dyeing matter in certain plants and
-flowers. Islamism,—the Mohammedan religion.</p>
-
-<p>This game played with the right people,
-will give a delightful evening.</p>
-
-
-<h3>DESERT ISLAND.</h3>
-
-<p>Make believe that you have heard of people
-living on a desert island, on which there
-is absolutely nothing for their comfort or
-enjoyment.</p>
-
-<p>Distribute an equal number of pieces of
-wood, and ask your guests to cut out utensils
-for cooking, furniture, etc. Or give
-papers, and let each in the game draw articles,
-or take the papers and fold to shape
-articles. A limit of time must be named,
-and in the end, whoever has made or drawn
-or folded the greatest number of recognizable
-articles has won the game.</p>
-
-
-<h3>THE BUTTERFLY TEST.</h3>
-
-<p>Cut white writing paper in uniform size—eight
-in width by ten in length. Have as<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_123" id="Page_123">[123]</a></span>
-many pieces of paper as the number of
-painters, also several extra ones, as undoubtedly
-the butterfly makers would want
-to try again and yet again. One palette
-would suffice for a large company, for every
-one likes to watch the development of his
-neighbor’s work, almost as much as he does
-his own. But, of course, more palettes may
-be used if desired. Oil paints of divers
-colors must be placed on the palette, having
-a larger amount of the yellow paint than
-of any of the others, for not only are there
-more yellow butterflies, but yellow often
-conspicuously appears in almost every butterfly.
-As many palette-knives will be required
-as palettes. Brushes are not needed.</p>
-
-<p>Put one butterfly on one piece of paper
-only. Fold the paper you use exactly in
-half, creasing it the longest way, thus giving
-it the appearance of an ordinary sheet
-of letter paper. This done, take the palette-knife
-and on its point and edge gather a
-little of the paint, putting the knife into the
-different portions, and so getting the colors
-which you desire. It is better to allow the
-paint to extend about half to two-thirds of
-an inch along the inside edge of the knife.
-All the paint you would need would not
-more than cover a five-cent nickel.</p>
-
-<p>When the paint is on the palette-knife,
-open your sheet of paper, and in the exact
-centre of the inside crease, put the paint.
-This is done by putting the edge of the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_124" id="Page_124">[124]</a></span>
-point of the knife directly in the crease, and
-pressing downward, and also a trifle towards
-the right.</p>
-
-<p>Be satisfied with whatever leaves the knife
-the first time. Do not attempt to pick the
-paint off, or stick more on. Then carefully
-remove all paint from the palette-knife. For
-this you will need a small piece of soft cotton
-cloth. Where many people are at work
-several cloths should be in readiness.</p>
-
-<p>The palette-knife now being clean, fold
-the paper over in the crease first made, being
-careful that you have folded it even,
-otherwise, the wings of the butterfly would
-be out of proportion, one being higher than
-the other. When the paper is folded you
-will distinctly see the blotch inside, and in
-this press heavily with the end of the palette-knife,
-starting at the crease and form an
-upward long arch, then press again from the
-centre towards the right, and arch in the
-same way, only proportionately shorter.
-The two arches should meet.</p>
-
-<p>When you have pressed over and over
-again on the same places, and find that it is
-impossible to further spread your paint,
-open the sheet of paper, and inside you will
-see a butterfly delicately tinted and veined,
-his wings full spread as if to alight on a
-white clover, or other sweet-scented wild
-flower. In pressing out the paint you can
-more fully control the palette-knife, as well
-as protect the paper, if you put your fingers<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_125" id="Page_125">[125]</a></span>
-close to the paint. Sometimes a perfect
-butterfly is thus made the first time, but with
-a little practice any one may make butterflies
-as they will.</p>
-
-<p>Before painting commences, each artist
-should draw from a receptacle a small paper,
-which will bear a number. This paper must
-be held until the prize is given, as an inexpensive
-prize would better be awarded to
-the one painting the most natural butterfly.</p>
-
-<p>When the one in charge calls a number, the
-one having it at once goes forward and paints
-a butterfly on a paper bearing the same
-number as the one he drew. No matter
-how many butterflies this individual may
-paint, each paper on which the painting is
-done must bear the number drawn. As
-each butterfly is painted it is placed on the
-top of a large table. When all are through
-painting, the judge who has hitherto not
-been in the room, examines all of the butterflies,
-and decides according to number who
-is entitled to the prize. Example, No. 23.</p>
-
-<p>Should there be two or more equally
-well done, those who painted them must
-each try again. The best of these is then
-awarded the prize.</p>
-
-
-<h3>A SKATING PARTY.</h3>
-
-<p>All taking part should be in costume.
-The costumes may relate to a special anniversary,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_126" id="Page_126">[126]</a></span>
-such as Lincoln’s or Washington’s
-Birthday, or a St. Valentine revel. They
-may also be simply fantastic or pretty, or
-they may recall the old Knickerbocker days.</p>
-
-<p>The <i>fête</i> would have to be under the direction
-of patronesses. To their decision is left
-the programme, time, place, etc. Suppose
-for example, it is Washington’s Birthday
-night, some one of the number should
-represent General Washington. Other characters
-should be prominent Revolutionary
-heroes, as John Hancock, General Gates,
-General Lafayette, etc. Then, too, Mary
-and Martha Washington should be on skates,
-and Betty Washington, George Washington’s
-sister, and other notable women of the Declaration
-of Independence period. But besides
-these, there should be Clowns and
-Dumpies.</p>
-
-
-<h3>PROGRAMME.</h3>
-
-<p>Cornet solo, followed by bugle call. Enter
-General Washington on skates, followed
-by two valets.</p>
-
-<p>Fifteen minutes of general skating in costume.</p>
-
-<p>A sleigh race between the most prominent
-generals, and their wives.</p>
-
-<p>Fifteen minutes of general skating in costume.</p>
-
-<p>A musical match between the clowns and
-dumpies.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_127" id="Page_127">[127]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Fifteen minutes of general skating in costume.</p>
-
-<p>Then all skate, the onlookers and those
-taking part, General Washington leading.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-<div class="chapter"></div>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_128" id="Page_128">[128]</a></span></p>
-
-
-
-
-<h2>SPECIAL FÊTES.</h2>
-
-
-<h3>LINCOLN’S BIRTHDAY AMUSEMENTS.</h3>
-
-<p>Give a sleighing party. Start immediately
-after a mid-day dinner and get home before
-the sun sets.</p>
-
-<p>Every one should attach a knot of tri-colored
-ribbon to his coat or jacket. The
-horses, sleighs and whips must be decked
-with flags and streamers.</p>
-
-<p>When on the road sing songs of freedom.
-“John Brown’s body lies mouldering
-in the grave.” “In the beauty of the lilies
-Christ was born across the sea,” etc.</p>
-
-<p>Have a snowball game. Choose sides
-and decide who can pitch the farthest.</p>
-
-<p>Balance a snowball on the end of a cane,
-and note which boy can longest keep it from
-falling.</p>
-
-<p>Try a snowshoe race by picked players.</p>
-
-<p>Make an immense snowball. When it
-can be made no larger, let three persons stand
-on the top. The tallest should stand in the
-centre and wave the flag. One of the party
-should take a snap shot at that moment, for
-future amusement.</p>
-
-<p>Arrange a skating party the day before,
-and test each one’s skill on the ice—who<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_129" id="Page_129">[129]</a></span>
-can skate the most rapidly,—who can exhibit
-the most figures, etc.</p>
-
-<p>Give an up-to-date military tournament on
-skates. Example, America and Spain.</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p>If there is neither snow, nor ice, have a
-bicycle match. Trim the bicycle with red,
-white and blue. Each rider should wear
-the same colors. The match may be simply
-a question of speed. In that case be careful
-to indicate the distance. Competent judges
-should witness the start and close of the
-race.</p>
-
-<p>All difficult questions must be decided by
-an umpire.</p>
-
-
-<h3>ST. VALENTINE GAMES.</h3>
-
-<h4><i>A Valentine Hunt.</i></h4>
-
-<p>This should be given early in the evening,
-as it removes shyness and establishes good
-fellowship.</p>
-
-<p>Hide as many small valentines as there
-are children, and give five minutes to hunt
-for them. Those finding more than one
-should put the extra ones on a table, and the
-children not finding any are then blindfolded
-and allowed to draw one each.</p>
-
-<h4><i>Rose Guess.</i></h4>
-
-<p>Present a large rose and let each child
-guess how many petals it contains. When<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_130" id="Page_130">[130]</a></span>
-all have guessed, pick the petals off, counting
-them as they fall. The nearest guesser
-receives a prize. An appropriate prize would
-be a bonbon box filled with candied rose
-leaves.</p>
-
-<h4><i>Rose Bowl Game.</i></h4>
-
-<p>Put on a small table, a mat of pink
-crinkled tissue paper, and in the centre stand
-a cut-glass rose-bowl. The bowl should be
-covered with huge pink rose petals, made of
-paper, inverted as though the rose were held
-in the bowl, the petals all meeting in the
-green calyx, which covers the opening of the
-bowl. Through the calyx, narrow green
-ribbons representing rose stems should appear.
-Each child, at a signal, should come
-to the table and draw one of the “stems.”
-On the end of each will be found a pink
-candy heart, and to one of these hearts will
-be fastened a tiny love-knot ring.</p>
-
-<h4><i>The Walnut’s Fortune.</i></h4>
-
-<p>Open a quantity of walnuts in half. Into
-each walnut slip a narrow piece of paper
-which will predict the future. Slip a small
-elastic over each nut, which will prevent
-them from reopening. The boys’ walnuts
-should be put in one basket, and the girls’ in
-another. The girls’ basket should be offered<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_131" id="Page_131">[131]</a></span>
-first. As each girl holds her hand over the
-basket she should repeat:</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
- <div class="poetry">
-<div class="verse">“Steady, good fairy, I am wary,</div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">Pray let my hand make no mistake;</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">I would only the right nut take.”</span></div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p>Then she puts her hand down, lifts up a
-nut, removes the elastic, and taking out the
-paper, reads her future aloud. Example,
-“You will travel around the world. At the
-age of twenty-three you will sing before two
-thousand people.” And thus the future is
-predicted in similar style for other players.</p>
-
-<h4><i>Naming the Roses.</i></h4>
-
-<p>All the young people should personate
-favorite roses. Therefore, there should be
-many varieties. The parlors should have
-arches or wide doorways, through which a
-procession may readily move.</p>
-
-<p>The musicians are advised to play something
-between a march and a reel, and immediately
-each boy signals out the girl that
-matches his rose. If more than one match,
-he asks the girl he prefers. Then, all keeping
-time to the music, they walk through
-the first arch or doorway, and so on to the
-second, thus in rotation going through all.
-The couples should keep about two feet
-back of each other.</p>
-
-<p>When all have passed through the last
-arch, they join hands, thus forming a circle,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_132" id="Page_132">[132]</a></span>
-and commencing with the first couple, enter
-the ring two by two. Two only being in at
-a time, when they come out, the two that
-followed them in the march enter, and so
-on. When in the circle the boy should ask
-the girl, “Which rose are you?” She answers,
-“Tell me, and I’ll tell you.” Very
-often his answer will be, “I don’t know,”
-though once in a while he will make a perfect
-guess. When his answer is right, he
-asks the girl the language of her rose; but
-if he has made a mistake, he is obliged to
-leave the girl in the ring, and stand under
-one of the arches. If the girl cannot answer
-his question, she must stand under an arch.
-If the boy leaves the ring before inquiring
-the rose’s language, those forming the ring
-put the same question, and if the girl does
-not properly reply, she has to pay the same
-penalty as when not replying to the boy.</p>
-
-<p>When both questions are answered correctly,
-the boy and girl again join the hands
-of the others forming the circle. When
-each couple has been in and left the ring the
-game is concluded.</p>
-
-<p>Among the rosebuds and their meaning
-are: White rose-bud, girlhood; red rose-bud,
-loveliness; white and red together,
-unity.</p>
-
-
-<h4><i>Memory.</i></h4>
-
-<p>Put a small table behind a screen. On
-this table place thirty different articles, including<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_133" id="Page_133">[133]</a></span>
-pulverized spices, small bottles of
-liquid, books, etc. Each player is allowed
-ten seconds in which to familiarize himself
-or herself with the things on the table.
-Then each person writes a list of the things,
-titles of books, etc., from memory. The
-boy and girl whose lists are nearest perfection
-receive valentines as prizes.</p>
-
-
-<h4><i>Love Box.</i></h4>
-
-<p>Present a pink silk bag to each of the
-young ladies, and ask them to take out what
-they first touch. Each will then draw a
-small pink box, inside of which will be her
-fortune written on ordinary sized note paper.</p>
-
-<p>When the young ladies have finished
-drawing, pass a red silk bag, filled with red
-boxes of a similar size, to the young men.
-Each paper in the pink boxes should be
-numbered one, two, etc. and the same with
-the red. The following are the examples of
-the fortunes.</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
- <div class="poetry">
- <div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse">Whereso’er I am, below or else above you,</div>
-<div class="verse">Whereso’er you are, my heart shall truly love you.</div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 6em;">My name is John.</span></div>
- </div>
- <div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 2em;">You will married be</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 2em;">At the age of thirty-eight,</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 2em;">Or else I’ve made a mistake,</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 2em;">And the date is far too late.</span></div>
- </div>
- <div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 2em;">Now you must guess my name</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 2em;">Or this fortune’s very tame.</span></div>
-</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_134" id="Page_134">[134]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Or ask questions, to be followed with appropriate
-answers.</p>
-
-<p>“Shall I marry Sue?”</p>
-
-<p>“There’s a rival in the case. A very rich
-and stupid fellow.”</p>
-
-
-<h4><i>The Prophetic Rose.</i></h4>
-
-<p>In an archway hang a huge rose made of
-tissue-paper of a deep red color, the petals
-being dark at the centre. The players are
-told that the darker petals belong to the
-boys, and the girls should visit the rose first.
-Each girl in turn should step toward the
-rose, and break off a petal. On the reverse
-side she may read her fortune; for delicately
-pasted to the rose petal will be a white one,
-and on this the girls fortune will be written.
-Everybody reads their fortune aloud, for
-all are as interested to learn the future of
-their friends as their own. When the girls
-finish, the boys follow in a similar way.
-Some of the fortunes might be:</p>
-
-<p>“Thou drawest a perfect lot.”</p>
-
-<p>“You will be wondrous happy.”</p>
-
-<p>“Mistress of the Manse.”</p>
-
-<p>“A curate—never slack in duty.”</p>
-
-
-<h4><i>Make a Valentine.</i></h4>
-
-<p>This will create much merriment and
-prove equally suitable for grown-ups or
-boys and girls.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_135" id="Page_135">[135]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Before the guests arrive, have ready even-sized
-pieces of water-color paper. The
-hostess should distribute these and explain
-just what should be done. Have water-color
-paints, brushes, etc., conveniently near
-every one, also a few well-sharpened lead-pencils
-might not prove amiss. Either have
-the people seated at one long table or at
-several small ones, as would be convenient.
-Ring a bell when it is time to commence.
-In thirty minutes ring again, when all must
-stop.</p>
-
-<p>As the designs should be original, no one
-must look over his neighbor’s shoulder.
-The fact that some would not know how to
-paint would have nothing to do with it, as
-the entertainment is only a bit of fun and
-every one should do his part. Valentines
-allow of such diversity in decoration, from
-the extreme of the grotesque to the æsthetic
-and beautiful, that every one should be glad
-to try. Remember, a line of prose or verse
-would be an added compliment. For instance,</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
- <div class="poetry">
-<div class="verse">Prithee tell me, Dimple chin,</div>
-<div class="verse">At what age does love begin?</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p class="unindent">might be written under the dainty portrait
-of some winsome wee thing; or,</p>
-
-<div class="center">My love is like a red, red rose,</div>
-
-<p class="unindent">might be added to the picture of a flaming
-red cabbage rose.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_136" id="Page_136">[136]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>When the valentines are finished they
-should be numbered, each painter retaining
-his number on a slip of paper. This done,
-gather the valentines and submit them to the
-judgment of three people to decide as to
-their merit. The painter of the best valentine
-should receive a prize.</p>
-
-<p>Then jumble together slips of paper on
-which are written numbers corresponding
-to the numbers of the valentines. Let each
-guest draw a slip, and present him or her
-with the corresponding valentine, which
-may be retained as a souvenir.</p>
-
-
-<h4><i>The Court of the King of Hearts.</i></h4>
-
-<p>Decide who will be king. He may get
-his costume from a costumer’s or wear a
-home-made robe of gold color, decorated
-all over with hearts cut out of crimson velvet,
-six inches long and in correct proportion.
-He should wear a gold crown ornamented
-with Rhine stones, and carry a
-sceptre. There should be a throne, which
-may be a large chair placed on a raised
-platform. The throne and platform should
-be covered with gold paper, sprinkled with
-diamond dust.</p>
-
-<p>All the decorations should suggest St.
-Valentine’s evening. Therefore, pink or rose
-should be the color effect, and such devices
-as Cupid’s arrows, hearts, valentines should
-appear. Ask the young ladies to gown<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_137" id="Page_137">[137]</a></span>
-themselves to represent roses. Therefore
-some would wear pink; others, white, etc.
-The gowns might further suggest the scheme
-by being trimmed with roses. The young
-gentlemen should wear rose boutonnières.</p>
-
-<p>All the guests compose the court.</p>
-
-<p>The entertainment may be opened by
-the minuet, danced by red and white roses,
-after which the entire court enter, marching
-two by two. As they march they sing in
-honor of their king. When the first couple
-reaches the throne, the leaders separate right
-and left and turn facing each other. The
-others do likewise, keeping the distance between
-regular. Last of all comes the king
-followed by two pages representing Cupids.
-The king marches between the columns,
-and finally reaches his throne. When there he
-looks smilingly over his court, and then seats
-himself. The pages stand to his right and left.</p>
-
-<p>Then the court, at a motion of the king’s
-sceptre, waltz, after which the entire evening
-is spent amusing the king. He likes songs,
-and they become Singing Roses. He likes
-recitations, and the roses recite. All the
-songs and recitations must be of the heart.
-Among the recitations may be “The Garden
-of Love,” William Shakspeare; “The Day-Dream,”
-Alfred Tennyson; “Telepathy,”
-James Russell Lowell.</p>
-
-<p>At the close of a song the king rises, and
-waving his wand, the company cease entertaining,
-and the Cupids, leaving the throne,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_138" id="Page_138">[138]</a></span>
-walk side by side, and finally stop at a huge
-blackboard. Then in colored crayons they
-each draw a valentine. After which the
-King of Hearts asks each one of the company
-to do likewise. This affords much amusement,
-as many of the valentines will be exceedingly
-grotesque.</p>
-
-<p>When all have finished drawing, the Cupids
-return to the throne, and the king signals
-for a dance. And now a surprise. Eight
-dancers appear in heart and valentine dominoes.
-Each heart dances with a valentine,
-and thus the king continues to be
-amused. The first eight who have drawn
-valentines quietly absent themselves, and
-thus they are ready at the desired time. The
-dominoes are made out of white cheese-cloth,
-the valentines and hearts are basted
-thickly over them.</p>
-
-<p>After the dance the king should rise and
-thank the court for what has been done for
-his entertainment, after which the recession
-of the court should follow. The columns
-leading to the throne must be again formed,
-the king rises, and proceeds through the
-lines followed by his pages, and then the
-two nearest to the throne go next, and so on
-until all disappear.</p>
-
-
-<h3>WASHINGTON’S BIRTHDAY ENTERTAINMENT.</h3>
-
-<p>If the hostess is a girl, she should be costumed
-as Lady Washington; if she has a<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_139" id="Page_139">[139]</a></span>
-brother, his dress should be a faithful copy
-of General Washington’s. The mother of
-the young people may take the character of
-Mary Washington, mother of George. Ask
-your friends to wear an appropriate costume
-excepting that of the Washington household;
-that family excluded, they are fancy free.
-Decorate the house with flags and bunting;
-also give an eagle prominent position.
-For evergreens use holly, and whatever
-flowers may be peculiar to the State of Virginia.
-Suggest red, white, and blue in the
-supper-room. Example: Cover the dining-table
-with blue silk or bunting, and on it
-stand cakes frosted with red and white icing,
-mottoes in red and white papers, etc. Serve
-strawberry and vanilla ice-cream in blue
-dishes. Have all the confectionery red and
-white in color, and served from a blue-covered
-stand. Should you not have blue china
-suitable for the confectionery, deftly cover
-white china with blue crinkled paper, and
-so preserve the colors.</p>
-
-<p>Open the evening with the flag dance.
-This is any square dance you may please.
-Immediately before it starts, present the
-dancers with a tiny American flag, and
-whenever a bow occurs, let the flags be
-triumphantly whirled. They may be retained
-as souvenirs. After the dance some
-one previously selected should come into
-the parlor. He must be entirely enveloped
-in tricolor, which may be done by the use<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_140" id="Page_140">[140]</a></span>
-of a large flag, and if necessary a smaller
-one may cover the head. The question now
-is to guess, Who is this distinguished visitor?
-whether it is some one of the Revolutionary
-period or of the present, of our own
-country, or of another. When the domino
-is removed, across his chest will be his name.
-It is George the Third, who did not feel very
-comfortable at the time of the signing of the
-Declaration of Independence. He should
-wear a crown, which is easily made from
-pasteboard, cover it with gold paper, and
-for precious stones glue on rounded buttons
-covered to suit whichever gem you may
-please-jasper, sapphire, diamonds, or what
-not. Whoever makes a correct guess should
-receive a gift suggestive of the occasion. A
-book about a Revolutionary hero would do,
-or any article of jewelry, suggestive of
-Washington’s time. There are stickpins
-which may be used for scarfs also, that
-have the flag in colored enamel. After this,
-another dance would be in place, and follow
-that with games and patriotic songs.</p>
-
-<p>“The Star-Spangled Banner,” in march
-time, would be appropriate to use as the
-march to supper.</p>
-
-
-<h3>APRIL FOOL GAMES AND TRICKS.</h3>
-
-<p>It is always a question whether these
-games should or should not be played.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_141" id="Page_141">[141]</a></span>
-Therefore I offer them with this preface as
-also a few words of advice. Be good natured
-and do not take offence over other people’s
-amusement at your expense.</p>
-
-<p>Never play a practical joke.</p>
-
-<p>Example, Mr. M—— died last night.</p>
-
-<p>Mr. M—— was an intimate friend of a
-party present, and as the word pronounced
-dyed is capable of two different meanings,
-one of the guests interpreted it in its saddest
-sense, and immediately fainted. Wholesome
-fun promotes laughter and good-fellowship;
-indulge in it all you will, and so
-help your little world to be the merrier.</p>
-
-<p>On a pure white tidy write in distinct
-letters upside down, the words, “April
-Fool,” and get some boy to lean back against
-them. When he walks about the room afterwards,
-his black jacket is decorated.</p>
-
-<p>If you have an old cane-bottom chair,
-cut the seat out, but not too close to the
-frame. Fit this nicely in and offer the seat
-to any of the larger boys or girls. Instantly
-this individual finds himself slipping down,
-but is more frightened than hurt.</p>
-
-<p>Upholster a long low box to represent a
-divan. The top should consist of neatly
-tacked down stiff brown paper, and over
-this throw a long thin rug. Suggest to two
-or three of your liveliest friends that they sit
-together on this divan. In a few moments
-the room will resound with shrieks of laughter,
-for they will be seated on the floor.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_142" id="Page_142">[142]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Give a florist’s box temptingly covered
-with tissue paper and tied up with gold cord
-to one of the guests. He will unfasten the
-cord, take off the paper, and lift the cover
-only to find <i>nothing</i> within.</p>
-
-<p>Should your mother or sister be expecting
-a new spring bonnet, beguile the milliner
-into letting you have one of her nicest hat
-boxes, into which you should put your three
-years’ old Derby, and then watch the result.</p>
-
-<p>A questionable joke would be to send a
-party invitation to your old friend, inviting
-him to an equally old friend’s house, and
-wait around to see him enter.</p>
-
-<p>Tell John or Mary there is an oat for them
-at Mr. Blank’s. They thinking you have said
-“a note” immediately go to get it, and fully
-comprehend your meaning when they are
-handed a tiny package of tissue paper which
-serves as a covering to one oat and the words
-“April Fool.”</p>
-
-<p>Arrange portières so they may be drawn
-on either side of a long mirror, as window
-curtains are drawn from the centre of a
-window. Before this make an effective
-group of a number of boys and girls. The
-rear ones should stand, the ones immediately
-in front should be seated on the floor.
-Above them should be written on a mirror
-these words, “April Fools.” When every one
-is in place, a boy standing on the left and
-right of the mirror should draw the portières.</p>
-
-<p>A part of the refreshments for such an<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_143" id="Page_143">[143]</a></span>
-evening should be cakes frosted with salt
-and others stuffed with cotton, oranges filled
-with sawdust, tiny blocks of wood and
-small balls of cotton, covered with chocolate,
-so simulating chocolate caramels and creams.
-Have also motto papers deftly covering little
-pebbles, and iced coffee, which will be found
-to be the most acid of iced vinegar. But do
-not let your refreshments end with such a
-menu, or good nature even with the jolliest
-would cease to be a virtue; when a little
-fun is gotten, serve a delicious supper.</p>
-
-
-<h3>EASTER FROLICS.</h3>
-
-<p>The time for Easter amusement is during
-the week which follows Easter Day, and it
-would be a pretty idea at such a season to
-give a short tableau entertainment in connection
-with music and games, the tableaux
-indicating the superstitions of various countries.</p>
-
-<p>When the tableau is shown, announce
-what it is intended to represent; for example,
-in Russia the Easter festival might
-almost be termed the “kissing festival,” for
-beginning with the Emperor, who on Easter
-Day kisses various generals and even privates
-in his army, the singular contagion spreads
-throughout the empire, apparently affecting
-both aristocrat and plebeian.</p>
-
-<p><i>Tableau.</i>—A boy representing the Russian
-Emperor kissing a member of the army.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_144" id="Page_144">[144]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>In the olden days of France it was the
-custom for a Christian to give a Jew an
-Easter box.</p>
-
-<p><i>Tableau.</i>—Two boys, one representing the
-Christian; the other, the Jew. The Christian
-must be in the act of boxing the Jew’s
-ear.</p>
-
-<p>Follow this with the France of to-day.</p>
-
-<p><i>Tableau.</i>—An interior of a church, extravagantly
-trimmed with flowers, and brilliant
-with lighted candles. It should be crowded
-with boys and girls, mothers and fathers, all
-in brand-new clothes.</p>
-
-<p>Show Spain as a dark-haired girl, with a
-mantilla over her head, kneeling in a church
-before a mammoth candle—the Paschal candle,
-nine feet long. In order to make it
-seem taller, stand it on a marble pedestal.</p>
-
-<p>Rome, with a procession of gayly attired
-children, and a boy representing the Pope,
-in the most elegant of robes, carried in a
-crimson chair, over which is a canopy.
-This chair must be preceded by two boys,
-each carrying white ostrich-feather fans.</p>
-
-<p>Germany, with a group of dancing girls
-and boys, the girls wearing small, close-fitting
-white caps, full white aprons over dark
-gold-braided skirts and white sleeves; the
-boys with knee-breeches, white stockings,
-showy vests and gold buttons. Or show a
-hare running from a nest filled with colored
-eggs, before which two little children kneel.
-The nest should be placed under a bush, and<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_145" id="Page_145">[145]</a></span>
-one of the children should wear a laughing
-face, for she holds up an egg.</p>
-
-<p>England, with a crowd of boys and girls
-returning from Hampton Court, Kew Gardens,
-or Stoke Pogis with their arms literally
-filled with willow-boughs and branches of
-blossoms—yellow, pink, and white—with
-which they will decorate the church for
-Easter Sunday.</p>
-
-<p>Switzerland, with a band of musicians
-carrying guitars, and going from house to
-house singing some sweet carol, their hats
-and caps wreathed with flowers.</p>
-
-<p>A very pretty way to amuse children of
-all ages is to hide eggs in the grass or under
-bushes, and then have an egg-hunt. All
-eggs found may, of course, be carried home.
-Give five minutes for the hunt, and it will
-prove great sport for lookers-on also.</p>
-
-<p>For another game, raise a tent decorated
-with flags, cheese-cloth streamers, or ribbons.
-Opposite the tent in which the guests
-are to be seated, and ten feet distant, is a
-post or tree on which to put a prize. At
-the base of the post put a basket of thin
-china eggs or glass balls, and also one at
-the tent door, only fill this basket with excelsior.
-The game is to find the person that
-will throw the largest number of eggs from
-one of the baskets into the other and not
-break them. Whoever wins is rewarded by
-the prize.</p>
-
-<p>For little children, form a ring, and pitch<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_146" id="Page_146">[146]</a></span>
-to the centre of the ring a hard-boiled egg,
-and let them scramble for it. For larger
-children, let them pair off, a boy and a girl;
-thus alternating, they form a ring. Then
-start thirteen china or glass eggs, one after
-the other, from hand to hand, taking the
-egg in the right hand, passing it to the left,
-and so on round the ring. If an egg drops,
-it must stay where it falls until the other
-eggs have gone around the ring three times.
-It may chance by that time that all the eggs
-have dropped. When the third time around
-is complete, immediately a grand chain is
-formed, and the children dance, and go back
-to position, picking up the eggs as they
-dance. If the egg is not picked up, keeping
-time to the music which is being played
-throughout the game, that person cannot
-retain it, but must give it to the one following.
-Sometimes no eggs fall, then the game
-is kept up until all the eggs have passed
-rapidly around three times. But when
-dropped and picked up, they must then go
-around once, and after this final circuit the
-game is concluded.</p>
-
-<p>Boil a dozen or more eggs in logwood of
-different strengths of dye; they will then be
-colored violet or purple. Give these eggs,
-with a large pin or pen-knife, to young people
-to decorate. Offer a prize for the best
-decorations within fifteen minutes.</p>
-
-<p>Still another game is to knock eggs. Hold
-an egg so that the small end is shown between<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_147" id="Page_147">[147]</a></span>
-the forefinger and the thumb. Sit or
-stand opposite to the person with whom you
-are playing. Then knock each other’s eggs.
-The knock should be swift and hard, and
-whoever’s egg is the first to crack must
-now be given to the opponent. When
-starting, each should have an equal number.
-Whoever has the most eggs after playing
-ten minutes has won.</p>
-
-
-<h4><i>Finding the Hare.</i></h4>
-
-<p>The hare is nothing more nor less than a
-box made in exact copy of a hare, about
-six inches long. When opened it shall be
-found full of rose-colored and rose-flavored
-confectionery.</p>
-
-<p>The company are told that a hare is hidden
-and whoever finds it is the owner. It
-is a bewitching sight to see the merry hunt
-and great sport for those engaged.</p>
-
-
-<h4><i>The Parlor Egg Hunt.</i></h4>
-
-<p>Buy confectioners’ eggs, which come in all
-sizes, from the ostrich size to a humming
-bird’s, made of chocolate or icing, and
-trimmed with flowers or tiny ribbons.
-Hide the small eggs, and state in which
-rooms they are hidden. Allow five minutes
-for the hunt, each striving to find the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_148" id="Page_148">[148]</a></span>
-most. Ring a bell to start and end the
-game.</p>
-
-
-<h4><i>Ostrich Egg Search.</i></h4>
-
-<p>This is played exactly like the thimble
-game. Put a confectioner’s ostrich egg in
-full sight, and at a signal every one begins
-to look for it. When it is seen, the finder
-signifies the fact by sitting down, and this
-continues until all are either seated or give
-up. The hostess inquires of the first one
-who sat down where the egg is, and the
-answer is given in a whisper. If correct,
-it may be retained as a favor, if not, the egg
-must be drawn for.</p>
-
-<p>The hiding must be cleverly managed, so
-that while the egg is in sight, it is, however,
-in an unexpected spot, and where it cannot
-be handled. Then, too, there should be a
-bogus egg, made from tissue paper, closely
-resembling the confectioners egg. Many
-will mistake the egg.</p>
-
-
-<h4><i>Basket Eggs.</i></h4>
-
-<p>Put two baskets at the end of a room, each
-basket lined with wadding, and containing
-a dozen of eggs. Opposite these baskets
-on the other side of the room, have two
-empty ones lined in a similar manner. Two
-persons step forward, and at the ringing<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_149" id="Page_149">[149]</a></span>
-of a bell start to put the dozen of
-eggs, without cracking, into the empty
-basket, the one who succeeds first being
-victor.</p>
-
-
-<h4><i>The Game of Cluck.</i></h4>
-
-<p>Perhaps this is the jolliest game of all, and
-it is essentially for boys. Whoever gives
-the party should ask each of his friends to
-bring a chicken—a real live chicken—and if
-he is sure he would not recognize her when
-with a barnyard of others, he must tie a
-ribbon around her neck; he must also bring
-some hard-boiled eggs. The court used
-should be surrounded with a high netting,
-and the centre of the court marked with a
-cross.</p>
-
-<p>At a signal all the players, each with his
-fowl in his arms, must enter the court, and
-the host, going to the centre, now becomes
-auctioneer, and taking each offered fowl in
-turn, he loudly calls, “How many eggs am
-I bid for this chicken?”—two eggs, three, or
-whatever the number may be; no one must
-bid what he cannot pay, and the chicken is
-given to the boy offering the largest number,
-and the eggs are given to the previous owner
-of the chicken. He may put them wherever
-he pleases, only they must be somewhere
-within the netting.</p>
-
-<p>The sale being over, the “cluck” commences,
-for it is now each one’s aim to recover<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_150" id="Page_150">[150]</a></span>
-his chicken, which can only be done
-by finding the requisite number of eggs
-given for her. This is much easier said than
-done, for the boys will have hidden them
-in their pockets and other peculiar places.
-Meanwhile the chickens, running in every
-direction, are very apt to “cluck” loudly.</p>
-
-
-<h4><i>The Bird’s Nest.</i></h4>
-
-<p>Put a bird’s nest in a room; hunt for it as
-you “Hunt the slipper,” only, instead of saying
-“warm, warmer,” and so on, you cluck,
-cluck, cluck soft or loud as the party goes
-towards or from the nest. Only one person
-hunts at a time; everybody else clucks.</p>
-
-
-<h3>MAY-DAY FESTIVITY.</h3>
-
-<p>A May-Queen party is conducted in a
-variety of ways. Very simply you may
-say: “I am arranging for a Maying party;
-will you come? I shall be so glad to have
-you.” And without further form than the
-above invitation, only mentioning the time,
-place of meeting, luncheon, etc., everything
-for a day’s outdoor frolic is adjusted.</p>
-
-<p>But the correct fashion is vastly different.
-The invitation is of the same character as
-that given for any other party. The paper
-on which the invitation is engraved should<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_151" id="Page_151">[151]</a></span>
-be decorated. The decoration should be
-suggestive of the occasion—a trimmed May-pole,
-a throne for the Queen, or the Queen
-herself. Also, in the left-hand corner of the
-invitation, state the time when the tally-ho
-or carriages will start: they start from the
-house of the giver of the party. A good
-hour is ten o’clock, and the guests should
-be there ten minutes earlier.</p>
-
-<p>All Maying parties should be in charge of
-a chaperone, not only for Madame Grundy’s
-sake, who would do a great deal of talking,
-but because there is then some one older
-than yourself to consult with in case of
-need, as also some one to superintend those
-who would arrange the refreshment table.
-And as this party must</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
- <div class="poetry">
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 4em;">fall upon a day</span></div>
-<div class="verse">In the merry month of May.</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p class="unindent">everybody should wear holiday attire, as,</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
- <div class="poetry">
-<div class="verse">In the days when we went gypsying,</div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 2em;">A long time ago,</span></div>
-<div class="verse">The lads and lassies in their best</div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 2em;">Were dressed from top to toe.</span></div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p>In France this day was dedicated to the
-Virgin, and the most popular girl was called
-the “Lady of the May.” She was always
-crowned and adorned with flowers, and sat
-in state on a miniature throne made of flowers
-and branches, while her maids of honor<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_152" id="Page_152">[152]</a></span>
-begged for money from all who passed that
-way, to be spent on the religious feast held
-later.</p>
-
-<p>And our May-Queen can have her white
-frock too, as dainty and pretty as that of
-any Parisian maiden, if she will only wear
-warm flannels underneath it. Remember,
-that though May days are oftentimes warm
-and sunny even to uncomfortableness, their
-temperature cannot be depended upon.</p>
-
-<p>The May-Queen should be arranged for
-by the giver of the party, and also her six
-maids of honor. The Queen only wears
-white. The maids should wear frocks of
-different hue, and each represent a woodland
-flower or fern. For example, rose
-pink garlanded with pink rose-buds and
-roses; baby-blue and forget-me-nots; pale
-violet and violets; cowslip yellow and
-cowslips; Nile-green and maidenhair-fern,
-etc. The guests should wear flowers, and
-may or may not represent flowers, as they
-choose. Only they must wear gay attire.
-The boys might dress as gentlemen of the
-court, adopting the fashion of princes, lords,
-pages; and do not forget the fool, with his
-cap and bells, to amuse the Queen. Or all
-may wear grotesque apparel—it is go-as-you-please
-fashion—only if the grotesque is
-decided upon, all should adopt it; the Queen
-could personate Maid Marian, with gilt
-crown on her head, and one of the boys
-assume the character of Robin Hood.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_153" id="Page_153">[153]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>It would be a delight could all of these
-occasions have a May-pole, wound about
-with gay color, and long ribbon streamers
-firmly fastened at the top, which during the
-dances should be braided and unbraided
-again and again. It requires a tall straight
-tree, which should be firmly set in the
-ground, after the order of a flag-staff. The
-tallest May-pole ever set up in England
-was on the Strand, London, and was one
-hundred and thirty-four feet high. A pole
-twelve feet from the ground, however, will
-give just as much pleasure at the ordinary
-May-Queen party. Around it join hands,
-and sing any familiar English ballads, or
-songs from the opera of <i>Robin Hood</i>. It
-might be well to have a rehearsal of two or
-three songs beforehand, if you should be
-particular about your music at the time of
-the party. As for dances, they should be
-intermingled with the songs, waltzes, mazourkas,
-schottisches—any dance that you
-may know. Besides this, play one and
-another ring game, even if you are ever
-such big boys and girls. Always remember
-to pay homage to your Queen, being sure
-that she is leading.</p>
-
-<p>Whoever gives the party is of course
-responsible for refreshments, which are usually
-served picnic fashion on long tables
-in the woods, near to the place where the
-games are played. The provisions should
-be carried in a separate wagon, and be kept<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_154" id="Page_154">[154]</a></span>
-out of sight until it is time for lunch. The
-tables may be made very attractive by
-means of mosses, wild flowers, and grasses.
-One such table was of exquisite beauty, its
-only adornment being ferns. A border of
-them was pinned or basted all around the
-cloth, made higher at the corners. A large
-cut-glass bowl stood in the centre of the
-table, filled with maiden-hair, and two tall
-slender vases, one shorter than the other
-and filled with fine ferns and vines stood
-at irregular distances. When the refreshments
-are ready, the hostess must escort
-the Queen, and lead her to the position of
-honor. Next to follow should be the maids
-of honor, and the rest as they will. In
-every instance the Queen must be served
-first; indeed, she should be shown every
-consideration.</p>
-
-<p>The Queen’s throne should be erected
-near the May-pole. It is generally made in a
-sort of bower of bushes. Sometimes a large
-stone has to form the seat; cover this with
-flowers, so that your Queen is really sitting
-in a floral chair. Make her crown before
-leaving home; it can be cut out of pasteboard,
-and covered with gilt paper, and
-when you get to the fields twine flowers
-around it; or you may assimilate a crown
-with a wreath of wild flowers. In either
-case present it to her with great formality.
-Having led her near the throne, two of the
-boys should stand on either side of her, and<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_155" id="Page_155">[155]</a></span>
-suspend the crown between them, immediately
-above her head. While they are
-in this position, the hostess must step towards
-the Queen and say, “In the name of
-this court, we crown you Queen of May.”
-The boy standing at her right then leads
-her to the throne; when she is seated, the
-other boy presents her sceptre, and her entire
-court sing a chorus previously decided.</p>
-
-<p>The girls might all carry wooden hoops,
-and having wound flowers around them, take
-them to some poor child or sick mother or
-sister on their return home, and so have the
-pleasantest sort of an ending to the May-Queen
-party. In our joy and gladness
-under the cloudless sky, on a moss-covered
-walk, with violets and other wild flowers
-at our feet, we should not forget the many
-more to whom such a party would seem
-almost as a day in Paradise.</p>
-
-
-<h3>FOURTH OF JULY CELEBRATION.</h3>
-
-<p>Every boy, to properly celebrate Independence
-Day, should be well stocked with torpedoes,
-large and small, fire-crackers, cannon,
-and gunpowder. He should know that
-the starry flag flutters from his home, and
-that the red, white, and blue is a part of his
-attire.</p>
-
-<p>Early in the day a battalion of patriotic
-boys should march and countermarch up<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_156" id="Page_156">[156]</a></span>
-and down the principal streets, while all
-the while martial music is heard, and the
-shrill bugle call answers the exultant drum
-beat. A banner should lead such a procession,
-and the Star-spangled Banner should
-triumphantly wave throughout the entire
-line.</p>
-
-<p>Jolly fun may be had in the after part of
-the day, by setting an old barn on fire.</p>
-
-<p>Very often the boys’ fathers or uncles own
-a barn that they would rather have out of the
-way than not, and the Fourth of July is the
-most appropriate time in the entire year
-for a conflagration. When a barn is to be
-fired, be sure that it is carefully prepared beforehand,
-with a coating of tar and long
-wisps of tarred paper, and the boys cannot
-be too cautious not to get on fire themselves.</p>
-
-<p>Should boys not be successful in finding
-a barn to burn up, perhaps they could find
-a dead tree on a friend’s vacant lot. A tree
-would make a perfect tower of flame, and
-could be seen for miles around. It, too, will
-blaze all the fiercer if you apply a coating of
-pitch. Those engaged in this sport should
-wear their oldest clothing, in order not to
-make themselves a nuisance to their mothers
-and sisters or thoughtlessly waste their
-fathers’ money.</p>
-
-<p>Perhaps some of the boys would like a
-receipt for a powerful noise. It is simple
-enough—nothing but chlorate of potash and<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_157" id="Page_157">[157]</a></span>
-sulphur mixed; you should put several
-pieces of paper around it, though, and hammer
-it down as heavy as you can.</p>
-
-
-<h3>HALLOWE’EN GAMES AND TRICKS.</h3>
-
-
-<h4><i>The Nut Trick.</i></h4>
-
-<p>The shell must be prepared before the
-performance. Remove the kernel by boring
-a hole, or opening the nut at one end. Take
-out the contents by the aid of a lady’s hat-pin,
-and instead of the kernel, slip in a short
-piece of scarlet-colored baby-width ribbon.
-Then putty or wax the opening over, and
-color the putty or wax with a dye, crayon,
-or paint, the exact shade of the nut.
-The nut being thus prepared, you may now
-lay it on the table before your friends, and
-present a bunch of many-colored ribbons of
-the same width and length to them. Ask
-that some one select any piece he chooses;
-you must have a don’t-care air, as though it
-didn’t make any difference to you which
-piece was chosen. While, on the contrary,
-you care so much, that should a wrong selection
-be made you must at once tell an
-interesting story, which will help your
-friends to forget that the ribbon has already
-been selected, and you should make use of
-this opportunity to offer the ribbons over
-again. This time the selection will likely<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_158" id="Page_158">[158]</a></span>
-be correct. It would be wise to have the
-majority of pieces of ribbon the color of the
-piece in the nut, as that color would catch
-the eye first and stand a better chance of
-being taken.</p>
-
-<p>The right ribbon now being chosen, make
-a great point of looking at it; hold it up at
-arm’s length, so that all the audience may
-see it. Then ask the party who made the
-selection to put it back in the bunch with
-the others and mix them all up to please
-himself. When he has finished, face the
-bunch of ribbons, and loudly repeat, three
-times over, “Ribbon, go into the nut.”
-Then ask your friend to go forward and
-take the little hammer which he will find on
-the table and crack the nut open. When
-the nut is opened, sure enough inside is a
-scarlet ribbon.</p>
-
-
-<h4><i>Burn a Lady’s Handkerchief, but Return it Whole
-Again.</i></h4>
-
-<p>This requires a tin cylinder about eight
-inches in diameter and twelve inches in
-height. Into this put a perfectly fitting tin
-vessel, which is divided strictly in half.
-When this vessel is slid inside of the cylinder
-the whole does not look unlike a canister
-with a cover at each end. Having the
-handkerchief, hold it so that everybody sees
-it, and talk fluently, keeping the body constantly
-in motion; indeed, making so many<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_159" id="Page_159">[159]</a></span>
-motions that no one has noticed that you
-have packed this handkerchief in the upper
-division of the tin vessel, and that, as you
-are walking towards the candle, you have
-turned the cylinder upside down, and that
-also the handkerchief you are now holding
-is really not a handkerchief at all, but a thin
-piece of muslin you have prepared to simulate
-a handkerchief. Pour on it a few drops
-of alcohol, which will help it to burn even
-more rapidly; tear it, if you think it more
-effective. When the owner thinks that her
-handkerchief is forever destroyed, cleverly
-manage to invert the cylinder, take out the
-handkerchief, shake it well, holding it so
-that all the audience sees that it is not even
-scorched, and then return it to the lady.</p>
-
-
-<h4><i>The Bowl Trick.</i></h4>
-
-<p>Fill a tiny tumbler with water and cover
-it with a bowl. Then state you will drink
-the water in the tumbler underneath without
-moving the bowl.</p>
-
-<p>Of course the company do not believe you,
-and you ask all to turn their backs, or close
-their eyes, if they will promise not to look,
-until one of the party counts ten. Immediately
-they have turned their backs, or closed
-their eyes, you pick up another glass of
-water and hastily swallow a few mouthfuls.
-They hear the sound, but no one can look<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_160" id="Page_160">[160]</a></span>
-until ten is counted. By that time the glass
-from which you drank is hidden again, and
-the company catch you wiping your moist
-lips. Undoubtedly one of the number will
-be so suspicious that he will lift the bowl to
-see, and then is your opportunity, for you
-at once pick up the glass and drink, saying,
-as you put it down, “<i>I</i> didn’t touch the
-bowl.”</p>
-
-
-<h4><i>An Impossible Jump.</i></h4>
-
-<p>Take a gentleman’s hat, and, turning it
-around so that every one sees it, ask your
-friends whether, if you put it on the floor,
-they could jump over it. Of course they
-will answer, “Yes.” Then stand it close
-to the wall, and tell them not to all try at
-once, but take their turn to jump.</p>
-
-
-<h4><i>Turn a Goblet Upside Down Without Spilling the
-Water.</i></h4>
-
-<p>Fill a glass goblet so as not to allow any
-water to drop over the edge. Cover the top
-with a piece of paper; on the paper put your
-hand, and turn the goblet rapidly over; then
-remove the hand. The upward pressure of
-the air will prevent the water from spilling.</p>
-
-
-<h4><i>The Hat Omelet.</i></h4>
-
-<p>Everybody who enjoys tricks is no doubt
-familiar with this. It is very easy to do.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_161" id="Page_161">[161]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>First state that you are about to make an
-omelet. Then break three eggs into the
-hat, and appear to add a little milk and
-flour, after which shake all together and hold
-the hat over a lighted lamp, candle, or gas.
-After a few moments lift out the hot flaky
-omelet and pass it to your friends; otherwise
-they will think they have been deceived.</p>
-
-<p>The secret is, the omelet was cooked on
-the range, and was in the hat when you
-commenced to exhibit the trick, the hat being
-held too high for the audience to see
-inside. The eggs were not full, only the
-shells, the contents having been previously
-drawn through a tiny aperture at one end.
-Laugh and talk a great deal and it will not
-be noticed that you do not put in the cornstarch
-and milk; also let a real egg drop,
-as if by accident, on a plate standing on the
-table before you, or let a tablespoon or
-knife fall. This will attract all eyes and
-further prevent discovery. As in other
-tricks, you should practise it before showing
-it to your friends.</p>
-
-
-<h4><i>The Wonderful Carafe.</i></h4>
-
-<p>An empty carafe is brought by your confederate.
-This you should rinse and drain
-in the presence of your audience, in order to
-satisfy them that there is really no mistake,
-that the carafe is positively empty. After it<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_162" id="Page_162">[162]</a></span>
-has well drained, dry it, wiping it around
-with the greatest care. In the towel which
-your confederate brought you he also
-brought a bladder, in which was a weak
-preparation made up of spirits of wine,
-sugar, and water. In this way the carafe is
-filled without the audience detecting. The
-glasses are already in position, and in each
-one has been put a drop or two of flavoring
-extract, such as pineapple, lemonade,
-orange, peppermint. The magician then
-inquires if any one would like a glass of
-lemonade, and being answered in the affirmative,
-he pours the same from the carafe
-by filling the glass in which the drops of
-lemonade extract have been placed. In like
-manner he will give a glass of orangeade, or
-whatever drink corresponds to the extract in
-the glasses.</p>
-
-
-<h4><i>The Vanishing Ten-cent Piece.</i></h4>
-
-<p>Put this coin in the palm of your hand and
-take pains to let everybody see it. Then
-state that if any one of the audience will
-call out, “Vanish,” it will disappear.</p>
-
-<p>The reason why is because the nail of
-your middle finger is covered with white
-wax, and closing the hand forcibly the coin
-instantly fastens itself to it. You must then
-open the hand wide and show that the ten-cent
-piece has really gone.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_163" id="Page_163">[163]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>The tricks now being over, the audience
-rose to congratulate their young entertainers
-and also to exchange a few words with one
-another, and in so doing many of them did
-not discover that refreshments were about
-to be served until they were asked to take
-seats at the small tables that had most mysteriously
-appeared.</p>
-
-<p>The refreshments were very simple, being
-only vanilla and strawberry rolled wafers
-and delicious tea. The tea was, of course,
-poured into the prettiest of Japanese cups,
-and carried on richly decorated trays, on
-which were laid divers colored Japanese
-napkins, while the graceful, cordial, Japanese-robed
-young girls added an indescribable
-charm.</p>
-
-<p>And thus closed this dainty, interesting
-entertainment amid the pleasant chatter of
-the happily seated, congenial company.</p>
-
-
-<h4><i>Blindfolded Prophecy.</i></h4>
-
-<p>Should you be in the country on All Hallowe’en,
-one of the party should be blindfolded
-and sent into the kitchen garden, of
-course using every security against accident.
-The person sent must pull up a vegetable,
-and without shaking off the dirt from the
-roots, bring it back with him. Should it
-have a great quantity of mould hanging to
-its roots, that is a sure sign whoever has it<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_164" id="Page_164">[164]</a></span>
-will make a wealthy marriage. If, on the
-contrary, there is but little mould, he will
-make a poor marriage. If the vegetable is
-tall and well shapen, this proves he will
-marry a tall, beautiful girl. If, however, the
-vegetable is short and crooked, he will
-marry a short and homely girl. If a vegetable
-is brought in without any roots, the
-person bringing it will be a bachelor or old
-maid.</p>
-
-<p>Care should be taken in the playing of
-this game to prevent the house and clothing
-from getting dirty; therefore be watchful
-and hold the vegetable you bring at arm’s
-length.</p>
-
-<p>The best place to decide the vegetable’s
-shape, mould, etc., would be in the kitchen,
-or on the piazza. If the latter is enclosed,
-lamps could be carried out there, if not,
-possibly the light from the windows and
-hall way would be sufficient; or try a lantern.</p>
-
-
-<h4><i>The Divining Mirror.</i></h4>
-
-<p>Hold an unpeeled apple in the right hand
-and a lighted candle in the left, while you
-stand in an empty, unlighted room before a
-mirror.</p>
-
-<p>Then you must eat the apple and watch
-sharp, for you are to see your future husband’s
-or wife’s face in the mirror. The
-face will appear over your left shoulder.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_165" id="Page_165">[165]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>This game is also part trick, as fairy folk
-are apt to be famous tricksters and therefore
-not very trustworthy, especially if it is after
-dark.</p>
-
-<p>One of the boys will likely have stolen
-back of you, disguised with a false face.
-He has reached you on his hands and
-knees, and when all of a sudden he rises,
-you will be so startled that it will be an
-easy matter for him to escape without detection.
-Or a girl could do the same as a
-boy.</p>
-
-<p>In order to more fully cover one’s tracks,
-it would be well for the tricking player to
-blow out the candle as he appears over the
-shoulder. This, too, will partly conceal the
-features, for puckered lips and eyes fixed
-steadily on the flame will not look natural.</p>
-
-
-<h4><i>The Tumbler Test.</i></h4>
-
-<p>Fill three tumblers with water. One must
-hold blue water, such as the laundress uses
-for clothes, another must hold soapy water,
-and another clear water, while still another
-must be empty. These tumblers should stand
-on a table directly before the individual who
-is to be blindfolded. After he is blindfolded,
-change the position of the glasses, placing one
-where the other one stood, and so on. Then
-instruct the party to dip his fingers into one
-of the tumblers. Having felt around, his<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_166" id="Page_166">[166]</a></span>
-fingers are dipped into the clear water, and
-thus he learns that he is to marry a beautiful
-rich girl. Had he dipped into the soapy
-water, it would have meant that he would
-marry a poor widow; if in the blue water,
-he would be a noted author; if in the empty
-glass, he would die a bachelor. This game
-is played in the same way with the girls,
-only, of course, changing the sex, as,
-for example, marrying a rich, handsome
-man.</p>
-
-
-<h4><i>The Penknife Trick.</i></h4>
-
-<p>Before leaving the room state that while
-you are away any one may place a pen-knife
-where he may please, and without any
-word being spoken you will find it.</p>
-
-<p>Of course you have a confederate, who
-remains behind and notices where the knife
-has been put.</p>
-
-<p>When you enter, walk towards one of the
-corners in the room; if your confederate is
-looking up, you will know you are in the
-right corner, but if he is looking down you
-must try another. If you notice he is not
-looking up when you have tried all the
-corners, then walk towards the centre of the
-room, and between the corners; at one of
-these points he will raise his eyes. In this
-way, you will get the location. You must
-then diligently search, and when your confederate<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_167" id="Page_167">[167]</a></span>
-lets something drop on the floor you
-will know you are <i>very close</i> to the penknife.
-Sometimes it is in a person’s pocket; for that
-reason watch just the moment when your
-friend has given you the clue. Possibly your
-hand may be on some one’s shoulder; this
-would indicate to search that person.</p>
-
-
-<h4><i>Ball Trick.</i></h4>
-
-<p>A girl must take a ball of rose-colored
-worsted and toss it out in the garden as far
-as she can. She must be careful, however,
-not to lose hold of the end of the worsted.
-Then she should walk up and down the
-parlor or piazza, winding the worsted up;
-as she walks she sings,</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
- <div class="poetry">
-<div class="verse">Who holds my thread? Who holds my clue?</div>
-<div class="verse">For he loves me and I him too.</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p>All of a sudden, if the game is properly
-played, the worsted will refuse to come.
-If the worsted breaks in her exertion to
-wind it, she will never marry; but she
-should keep firm hold and wind slowly, and
-in time will thus surely reach the person who
-has caught the other end. This individual
-is to be her future husband. Generally the
-“husband” part is a trick, for some one
-will hold the worsted that she would never
-marry; for example, a boy many years her<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_168" id="Page_168">[168]</a></span>
-junior, or her old grandfather, or brother.
-This game being played for the same reason
-as many another, “only for fun.”</p>
-
-
-<h4><i>The Fortune Apple.</i></h4>
-
-<p>On several pieces of wood, thin as paper,
-write, in ink or paint, girls’ names. Slip
-each name into an apple. This set will do
-for the boys; make similar ones for the
-girls. Fill three portable tubs with water,
-and set an even number of apples floating
-in each tub. Fasten the arms of three boys
-securely back, and cover them entirely with
-water-proof cloaks. Lead each boy to a
-tub and ask him to repeat distinctly,</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
- <div class="poetry">
-<div class="verse">Witches and wizards and birds of the air,</div>
-<div class="verse">Goblins and brownies, all lend me your care,</div>
-<div class="verse">Now to choose wisely for once and for all,</div>
-<div class="verse">And ever your names in praise loudly I’ll call.</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p>Then each boy must put his head down
-and try to catch in his teeth an apple. In
-it he’ll find the name of one of the girls
-present, and she will be his fate. If the
-name is a strange one, there will even then
-be teasing enough for him. After the boys
-have all tried the game, then it is time for
-the girls.</p>
-
-<p>Lead a girl up to a tub and blindfold her;
-lead her around while she repeats the rhyme,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_169" id="Page_169">[169]</a></span>
-and with the words “loudly I call,” she
-must bend down and try to catch in one
-hand an apple or, if she prefers, she may
-try to spear an apple with a fork. If the
-latter way, only one drop of the fork will
-be allowed. If it sticks far enough in an
-apple not to fall altogether, her fate is sure.</p>
-
-
-<h4><i>The Money-Maker.</i></h4>
-
-<p>This is one of the large number of trick
-games, and like all the others it is very easy
-when you know how. It is played by two
-people, both of whom understand the trick,
-and it should be the effort of the company
-to discover as soon as is possible what that
-trick is. When the trick is discovered the
-game is simple. To prove that you know
-it, you should take the place of one of the
-players. If the game then goes on satisfactorily
-you are out, but the others remain
-in until they either give up or learn the
-secret also.</p>
-
-<p>The money-maker leaves the room and
-on his return his confederate will ask him
-questions. His answer will prove to the
-company that he understands which business,
-trade or profession they have decided
-he must enter in order to make money.</p>
-
-<p>The secret is easy to discover if you are
-on the alert; it is the first business named
-after a question which has commenced with<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_170" id="Page_170">[170]</a></span>
-the letter O or which contains the exclamation
-oh! Example:</p>
-
-<p>The company have decided that the
-one who has left the room must be a publisher.</p>
-
-<p>“Will you be an organ grinder?”</p>
-
-<p>“No, I thank you.”</p>
-
-<p>“Will you be a physician?”</p>
-
-<p>“I would not like night work.”</p>
-
-<p>“How would you like farming?”</p>
-
-<p>“Not at all.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, I know! you’d like to be a tailor.”</p>
-
-<p>“But I know I wouldn’t.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, will you be a publisher?”</p>
-
-<p>“Just the thing.”</p>
-
-
-<h3>CHRISTMAS JOLLITY.</h3>
-
-
-<h4><i>The Yule Log.</i></h4>
-
-<p>Young people should costume themselves
-in grotesque apparel. They may be Twelfth
-Night characters, Viola, Olivia, Sir Andrew
-Aguecheek, Sir Toby, Sebastian, sea-captains,
-lords, priests, officers, musicians, etc.,
-or assume any disguise indicative of
-Christmas.</p>
-
-<p>Early in the evening, several of the company
-should disappear, but with great
-hilarity return, drawing in the Yule log.
-This is nothing more or less than a rugged
-log. Knotted at each end with long strong<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_171" id="Page_171">[171]</a></span>
-ropes, by which it is pulled. As the young
-people draw it they should sing,</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
- <div class="poetry">
-<div class="verse">Welcome be ye that are here,</div>
-<div class="verse">Welcome all and make good cheer;</div>
-<div class="verse">Welcome all another year,</div>
-<div class="verse">Welcome Yule.</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p>This verse should be sung over and over
-until the Yule log lies on the hearthstone.</p>
-
-
-<h4><i>Christmas Pie.</i></h4>
-
-<p>Two people, each wearing interesting costume,
-and with masked faces, walk in, rolling
-before them on a wheelbarrow an enormous
-pie. It is made after the fashion of a
-Jack Horner pie, being in a deep dish covered
-with diamond-dusted white paper, with
-tiny ribbons exposed.</p>
-
-<p>The first performance is to roll the pie all
-around the room, and then to the centre,
-where they will sing,</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
- <div class="poetry">
-<div class="verse">Who’ll have a bird from this Christmas pie?</div>
-<div class="verse">Whoever guesses me may answer I.</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p>For a few minutes all the company keep
-quite still, then the guessing commences;
-when the correct names are mentioned, the
-couple unmask, and at once the correct
-guesser draws a ribbon. He will find on
-the end of it a candy bird,—perhaps a robin<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_172" id="Page_172">[172]</a></span>
-redbreast made of candy and stuffed with
-sugarplums. As soon as the bird is drawn,
-one of the parties who has rolled in the
-wheelbarrow imitates a bird-song on a harmonica.
-This is easily effected without discovery,
-as everybody’s attention is directed
-to what has been drawn.</p>
-
-
-<h4><i>Tableaux Vivants.</i></h4>
-
-<p>A catchy tableau series would be Mother
-Goose and her children celebrating Christmas.</p>
-
-<p><i>Tableau First.</i>—Mother Goose in her tall,
-cone-shaped hat, riding on an enormous
-goose. Copy her and all the other costumes
-from Mother Goose’s book.</p>
-
-<p><i>Tableau Second.</i>—Her children faithfully
-charactered. Little Jack Horner should be
-sitting in a corner, eating his Christmas pie.
-The King in his parlor should be dressed to
-represent a king. Simple Simon should
-meet a pieman going to the fair, etc.</p>
-
-<p><i>Tableau Third.</i>—A sleeping apartment,
-Mother Goose and her family in bed.
-Great prominence must be shown to Mother
-Goose, whose bed is in front, and near
-her some of her more notable children.
-This scene may be readily arranged by putting
-small cots on the stage; the children
-can lie down dressed, the coverlets hiding
-their clothing. Near each bed put that which<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_173" id="Page_173">[173]</a></span>
-would indicate their character, as example,
-the big pie for the pieman.</p>
-
-<p><i>Tableau Fourth.</i>—Santa Claus at home
-about time to start. Interior of a room,
-simply packed with all sorts of hobby-horses,
-dolls—big and little, dressed and
-undressed—musical birds, woolly sheep,
-sleighs, drums, tenpins, everything in the
-toy line that could be imagined or described;
-while in a large easy-chair before the lighted
-grate-fire sits old Santa himself, as gray-bearded,
-fat, and jolly as ever.</p>
-
-<p><i>Tableau Fifth.</i>—Little Bo-Peep fell fast
-asleep and dreamed—</p>
-
-<p>Show Santa Claus again, this time out-of-doors,
-on his sled drawn by swift reindeer;
-but the reindeer have stopped, for Bo-Peep
-stands before them, her shepherd’s crook
-leaning over her shoulder, her sheep all
-around, and they, as also Bo-Peep, gazing
-at the presents—sled, Santa Claus’s pack, at
-hat, beard, miniature tree, full stockings, and
-all. Bo-Peep wears a regular shepherdess
-costume, the sheep are toy sheep on wheels.
-The bells should jingle loudly until Bo-Peep
-appears.</p>
-
-<p><i>Tableau Sixth.</i>—The Christmas tree.</p>
-
-<p>A large tree filled with toys; leaning
-against it is a ladder, which Mother Goose
-climbs, and then unfastens the various gifts.
-Her children are all grouped around the
-bottom, and impatiently await the arrival
-of their presents.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_174" id="Page_174">[174]</a></span></p>
-
-<p><i>Tableau Seventh.</i>—The Christmas dance.</p>
-
-<p>Mother Goose and her children dance
-around the Christmas tree. Waltz music is
-played; they dance once around, when the
-curtain is drawn.</p>
-
-<p><i>Tableau Eighth.</i>—Mother Goose’s children
-eating their Christmas supper. A long table
-covered with a white cloth, and decorated
-with lighted candelabra, flowers, bonbons,
-fancy cakes, china, silver, and cut glass.
-All the children are seated around, Mother
-Goose at the head, and to her right her son
-Jack, then Jack’s wife, then a boy, then a girl,
-and so on around. Each child is in the act of
-eating, drinking, lifting a cup, a candy, or
-indicating some natural movement at a supper
-table; their heads should be turned as
-though they were in conversation.</p>
-
-<p><i>Tableau Ninth.</i>—Mother Goose and her
-family in a well-arranged group now stand
-and sing a jolly good-night song. This
-song may be acted by those on the stage,
-but the singing is done by an unseen chorus.</p>
-
-<p>Follow this with two tableaux, opposite
-in meaning.</p>
-
-<p><i>Tableau One.</i>—The empty stocking. A
-poverty-stricken looking room—bare floor,
-a hard-wood chair and table (on the table
-stand a few pieces of cheap china), a window
-with a broken pane, in which a bunch
-of paper or canton matting is stuffed to keep
-out the snow; a small kerosene lamp, the
-light from which comes dimly. A poorly<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_175" id="Page_175">[175]</a></span>
-clad and as poorly fed appearing little girl;
-one of her thin hands rests on the table,
-while the other holds an empty stocking, on
-which the child sadly gazes.</p>
-
-<p><i>Tableau Two.</i>—Bless you honey-bugs!
-Yo’ feels gay.</p>
-
-<p>This also is a plainly furnished room, but
-it is trimmed with Christmas greens, a large
-star and tree being particularly conspicuous.
-There are several colored children running
-around, some dancing, with toys in one
-hand and a full stocking in the other, others
-taking things off a little tree, others again
-eating sugarplums, or striding across the
-bare floor in eager pursuit of a dropped
-cornucopia or cinnamon cake. Their dusky-faced
-mammies, meanwhile, laugh at them
-through the half-open doorway.</p>
-
-<p>And thus tableau might be described after
-tableau. But a few hints may be helpful.</p>
-
-<p>Carefully study scenic effect. “How
-beautiful!” is so often the exclamation regarding
-a well-dressed stage, even before
-any person appears or one word is spoken.
-Remember to use harmonizing colors, and
-to throw on different-colored lights. The
-latter may cost a little money, but it will
-repay a hundredfold. A white light changing
-to pink, again to yellow, rose or green,
-as the scenery may require. In every way
-catch the eye.</p>
-
-<p>Remember, the tableau is but for a minute;
-let that minute be perfection.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_176" id="Page_176">[176]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Sometimes, for example, let a fountain
-play in the large grounds or garden. This
-can be easily arranged by the proper management
-of a hose. You can surely place
-a piece of oilcloth under the moss over
-which the water flows, and have sponges
-conveniently near.</p>
-
-<p>Be careful to select pretty and noticeable
-toilettes. If you are taking the character
-of a queen at a drawing-room, dress as the
-queen, not as her maid; but should you be
-a maid, wear jaunty, gay attire, and do not
-costume yourself in a severely cut brown-cloth
-tailor suit.</p>
-
-<p>Use all the accessories possible—music,
-song, recitation, as either may be given off
-the stage as an accompaniment to a tableau.
-Be sure there is no catch in the stage curtain,
-and that the prompter understands all
-his duties. Every one should be punctual
-at rehearsals; and the night of the entertainment
-all the cast should be ready thirty
-minutes ahead of time, as that will prevent
-worry and nervousness. And if everybody
-is calm, and understands his part, there is
-no question as to success.</p>
-
-<p>“The Birds’ Christmas Carol” would make
-a pleasing tableau.</p>
-
-
-<h4><i>The Annunciation.</i></h4>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
- <div class="poetry">
-<div class="verse">The angel greets the Virgin mild;</div>
-<div class="verse">Hail, Mary, full of grace! thy child</div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 2em;">The Son of God shall be.</span></div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_177" id="Page_177">[177]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>This tableau represents an interior: the
-room has a deep frieze drapery over the
-mantel, before which Mary kneels on a low
-cushion; to her left, and considerably before
-her, is a large jardinière filled with ascension
-lilies; and directly before her is a
-table, on which is a roll of parchment partly
-unfastened. By the table stands the angel
-with hands outstretched towards her.</p>
-
-<p><i>Tableau Second.</i>—The shepherds see the
-angels bright.</p>
-
-<p>Scene out of doors, with shepherds in their
-usual costume, each shepherd holding a
-crook, while back of them, huddled close together,
-stand the herds of sheep. Before the
-shepherds, and a trifle to their right, is the
-angel, with outstretched hands, indicating
-the way.</p>
-
-
-<h3>BIRTHDAY IDEAS.</h3>
-
-
-<h4><i>A Birthday Picnic.</i></h4>
-
-<p>A pleasant number is twenty. Ten girls
-and ten boys.</p>
-
-<p>Be driven to the destination in large market
-or hay wagons made festive with flags.
-Each girl should bring luncheon enough for
-herself and one of the boys. And the boys
-should be responsible for the outfit for games,
-such as ropes, archery, grace hoops, tennis
-net, balls and racquets.</p>
-
-<p>If you are not going to a regular picnic<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_178" id="Page_178">[178]</a></span>
-ground, you will require tables. Therefore
-borrow five cutting tables from your mothers
-and these can be folded and put in the bottom
-of the wagon, and four persons can
-easily sit at each. The boys can arrange
-the seats, which might be the wagon seats
-built to the requisite height by supporting
-each end on a pile of stones, or convenient
-rocks may be chosen, or take the rails from
-the post-and-rail fence adjoining. Only in
-that case, remember to put them back again.</p>
-
-<p>Use plated spoons, forks, etc., so as to save
-worry, and Japanese napkins, which may
-do double duty, as they make pretty tablecloths,
-and there is no fuss about having to
-carry them home. If you take sandwiches,
-wrap them neatly in white tissue or waxed
-paper. Use thin wooden platters instead
-of china, and no one will be afraid of chipping
-them; besides they are so light, and
-after luncheon they, as also the napkins and
-tablecloths, may be burned up, if you are
-careful not to set the woods on fire.</p>
-
-<p>You might find it pleasant to put the
-lunches, wraps, etc., in one wagon, and have
-all the picnickers in the other. Trusty drivers
-for both wagons will be necessary.</p>
-
-<p>After the lunch is over and cleared away,
-games and races will be the order of the
-day.</p>
-
-<p>But don’t forget you must be home by
-sundown. When all have bundled into the
-wagons to return, let song follow song.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_179" id="Page_179">[179]</a></span>
-One of the big boys might act as director
-of the chorus.</p>
-
-
-<h4><i>A Birthday Floral Ball.</i></h4>
-
-<p>The entire house, including the halls,
-should be trimmed with asparagus and Japanese
-lanterns. From the drawing-room
-ceilings suspend inverted cones of asparagus,
-and as pendants from these fasten
-Japanese lanterns. String evergreens around
-the stair banisters and halls. Indeed, make
-of your house, including the dining-room, a
-sort of fairy bower, on which the Japanese
-lanterns at happy intervals, cast light and
-color.</p>
-
-<p>The orchestra should be hidden in a tiny
-forest, and their music should be jolly, light
-and pretty. Among the numbers have the
-“Dance of the Flowers,” by Tschaikowsky.
-Follow this with several flower dances.
-Example, “The Sweet Peas Waltz.” The
-girls’ costume should be white tarletan,
-effectively trimmed with sweet peas. The
-boys should have sweet pea boutonnières.</p>
-
-<p>The Pansy Cotillion. For this dance wear
-crêpe lisse, tarletan,—indeed any flimsy
-material you choose, but it must be of one
-of the pansy colors; and as the pansy has
-so many shades of brown, yellow, purple,
-deep rose, etc., the variety which would
-mingle, as the several figures are given,
-would result in a kaleidoscopic effect of
-color and beauty.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_180" id="Page_180">[180]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Perhaps a few solo dances could be arranged.
-If so have a Cowslip dance, when
-the little maiden should be frocked in pale
-yellow, or the Heliotrope, with a frock of
-lilacs. Another might dance the Forget-me-not,
-and wear a gown of blue.</p>
-
-<p>While still another dance might be termed
-the Water-Lily, which would necessitate a
-frock of white and gold, as the blue and
-pink water-lilies are comparatively rare.
-Whichever flower is represented should be
-worn, either on the hair or dress.</p>
-
-<p>Then should come the Wild Flower Minuet
-when daisies, buttercups, clover, chicory,
-violets, honeysuckle, and other wild flowers
-could vie with each other in the stately
-graceful movements. Follow the minuet
-with the Butterfly promenade and dance.
-In this a large number should engage, as it
-is quite proper there should be butterflies
-flitting from flower to flower. Any dance
-may be appropriated to the butterflies, but
-they should select their own partners from
-any of the flowers they please. The butterflies
-will wear almost as many colors as
-the pansies, and silver, gold or other butterflies
-should be fastened on the shoulders or
-on other parts of their costume.</p>
-
-
-<h4><i>A Birthday Matinée.</i></h4>
-
-<p>The afternoon may be made perfectly fascinating
-by giving a birthday matinée. A<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_181" id="Page_181">[181]</a></span>
-young lady should costume herself as Little
-Buttercup of <i>Pinafore</i> fame. Wear a large
-hat, grotesquely ornamented, short parti-colored
-skirts, and above all things carry a
-well-filled market basket. She should sing
-Little Buttercup’s song, and also act and
-dance. As the whole thing is a burlesque,
-it need not be correctly done, only be sure
-to get some graceful girl to take the part,
-and one who will bring out the laughter by
-her bits of humor here and there. If the
-party is for children, the basket should contain
-inexpensive toys, and when singing,
-“I’ve ribbons and laces, to set off your
-faces,” waltz up to a group of children and
-distribute the toys. Continue this when
-singing the chorus, as also during the playing
-of the interludes, until each child has a
-gift. Should the party be for older people,
-instead of toys give suggestive presents.
-Example, a whip to a horsewoman, or a tiny
-pair of oars to a rower. The music is from
-the opera <i>Pinafore</i> and can be purchased or
-mailed from almost any bookstore. When
-people are through laughing over this part of
-the programme, tell them that confectioners’
-buttercups are hidden in the drawing-room,
-library and hall; that they are in three colors,—violet,
-white, and pink,—and that all
-of the guests are expected to hunt for them;
-that a bell will be rung as a signal to commence
-the hunt, and in like manner to close
-it; that five minutes time will be allowed.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_182" id="Page_182">[182]</a></span>
-Three prizes will be awarded; the first to
-be given to the finder of the most pink
-buttercups, the second to the one finding the
-greatest number of buttercups adding all the
-colors together, the third to the one finding
-the fewest. Should any one be so unfortunate
-as not to find any, his penalty will be to
-pay a forfeit. If this individual is a musician,
-his forfeit should be a song or an instrumental
-solo, or should he be a recitationist, he
-must read or recite, if neither of these, require
-him to put himself through a key-hole. This
-is done by writing the word “himself” on
-a small piece of paper, rolling it over until
-still smaller and slipping it through the key-hole.
-You will require two pounds of buttercups,
-dividing that amount in the colors mentioned.
-Roll each candy separately in tissue
-paper, corresponding in color, and hide with
-care. If for a children’s party, place <i>bric-à-brac</i>
-and all breakable articles beyond their
-reach, and direct the little people so as to
-avoid accidents.</p>
-
-
-<h3>BIRTHDAY TABLEAUX.</h3>
-
-
-<h4><i>Tulips.</i></h4>
-
-<p>Group the children so that they look
-pretty. They could wear green clothes to
-represent stalk and leaves, and have large,
-colored-paper petals fastened to their waists,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_183" id="Page_183">[183]</a></span>
-and with wire shaped and bent upward they
-would look like veritable tulips. Then a
-few others could, in a previous tableau, show
-the act of planting tulip bulbs and watering
-some growing tulips.</p>
-
-
-<h4><i>The Cotillon.</i></h4>
-
-<p>Eight girls and boys should be dressed in
-Knickerbocker attire, and stand as if ready
-for the first figure of the Cotillon.</p>
-
-<p>This tableau should be set in a drawing-room.</p>
-
-
-<h4><i>Flitting Fairies and Butterflies.</i></h4>
-
-<p>Gay music is heard and in come the fairies
-dancing, followed by a train of dancing
-butterflies, costumed in red, yellow, and
-white.</p>
-
-<p>The wings may be of tinted crêpe paper
-or tarletan held in place by stiff wire.</p>
-
-<p>The fairies should wear short fluffy gowns
-of airy gossamer, heavily covered with
-spangles and diamond dust. With each
-movement they must glimmer and glisten.</p>
-
-<p>The scene may be set in any pretty drawing
-room, but more properly with a background
-of palms and potted plants.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-<div class="chapter"></div>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_184" id="Page_184">[184]</a></span></p>
-
-
-
-
-<h2>METHODS OF CHOOSING PARTNERS.</h2>
-
-
-<p>Pass baskets of flowers to the ladies.
-Enough bunches have been prepared and
-laid in the baskets for each one of the ladies.
-On a tray are bunches of leaves and vines;
-pass these to the men.</p>
-
-<p>The leaves will match the flowers, as a
-bunch of pansies will have a corresponding
-bunch of pansy leaves, a bunch of lilies of
-the valley its bunch of lily leaves, etc., etc.
-Where roses are used, a bud matching the
-rose may be put with the leaves, or better,
-the ribbon tying a bunch of rose leaves,
-might match the rose it is supposed to go
-with. Of course, the pansy-leaf man will
-hunt out the lady with pansies; and the
-lily-leaf man, the maid with the lilies.</p>
-
-<p>Take bristol-board and cut it in small
-pieces, the size and shape of large rose
-petals. Tint these pink with a bit of yellow
-on the narrow end, where the petal is supposed
-to have left the rose. Write in gilt
-paint on each of them a word, any noun,
-verb, adjective, etc. Then bend and twist
-in the fingers until they look like veritable
-Katherine Mermet or La France petals.
-Have enough so that each girl invited may
-have one.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_185" id="Page_185">[185]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Take more bristol-board and make deep
-red petals; on these write with gilt paint a
-part of speech, noun, verb, adverb, etc.
-Make enough to supply each man.</p>
-
-<p>These at the time of entertainment should
-be passed just before you wish the partners
-chosen. Then the man whose petal reads
-<i>adverb</i> will seek among the pink-petaled
-girls until he finds an adverb.</p>
-
-<p>Of course, in a large company there will
-be several nouns and several adverbs.
-But the noun man will of course offer his
-arm to the first pink noun he finds. Be sure
-to have the petals match. If you must have
-five red petals reading <i>verb</i>, be sure to have an
-equal number of pink verb petals, e. g. pink
-petals reading <i>play</i>, <i>dance</i>, <i>sing</i>, <i>run</i>, <i>talk</i>.</p>
-
-<p>Have two baskets, one knotted with pink
-ribbon and the other with red. These
-baskets should each contain paper hearts,
-about three inches long, and wide in proportion.
-The hearts may be suspended by
-means of narrow pink satin ribbons, and
-each heart is slightly decorated with water-color
-paints. In the same basket no two
-hearts are alike, but their duplicates are
-found in the other basket. When the duplicates
-are found, partners are decided.</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p>Have two bags of walnuts. One is to be
-passed to the girls, the other to the boys.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_186" id="Page_186">[186]</a></span>
-To each walnut a tiny slip of paper has been
-glued, on which half of a familiar quotation
-is written. One half of the quotations are
-in the girls’ bag, the other half in the boys.’
-The girls’ bag is passed first. When the
-boy is able to complete his quotation, he
-discovers his partner.</p>
-
-<hr class="tb" />
-
-<p>When an equal number of boys and girls
-are present, for example, ten each, mark ten
-slips of paper according to the numerals, 1,
-2, and so on. Then throw them into a bag
-and jostle them together. After which pass
-to the girls. They should each draw one
-paper.</p>
-
-<p>When the girls have drawn, offer slips
-of paper in the same manner to the boys,
-who will draw likewise. Corresponding
-numbers are partners.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-<div class="chapter"></div>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_187" id="Page_187">[187]</a></span></p>
-
-
-
-
-<h2>TANGLES AND FORFEITS.</h2>
-
-
-<h3>TANGLES.</h3>
-
-
-<h4>Charades.</h4>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
- <div class="poetry">
-<div class="verse">1. When I go gunning</div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">I’m very bright.</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">And it’s my delight</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">To keep good sight.</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">When I go fishing</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">I like to hook,</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">And when I sift</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">A pretty book,</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">I help our seamstress and our cook,</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">Then all around the room I look</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">And think of all I’ve undertook.</span></div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-
-<h4>Second.</h4>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
- <div class="poetry">
-<div class="verse">I’m beating America,</div>
-<div class="verse">So folks say,</div>
-<div class="verse">As through the air</div>
-<div class="verse">My horses tear,</div>
-<div class="verse">And snap, snap, snap,</div>
-<div class="verse">I cannot hold them back.</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_188" id="Page_188">[188]</a></span></p>
-
-
-<h4>Whole.</h4>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
- <div class="poetry">
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1em;">Black and sweeping,</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1em;">Swimming and weeping,</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1em;">So wet, so tender,</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1em;">Sometimes the scorning of’t</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1em;">Others the sorrow of’t,</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1em;">Lifting so joyfully,</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1em;">Drooping so coyly.</span></div>
- </div>
- <div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse">2. My first shouts freely in,</div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">My second’s a pretty letter,</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">My third a valiant instrument.</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">But my fourth, alas,</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">Just has to pass,</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">As wound and scar,</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">From beauty’s law it doth debar,</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">For it doth seal and hurt and mar.</span></div>
- </div>
- <div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse">3. My first comes over the sea,</div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">And delicious it is to me,</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">My second of use to draw,</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">And of variety score upon score,</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">My whole has letters six,</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">And while the clock ticks, ticks,</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">I am sure you’ll guess my name,</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">For I’ve told you very plain.</span></div>
- </div>
- <div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse">4. I am a word of five letters,</div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">And a torment to my betters,</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">My first and last are alike they say,</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_189" id="Page_189">[189]</a></span><span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">My second and fourth the same trick play.</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">My three middle letters</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">Come every one’s way</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">And make a brief stay,</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">On all alike,</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">Just before night.</span></div>
-</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-
-<h3>ANAGRAMS.</h3>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
- <div class="poetry">
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">1. Cover no sin.</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">2. Tim N. may gain.</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">3. Go nurse.</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">4. Train on time.</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">5. Claim a part, G.</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">6. A mad girl.</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">7. ’Tis veteran Mylo, D.</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">8. A rude song.</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">9. Any one can.</span></div>
-<div class="verse">10. Thomas rap again.</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-
-<h3>CROSS-WORD ENIGMAS.</h3>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
- <div class="poetry">
- <div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse">1. My first is in saddle, but not in pony;</div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">My second is in spaghetti, but not macaroni;</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">My third is in water, but not in sand;</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">My fourth is in Indian, but not in command;</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">My fifth is in plank, but not in board;</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">My sixth is in saving, but not in hoard;</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">My seventh is in make, but not in lose;</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_190" id="Page_190">[190]</a></span><span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">My eighth is in gaiters, but not in shoes;</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">My ninth is in candle, but not in light;</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">My tenth is in horses, but not in bite;</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">My eleventh is in inch, but not in measure;</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">My twelfth is in satin, but not in treasure;</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">My thirteenth is in coke, but not in ton.</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">My whole is a useful invention.</span></div>
- </div>
- <div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse">2. My first is in silent, but not in loud;</div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">My second is in alone, but not in crowd;</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">My third is in example, but not in talk;</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">My fourth is in buying, but not in bought;</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">My fifth is in fancy, but not in reality;</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">My sixth is in brains, but not in vanity;</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">My seventh is in angels, but not in ghosts;</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">My eighth is in goodness, but not in hoax;</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">My ninth is in religion, but not in cant.</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">My whole is the name of a useful plant.</span></div>
- </div>
- <div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse">3. My first is in lamb, but not in beef;</div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">My second is in mouth, but not in teeth;</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">My third is in Neptune, but not in sea;</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">My fourth is in steward, but not in me;</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">My fifth is in slow, but not in fast;</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">My sixth is in never, but not in last.</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">My whole is a great city.</span></div>
- </div>
- <div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 2em;">4. In house not in lawn,</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 3.5em;">In take not in form,</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 3.5em;">In lark not in sky,</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_191" id="Page_191">[191]</a></span><span style="margin-left: 3.5em;">In toil not in try,</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 3.5em;">In borrow not in lend,</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 3.5em;">In tatters not in mend,</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 3.5em;">In draught not in buy,</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 3.5em;">In loaf not in pie,</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 3.5em;">In page not in book,</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 3.5em;">In novel not in took.</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 3.5em;">My whole is a flower.</span></div>
-</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-
-<h3>NUMERICAL ENIGMAS.</h3>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
- <div class="poetry">
-<div class="verse">1. I am composed of five letters.</div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">My 3, 2, 5, shows hindrance.</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">My 4, 1, a part of speech.</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">My whole is a Spartan title.</span></div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
- <div class="poetry">
- <div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse">2. I am composed of twenty-seven letters.</div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">My 20, 16, 17, is a condition of atmosphere.</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">My 14, 13, 26, 18, was a rich woman.</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">My 1, 9, 25, 11, 10, is indicative of knowledge.</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">My 6, 23, 24, 22, relative to curvature.</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">My 8, 3, 4, 12, shows docility.</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">My 19, 15, 7, 21, is a girl’s name.</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">My 2, 27,—5, Insert a letter in the blank space and you’ll have the end.</span></div>
- </div>
- <div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse">3. I am composed of nine letters.</div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">My 4, 2, 6, 5, is a space.</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_192" id="Page_192">[192]</a></span><span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">My 3, 8, 1, is a quick inclination.</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">My 7, 9, with one of the letters doubled indicates comfort.</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">My whole is a flower.</span></div>
- </div>
- <div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse">4. I am composed of eight letters.</div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">My 7, 4, 5, 3, is a kind of skin.</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">My 6, 2, 8, represents a number.</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">My 1 is a part of speech.</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">My whole is an animal.</span></div>
-</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-
-<h3>DECAPITATIONS.</h3>
-
-<p>1. Behead a stream of water, and leave a
-bird like a crow, behead a carpenter’s tool
-and leave a passage, behead a section of a
-carriage and leave the hind part of a section
-of the body, behead an edible fish and leave
-a multitude.</p>
-
-<p>2. Behead a supplication and leave light,
-behead a short time and leave a hide, behead
-a covering and leave relations, behead a
-relative and leave something different.</p>
-
-<p>3. Behead a wading bird and leave a
-wooer, behead to charge and leave one that
-is unsound, behead a dance and leave a fish,
-behead an officer and leave a verb.</p>
-
-<p>4. Behead a weapon of war and leave a
-fruit, behead an ensign and leave a unit,
-behead a low, flat-built vessel, and leave a
-narrow passage, behead a ruminating animal
-and leave a plant and its seed.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_193" id="Page_193">[193]</a></span></p>
-
-
-<h3>DROP-LETTER RIDDLES.</h3>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
- <div class="poetry">
-<div class="verse">1. -h- w-s -u-h -u-e -o -o-z?</div>
-<div class="verse">2. -h- w-l-e- o- e-r-h,</div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">-h- t-l-e- o- e-r-h,</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">-h- r-b-k-d - m-n -o- s-n;</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">-h-’s -o- o- e-r-h,</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">-h-’s -o- i- h-a-e-,</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">-o- l-k-l- t- g-t -n.</span></div>
-<div class="verse">3. -h- d-d -d-m -i-e -h- a-p-e -v- g-v- h-m?</div>
-<div class="verse">4. -h-t -i- a-a- f-r-t -e- i- t-e -a-d-n -f -d-n?</div>
-<div class="verse">5. -h- a-e -d-m -n- e-e -n -n-m-l- i- g-a-m-r?</div>
-<div class="verse">6. -o- d-d -o-h -r-s- h-s -a-r -n -h- a-k?</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-
-<h3>DROP-LETTER PUZZLES.</h3>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
- <div class="poetry">
-<div class="verse">1. M-K- H-Y -H-L- T-E -U- S-I-E-.</div>
-<div class="verse">2. -a-l- -o -e- -n- -a-l- -o -i-e,</div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">-a-e- -e- -e-l-h-, -e-l-h-, -n- -i-e.</span></div>
-<div class="verse">3. -o -o -h- -n- -ho- -luggar-, -onside- -e- -ay- -n- -e -is-.</div>
-<div class="verse">4. -i-t-e -l-n- i- h-p-i-e-s -e-o-.</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-
-<h3>OPENING LINES OF FAMILIAR SONG.</h3>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
- <div class="poetry">
-<div class="verse">1. Ho odtn’ uyo eeerrmmb twese eclai ebblton,</div>
-<div class="verse"><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_194" id="Page_194">[194]</a></span><span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">Etswe claei ihwt iahr os rnbwo;</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">Esh pwte tiwh gdtheil hwne uoy aevg ehr a eimls</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">Dan lteredmb hiwt aefr ta uyro wrfno.</span></div>
- </div>
- <div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse">2. Hte peehtnla own esog urdon,</div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">Eht dnba gsiben ot aypl,</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">Teh ybso aer daunor hte ykmeno gcea,</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">U’oyd treebt ekpe ywaa.</span></div>
- </div>
- <div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse">3. I aeddr eht yad u’yllo gftore em grreeiamtu</div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">Nda lilst i okwn ti oosn lwli ecmo,</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">Het iteesvf aecdn, eht ihcr teh yga,</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">Os fetfrdnei rmof rou emho umeegairrt.</span></div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-
-<h3>ANSWERS TO CHARADES, ANAGRAMS, ETC.</h3>
-
-
-<h4><i>Charades.</i></h4>
-
-<ul>
-<li>1. Eyelash.</li>
-<li>2. Independent.</li>
-<li>3. Teapot.</li>
-<li>4. Level.</li>
-</ul>
-
-
-
-<h4><i>Anagrams.</i></h4>
-
-
-<ul><li>1. Conversion.</li>
-<li>2. Magnanimity.</li>
-<li>3. Surgeon.</li>
-<li>4. Termination.</li>
-<li>5. Pragmatical.</li>
-<li>6. Madrigal.</li>
-<li><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_195" id="Page_195">[195]</a></span>7. Demonstratively.</li>
-<li>8. Dangerous.</li>
-<li>9. Annoyance.</li>
-<li>10. Phantasmagoria.</li></ul>
-
-
-
-
-<h4><i>Cross-word Enigmas.</i></h4>
-
-
-<ul><li>1. Sewing-machine.</li>
-<li>2. Saxifrage.</li>
-<li>3. London.</li>
-<li>4. Heliotrope.</li></ul>
-
-
-
-
-<h4><i>Numerical Enigmas.</i></h4>
-
-
-<ul><li>1. Helot.</li>
-<li>2. A soft answer turneth away wrath.</li>
-<li>3. Dandelion.</li>
-<li>4. Antelope.</li></ul>
-
-
-
-
-<h4><i>Decapitations.</i></h4>
-
-
-<ul><li>1. Brook, rook; 2, plane, lane; 3, wheel, heel, trout, rout.</li>
-<li>2. Pray, ray; 2, spell, pell; 3, skin, kin; 4, mother, other.</li>
-<li>3. 1, plover, lover; 2, blame, lame; 3, reel, eel; 4, mate, ate.</li>
-<li>4. 1. Spear, pear. 2. Mace, ace. 3. Galley, alley. 4. Goats, oats.</li></ul>
-
-
-
-
-<h4><i>Drop Letter Riddles.</i></h4>
-
-<div class="hangsection">
-1. Why was Ruth rude to Boaz?<br />
-<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_196" id="Page_196">[196]</a></span><span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">Because she trod on his corns, and pulled his ears.</span><br />
-</div>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
- <div class="poetry">
-<div class="verse">2. She walked on earth,</div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1em;">She talked on earth,</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1em;">She rebuked a man for sin;</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1em;">She’s not on earth,</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1em;">She’s not in heaven,</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1em;">Nor likely to get in.</span></div>
-<div class="verse">Balaam’s Ass.<br /><br /></div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<div class="hangsection">
-3. Why did Adam bite the apple Eve gave him?<br />
-<span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">Because he had no knife.</span><br />
-<br />
-4. What did Adam first set in the Garden of Eden?<br />
-<span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">His foot.</span><br />
-<br />
-5. Why are Adam and Eve an anomaly in grammar?<br />
-<span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">Because they are two relatives without an antecedent.</span><br />
-<br />
-6. How did Noah dress his hair in the Ark?<br />
-<span style="margin-left: 1.5em;">With the fox’s brush and the cock’s comb.</span><br />
-</div>
-
-
-<h4><i>Drop Letter Puzzles.</i></h4>
-
-
-<ul>
-<li>1. Make hay while the sun shines.</li>
-<li>2. Early to bed and early to rise, makes men healthy, wealthy, and wise.</li>
-<li>3. Go to the ant, thou sluggard, consider her ways and be wise.</li>
-<li>4. Virtue alone is happiness below.</li>
-</ul>
-
-
-
-<h4><i>The Opening Lines of Familiar Songs.</i></h4>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
- <div class="poetry">
-<div class="verse">1. “Oh! don’t you remember sweet Alice, Ben Bolt,</div>
-<div class="verse"><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_197" id="Page_197">[197]</a></span><span style="margin-left: 2em;">Sweet Alice, with hair so brown;</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 2em;">She wept with delight when you gave her a smile,</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 2em;">And trembled with fear at your frown.”</span></div>
- </div>
- <div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse">2. “The elephant now goes round,</div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 3em;">The band begins to play,</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 2em;">The boys are around the monkey</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 3em;">cage, You’d better keep away.”</span></div>
- </div>
- <div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse">3. “I dread the day you’ll forget me, Marguerite,</div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 2em;">And still I know it soon will come.</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 2em;">The festive dance, the rich, the gay,</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1em;">So different from our home, Marguerite.”</span></div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-
-<h4><i>Forfeits.</i></h4>
-
-<p>The exacting of forfeits for tardiness or
-failure in the playing of games will usually
-lead to as much amusement as the games
-themselves.</p>
-
-<p>Those who subject themselves to forfeiture
-may give a trivial article just as satisfactorily
-as an expensive one, or they may simply
-write their names on a slip of paper, and
-hand that to the person in charge. Each
-player is bound to redeem his name.</p>
-
-<p>At the conclusion of the game the host, or
-any individual he may appoint (provided
-that person has no forfeits), collects all and
-puts them out of sight of the audience, and
-commencing with the one at his right, he
-takes the players in turn.</p>
-
-<p>That party now sits down and the one in
-charge holding over his head one of the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_198" id="Page_198">[198]</a></span>
-trinkets or whatever the object may be,
-says: “What a jolly thing! What a smart,
-pretty thing! What will the owner do?”</p>
-
-<p>The party in the chair inquires, “Does it
-belong to a lady, or to a gentleman?” He
-is at once answered correctly and then responds
-by advising a difficult or ridiculous
-performance. The individual who owns the
-forfeit must now perform what has been
-advised. As soon as the party has redeemed
-his pledge, another forfeit is redeemed after
-the same method, and so on, one by one,
-until all articles are returned to their owners.
-Each forfeit is naturally redeemed amid
-peals of laughter.</p>
-
-<p>The following may prove helpful to those
-who have to declare penalties.</p>
-
-<p>1. Fold a piece of note-paper in the shape
-of a fish.</p>
-
-<p>2. Say, Quizzical Quiz, sister Smith, five
-times running without drawing a breath.</p>
-
-<p>3. Count twenty backwards without smiling.</p>
-
-<p>4. Mention five synonyms for the word,
-Jabber.</p>
-
-<div class="center">(Chatter, gabble, mumble, prate, prattle.)</div>
-
-<p>5. Repeat three times without a mistake:—</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
- <div class="poetry">
-<div class="verse">David Daldron dreamed he drove a dragon,</div>
-<div class="verse">Did David Daldron dream he drove a dragon?</div>
-<div class="verse">If David Daldron dreamed he drove a dragon,</div>
-<div class="verse">Where’s the dragon David Daldron dreamed he drove?</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_199" id="Page_199">[199]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>6. Repeat the following lines twice,</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
- <div class="poetry">
-<div class="verse">Oliver Ogilvie ogled an olive and oyster,</div>
-<div class="verse">Did Oliver Ogilvie ogle an olive and oyster?</div>
-<div class="verse">If Oliver Ogilvie ogled an olive and oyster</div>
-<div class="verse">Where is the olive and oyster Oliver Ogilvie ogled?</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p>7. Touch the features while you solemnly
-recite,</p>
-
-
-
-<div class="center">
-<table border="0" cellpadding="0" cellspacing="0" summary="poem and answers">
-<tr>
-<td align="left">Here sits the Lord Mayor,</td>
-<td align="left">forehead.</td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td align="left">Here sit his two men,</td>
-<td align="left">eyes.</td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td align="left">Here sits the cock,</td>
-<td align="left">right cheek.</td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td align="left">Here sits the hen,</td>
-<td align="left">left cheek.</td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td align="left">Here sits the little chickens,</td>
-<td align="left">tip of nose.</td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td align="left">Here they run in,</td>
-<td align="left">the mouth.</td>
-</tr>
-
-<tr>
-<td align="left">Chinchopper, chinchopper, chinchopper, chin!&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;&nbsp;</td>
-<td align="left">Chuck the chin.</td>
-</tr>
-</table>
-</div>
-
-<p>8. Repeat the alphabet similar to example.</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
- <div class="poetry">
-<div class="verse">A was an archer, and shot at a frog,</div>
-<div class="verse">B was a butcher, and had a great dog.</div>
-<div class="verse">C was a captain, all covered with lace,</div>
-<div class="verse">D was a dunce with a very sad face.</div>
-<div class="verse">E was an esquire, with pride on his brow,</div>
-<div class="verse">F was a farmer and followed the plow.</div>
-<div class="verse">G was a gamester who had but ill luck,</div>
-<div class="verse">H was a hunter and hunted a buck.</div>
-<div class="verse">I was an innkeeper, who lov’d to house,</div>
-<div class="verse">J was a joiner, and built up a house.</div>
-<div class="verse">K was a king, so mighty and grand,</div>
-<div class="verse">L was a lady who had a white hand.</div>
-<div class="verse">M was a miser who hoarded up gold,</div>
-<div class="verse">N was a nobleman, gallant and bold.</div>
-<div class="verse">O was an oysterman, and went about town,</div>
-<div class="verse">P was a parson, and wore a black gown.</div>
-<div class="verse">Q was a quack with a wonderful pill,</div>
-<div class="verse"><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_200" id="Page_200">[200]</a></span>R was a robber, who wanted to kill.</div>
-<div class="verse">S was a sailor, and spent all he got,</div>
-<div class="verse">T was a tinker, and mended a pot.</div>
-<div class="verse">U was a usurer, a miserable elf,</div>
-<div class="verse">V was a vintner, who drank all himself.</div>
-<div class="verse">W was a watchman and guarded the door,</div>
-<div class="verse">X was expensive, and so became poor.</div>
-<div class="verse">Y was a youth, that did not love school,</div>
-<div class="verse">Z was a Zan, a poor, harmless fool.</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p>9. Sing to the tune of “Oats, Pease, Beans
-and Barley grows.”</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
- <div class="poetry">
-<div class="verse">Tom he was a piper’s son,</div>
-<div class="verse">He learned to play when he was young;</div>
-<div class="verse">But all the tune that he could play,</div>
-<div class="verse">Was “Over the hills and far away.”</div>
-<div class="verse">Now Tom with his pipe made such a noise,</div>
-<div class="verse">That he pleased both the girls and the boys,</div>
-<div class="verse">And they all stopped to hear him play</div>
-<div class="verse">Over the hills and far away.</div>
-<div class="verse">Tom with his pipe did play with such skill,</div>
-<div class="verse">That those who heard him could never stand still;</div>
-<div class="verse">Whenever they heard him they began to dance,</div>
-<div class="verse">Even pigs on their hind legs would after him prance.</div>
-<div class="verse">He met old Dame Trot with a basket of eggs,</div>
-<div class="verse">He used his pipe and she used her legs;</div>
-<div class="verse">She danced about till the eggs were all broke,</div>
-<div class="verse">She began to fret, but he laughed at the joke.</div>
-<div class="verse">He saw a cross fellow was beating an ass,</div>
-<div class="verse">Heavy laden with pots, pans, dishes and glass;</div>
-<div class="verse">He took out his pipe and played them a tune,</div>
-<div class="verse">And the jackass’s load was lightened full soon.</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p>10. Blow out a candle.</p>
-
-<p>The candle is rapidly flashed before the
-person to blow it out. If passed to and fro
-quick enough, it will afford much laughter
-before it is blown out.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_201" id="Page_201">[201]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>11. Stand on a chair and do just as you
-are bidden without laughing.</p>
-
-<p>12. Put a cord on the floor where you
-cannot step over it.</p>
-
-<p>(Put it against the wall.)</p>
-
-<p>13. Put two chairs back to back and take
-off your shoes and jump over them.</p>
-
-<p>This is only a trick, you take off your
-shoes and jump over <i>them</i>, not over the
-chairs.</p>
-
-<p>14. Act the part of a dumb servant. If it
-is a lady who is redeeming the forfeit, she
-must apply to a gentleman for a place, and
-if a gentleman, he applies to a lady. Whoever
-is engaging the servant asks seven
-questions, all of which are answered by
-dumb motions. Example: How do you
-dust? How do you sew? How do you
-open the hall door? How do you blacken
-boots? etc.</p>
-
-<p>15. Ask a question that cannot be answered
-in the negative.</p>
-
-<p>(The question is “What does Y E S spell?”)</p>
-
-<p>16. Give a conundrum unfamiliar to all.</p>
-
-<p>17. Dot and carry one.</p>
-
-<p>(Hold your ankle while you walk across
-the room.)</p>
-
-<p>18. Imitate a banjo player.</p>
-
-<p>19. Dance a blind lanciers.</p>
-
-<p>(Try this when a number of forfeits have
-to be redeemed. Eight people are blindfolded
-and led to position. Another of the
-company plays the lanciers. As those who<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_202" id="Page_202">[202]</a></span>
-are blindfolded will surely make ridiculous
-errors, everybody will heartily laugh. This
-forfeit creates much merriment.)</p>
-
-<p>20. Make a three-minute address, in
-which every word commences with the
-same letter.</p>
-
-<p>21. Tell who wrote the Star Spangled
-Banner.</p>
-
-<p>(Francis Scott Key.)</p>
-
-<p>22. Tell who wrote Home Sweet Home.</p>
-
-<p>(John Howard Payne.)</p>
-
-<p>23. Tell who wrote the Battle Hymn of
-the Republic.</p>
-
-<p>(Julia Ward Howe.)</p>
-
-<p>24. Walk out of the room with two legs
-but walk back with six.</p>
-
-<p>(When you return, bring a chair with
-you.)</p>
-
-<p>25. Give numerical poetry.</p>
-
-<p>Any verse that is familiar counting as example:</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
- <div class="poetry">
-<div class="verse">Shuffle-Shoon (one) and (two) Amber-Locks (three)</div>
-<div class="verse">Sit (four) together (five) building (six) blocks (seven)</div>
-<div class="verse">Shuffle-Shoon (eight) is (nine) old (ten) and (eleven) gray (twelve)</div>
-<div class="verse">Amber-Locks (thirteen) a (fourteen) little (fifteen) child (sixteen)</div>
-<div class="verse">But (seventeen) together (eighteen) at (nineteen) their (twenty) play (twenty-one)</div>
-<div class="verse">Age (twenty-two) and (twenty-three) youth (twenty-four) are (twenty-five) reconciled (twenty-six)</div>
-<div class="verse">And (twenty-seven) with (twenty-eight) sympathetic (twenty-nine) glee (thirty)</div>
-<div class="verse">Build (thirty-one) their (thirty-two) castles (thirty-three) fair (thirty-four) to (thirty-five) see (thirty-six).</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_203" id="Page_203">[203]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>26. Spread out a newspaper and stand
-two persons on it, so that they cannot possibly
-touch each other.</p>
-
-<p>(To accomplish this put the newspaper on
-the floor, half on one side of the door, and
-half on the other. A person stands on each
-piece, and the door is shut between them.)</p>
-
-<p>27. Sing one of the topical songs.</p>
-
-<p>28. Sing the scale backwards.</p>
-
-<p>29. Draw a picture of a bicycle race.</p>
-
-<p>30. Build a house with cards.</p>
-
-<p>31. Sew a hem.</p>
-
-<p>32. Repeat rapidly either of the following
-tongue twisters.</p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p>Susan shineth shoes and socks; socks and shoes
-shines Susan. She ceaseth shining shoes and socks,
-for shoes and socks shock Susan.</p>
-
-<p>Strict, strong Stephen Stringer snared six sickly
-silky snakes.</p>
-
-<p>Swan swam over the sea; swim, swan, swim; swan
-swam back again; well swum swan.</p>
-
-<p>Six thick thistle sticks.</p>
-
-<p>Flesh of freshly fried flying fish.</p>
-
-<p>Give Grimes Jim’s great gilt gig whip.</p></div>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-<div class="chapter"></div>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_204" id="Page_204">[204]</a></span></p>
-
-
-
-
-<h2>IN THE ADIRONDACKS.</h2>
-
-
-<p>It was the last week of July, and the
-guests of a certain hotel, located amidst the
-pine and balsam of the famed Adirondack
-wilderness, were thrown into a flutter of
-excitement.</p>
-
-<p>It had been steadily raining for three days
-and nights, and now that the fourth day
-was nearing its close a golden light appeared
-in the west. The mirror-like surface of the
-lake before the hotel rapidly revealed the
-many shades of crimson red and deep gold,
-while fleecy clouds of pink and white merged
-into deeper tints.</p>
-
-<p>Every one was on the piazza, called there
-by an enthusiast to witness the beauty of it
-all. Every face smiled because the long
-storm was over at last, and there seemed a
-promise of radiant sunshine for to-morrow.</p>
-
-<p>Suddenly a voice from the north piazza
-called to a young gentleman who had been
-walking about with a rather dissatisfied air,
-“I hear wheels. Now for the excitement
-of an arrival.”</p>
-
-<p>It was only the waiting of a few moments,
-and two bay horses, much bespattered with
-mud and mire, drew the heavily built two-seated
-surrey to the hotel steps.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_205" id="Page_205">[205]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Guests stood about by twos and threes,
-most of them with half-averted faces, not
-willing to openly show the inquisitive feeling
-that each possessed. However, many
-furtive glances were cast. Perhaps among
-the most searching, were those given by the
-dissatisfied young man.</p>
-
-<p>“Permit me, madam.” It was the proprietor’s
-voice, as he aided a tall, fair-skinned,
-stern and aristocratic-looking matron
-to alight, assisting her meanwhile to
-unfasten her travelling cloak, which had
-caught on a nail in the end of a seat. The
-lady slowly remarked, as her feet touched
-the horse block. “That nail has been rather
-too much in evidence.”</p>
-
-<p>By the matron’s side a young lady had
-sat. This fact had been observed by all the
-guests, before they had turned their heads
-away, and now that she too had left the
-carriage, her golden hair and soft hazel eyes
-were mentally remarked, as also her graceful
-carriage and elegant tailor-made gown.</p>
-
-<p>The proprietor, lifting one of the hand-satchels,
-leaving the umbrellas and other
-small luggage for the porter, led the way to
-the office.</p>
-
-<p>Then they hastily entered, and a few
-minutes later walked through the dimly-lighted
-corridor, for it was not yet dark
-enough to illuminate.</p>
-
-<p>“I reckon that girl has never been in the
-woods before,” said the dissatisfied man to<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_206" id="Page_206">[206]</a></span>
-his friend. For now, side by side, he and
-a young fellow about thirty strode slowly
-up and down, exchanging confidences and
-chatting in a desultory fashion.</p>
-
-<p>“She does not seem to the manner born,
-that’s a fact,” said the other, “but she’s an
-interesting type, and probably an addition
-to our house party.” He turned an interested
-face towards his friend and said:
-“There’s far more the flavor of Narragansett
-Pier or Bar Harbor about her than of the
-woods, or she may have come from Saratoga.
-We’ll not have to wait long to see,
-or I’m not a correct judge, but her mother
-may prove a formidable chaperon.”</p>
-
-<p>The mother and daughter, for their relationship
-was at once identified, some one
-having accommodatingly referred to the
-register, and reported information to the
-others, were not long in reappearing, and
-the young men, still walking back and
-forth, were not surprised to discover that
-their prediction was correct.</p>
-
-<p>“Maud, dear, how shall you exist here?”
-were the half-petulant words overheard as
-the mother languidly seated herself.</p>
-
-<p>“It will not be Saratoga, I confess. But
-isn’t that lake enchanting?” The girl’s face
-was very fair and bewitchingly amiable.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, it is pretty. But shall you ever
-forget our trip to this hotel? Such roads!”</p>
-
-<p>Maud met her mother’s questioning eyes,
-then noting a middle-aged woman approaching<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_207" id="Page_207">[207]</a></span>
-them, with face full of kindly greeting,
-waited.</p>
-
-<p>“You are strangers,” were this lady’s first
-words, adding as she reached forth her
-hand: “I fear you will feel lonely and
-tired, after the long drive.”</p>
-
-<p>The mother at once extended her hand.
-Then the lady asked the girl, “Have you
-ever been in the woods before?”</p>
-
-<p>“Never, and my mother fears I shall not
-like it. It did seem lonely, the last drive
-through the pines,” and the sensitive mouth
-quivered ever so slightly, as she explained.
-“The drive up was so long, the roads so
-thickly wooded, and here,” with a half-frightened
-glance about, as though she
-feared a fox or a bear would cross the walk
-before her, “you have only the lake.”</p>
-
-<p>Without a word the lady laughed merrily,
-but hastily checked herself. “I promise you
-that if you will only join in our sports you
-will find that there is much here besides the
-lake. Though,” coyly scanning her, “the
-lake has its amusements, fishing, boating.
-Oh, the gentlemen here will be delighted to
-introduce you to it.”</p>
-
-<p>Maud’s mother looked both surprised and
-confused. The lady continued, as though
-she noted her not. “You will find the camps
-about the lake quite as entertaining as Saratoga’s
-Floral Fête, or indeed any fashionable
-watering-place amusement.”</p>
-
-<p>“Camps? I don’t quite understand,”<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_208" id="Page_208">[208]</a></span>
-Maud’s mother remarked, with a touch of
-bitterness in her tone, for the darkening
-wood about, now that night was coming
-fast, made her slow to relent. It was strange
-she had chosen to come to such a spot.</p>
-
-<p>“I think one has to visit these camps to
-understand,” the lady explained. “But you
-will always find them hospitable, furnishing
-afternoon tea every day you care to call.
-And some days there are special <i>fêtes</i>, full
-of pleasant surprises, when amusements
-such as the thimble game and proverbs are
-played, at which prizes are sometimes offered
-as an added incentive. Last season
-the hostess of one of the camps gave a children’s
-party. There happened to be a few
-here that year, for children are a rarity in
-the Adirondacks. Of course their parents,
-uncles, aunts and cousins came, too. That
-entertainment has been talked about ever
-since. The party opened with the wild
-flower hunt. Small bouquets had been hidden
-among the balsam boughs, low enough
-for the little ones to reach; others were behind
-bushes or rocks. These bouquets were
-made up of clover, daisies and wild roses.
-Whichever child found the most wild roses
-received a prize.</p>
-
-<p>“This amusement was followed by the
-hunt for Cinderella’s Slipper. The successful
-one at this game also received a
-prize. After this, the hostess invited all the
-children into the balsam-covered lean-to,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_209" id="Page_209">[209]</a></span>
-and told them a story about the old man of
-Humbug Mountain. Humbug Mountain
-towers just behind, you notice the tallest
-mountain over there, don’t you?” and the
-lady motioned to the left, as they faced the
-lake.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, but what has reddened the trees so?
-Why, mother, did you ever see anything as
-beautiful?” and while pronouncing the word
-“beautiful,” Maud’s countenance was full
-of delight.</p>
-
-<p>“That is the afterglow,” the lady replied,
-but not waiting for further remark,
-she continued: “I was telling you about
-the old man of Humbug Mountain. The
-hostess explained to the children that sometimes
-he visited her camp, and when he did
-so he whistled, and that if he should
-whistle that afternoon, she would take the
-children back of the lean-to to see him. At
-that very moment a whistle clear and shrill
-was heard, and the children, already enamoured
-with the story, could scarcely be
-sufficiently restrained to allow the hostess
-to proceed. When the laughing, curious
-children ran behind the lean-to, sure enough,
-as had been promised, there was an old
-man. He was standing on a table. It was
-a dwarf skilfully arranged by two people.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh that was it?” Maud interrupted, for
-she had listened intently, and was apparently
-as eager to discover the identity of the
-old man of Humbug Mountain, as had been<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_210" id="Page_210">[210]</a></span>
-the children of the party, and then she
-added: “I happen to know about that, for I
-was part of a dwarf once,” and with a wise
-little shake of her head explained, “It is
-arranged by two people.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, and is it not capital?”</p>
-
-<p>“Fine, when it is well done,” and Maud
-who was already feeling at home with her
-companion, added: “And of course the
-dwarf from the mountain would be well
-done.”</p>
-
-<p>“Indeed he was. He told short, witty
-stories, laughed, danced and capered to the
-children’s great delight. They would clap
-their hands for joy. It was a rare sight for
-the grown-ups to watch the color come and
-go in their expressive faces, their fluffy curls
-and tangle of waves and braids tumbling
-about as the little girls shook with laughter,
-and some of the boys were even more amusing
-than the girls, because they looked so
-earnest, even solemn, in their efforts to find
-an explanation for the old man. One little
-chap said he would get his father to carry
-his rifle now all the time, because they
-might meet the old man sometimes when
-he wouldn’t feel as jolly, and what then?
-In fact he was about certain he had seen
-the old man one day stealing away behind
-a big stump, and even some of the children
-laughed when he explained: ‘It was the
-very same day, that I almost saw a black
-bear. I could hear him growl. I tell you<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_211" id="Page_211">[211]</a></span>
-I ran! Like as not there was a fox too, or a
-wild cat?”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, after the dwarf exhibition, there
-were refreshments at which the children
-toasted marshmallows and popped corn.”</p>
-
-<p>“Why, after all, Maud,” said her mother,
-thawing out suddenly, “I fancy you may
-like it here. There seem to be things
-going on.”</p>
-
-<p>“<i>Like</i> it,” quoted the lady. “No one
-ever wants to go home when she once gets
-a taste of Adirondack life. It is like the
-hounds following the deer. People take to
-the woods.”</p>
-
-<p>Suddenly there sounded through the hall
-the first measures of an orchestra.</p>
-
-<p>“The music has begun, and I must dress,”
-said Miss Friend-in-Need, noting the questioning
-glance between mother and daughter.
-“That music is a signal to-night. A
-few of us give a part of the Midsummer
-Night’s Dream this evening, in the parlor,
-and we are to costume ourselves as far as
-possible before supper.</p>
-
-<p>“What fun we’ve had getting the affair
-up! You may not know that it has simply
-poured here for days and days, but we’ve
-laughed until we’ve cried at our rehearsals,
-and so have scarcely been troubled by rain.</p>
-
-<p>“You’ll surely come to the first and last
-performance of this wonderful company,
-will you not?” and walking away, the lady
-looked over her shoulder for an answer. And<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_212" id="Page_212">[212]</a></span>
-having won a reply in the affirmative, the
-lady rapidly hurried to her room.</p>
-
-<p>After supper, as Maud’s mother took her
-seat, to which she was shown by a young
-man acting as usher, she noticed the parlor
-had been lavishly trimmed with boughs of
-green. There was also a tiny wood adjoining
-the stage, made of small balsam trees.</p>
-
-<p>“I suppose,” she remarked to her daughter,
-“they went out between the drops and
-gathered them.” And then both ladies interestedly
-noticed the guests, as one after
-the other, with an air of expectancy, entered.</p>
-
-<p>Programmes were passed and eagerly
-scanned.</p>
-
-<p>It was indeed a gala night. Had Maud
-and her mother known the various performers,
-it would have greatly added to
-their entertainment, but as it was, they
-could not help adding their applause to that
-of the others. Even though Maud was a
-stranger, the joyous shouts of laughter
-proved too contagious to be altogether resisted,
-and indeed before the performance
-was over, close contact with these merry
-people made Maud feel as though she was
-one of them, so quickly does one touch of
-nature make the whole world kin.</p>
-
-<p>As the programme indicated the different
-characters, they were carefully read, and
-many ejaculations were overheard, such as:
-“Oh, that’s Isabel’s character,” and “Why,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_213" id="Page_213">[213]</a></span>
-Carl Adams will be a sight, he’s such a swell,
-you know. How did such an exquisite
-ever consent to humble himself in this way?”</p>
-
-<p>To Maud and her mother, however, all
-were strangers, with the one exception of
-the proprietor of the hotel, but they very
-soon learned the names of the people about
-them. Besides, as Maud’s mother very
-truly said, “Without it I am not positive
-that I could remember who the different
-ones are in the piece, as it is a long time
-since I have read the Midsummer Night’s
-Dream.” Therefore, while waiting for the
-first scene, they read:</p>
-
-
-<div class="center">
-<table border="0" cellpadding="0" cellspacing="0" summary="cast">
-<tr><td align="left" colspan="3"><span class="smcap">Theseus</span>, Duke of Athens,</td></tr>
-<tr><td align="center" colspan="3"><i>Proprietor of the hotel</i>.</td></tr>
-<tr><td align="left">&nbsp;</td></tr>
-<tr><td align="left" colspan="3"><span class="smcap">Egeus</span>, Father to Hermia,</td></tr>
-<tr><td align="center" colspan="3"><i>Mr. A——</i>.</td></tr>
-<tr><td align="left">&nbsp;</td></tr>
-<tr><td align="left"><span class="smcap">Lysander</span>,</td><td align="left" rowspan="2" class="brb">&nbsp;</td><td align="left" rowspan="2" valign="middle">—in love with Hermia,</td></tr>
-<tr><td align="left"><span class="smcap">Demetrius</span>,</td></tr>
-<tr><td align="center" colspan="3"><i>Mr. C—— and Mr. H——</i>.</td></tr>
-<tr><td align="left">&nbsp;</td></tr>
-<tr><td align="left" colspan="3"><span class="smcap">Philostrate</span>, Master of the revels to Theseus,</td></tr>
-<tr><td align="center" colspan="3"><i>Mr. T——</i>.</td></tr>
-<tr><td align="left" colspan="3">&nbsp;</td></tr>
-<tr><td align="left" colspan="3"><span class="smcap">Quince</span>, a carpenter,</td></tr>
-<tr><td align="center" colspan="3"><i>Master Carl Adams</i>.</td></tr>
-<tr><td align="left" colspan="3">&nbsp;</td></tr>
-<tr><td align="left" colspan="3"><span class="smcap">Snug</span>, a joiner,</td></tr>
-<tr><td align="center" colspan="3"><i>Master John Jones</i>.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_214" id="Page_214">[214]</a></span></td></tr>
-<tr><td align="left" colspan="3">&nbsp;</td></tr>
-<tr><td align="left" colspan="3"><span class="smcap">Bottom</span>, a weaver,</td></tr>
-<tr><td align="center" colspan="3"><i>Mr. Sam S——</i>.</td></tr>
-<tr><td align="left" colspan="3">&nbsp;</td></tr>
-<tr><td align="left" colspan="3"><span class="smcap">Flute</span>, a bellows-mender,</td></tr>
-<tr><td align="center" colspan="3"><i>Mr. Ralph R——</i>.</td></tr>
-<tr><td align="left" colspan="3">&nbsp;</td></tr>
-<tr><td align="left" colspan="3"><span class="smcap">Snout</span>, a tinker,</td></tr>
-<tr><td align="center" colspan="3"><i>Master Diedrick Delk</i>.</td></tr>
-<tr><td align="left" colspan="3">&nbsp;</td></tr>
-<tr><td align="left" colspan="3"><span class="smcap">Starveling</span>, a tailor,</td></tr>
-<tr><td align="center" colspan="3"><i>Mr. Percy P——</i>.</td></tr>
-<tr><td align="left" colspan="3">&nbsp;</td></tr>
-<tr><td align="left" colspan="3"><span class="smcap">Hippolyta</span>, Queen of the Amazons, betrothed to Theseus,</td></tr>
-<tr><td align="center" colspan="3"><i>Miss Genevieve B——</i>.</td></tr>
-<tr><td align="left" colspan="3">&nbsp;</td></tr>
-<tr><td align="left" colspan="3"><span class="smcap">Hermia</span>, daughter to Egeus, in love with Lysander,</td></tr>
-<tr><td align="center" colspan="3"><i>Mrs. Ralph R——</i>.</td></tr>
-<tr><td align="left" colspan="3">&nbsp;</td></tr>
-<tr><td align="left" colspan="3"><span class="smcap">Helena</span>, in love with Demetrius,</td></tr>
-<tr><td align="center" colspan="3"><i>Mrs. Sam S——</i>.</td></tr>
-<tr><td align="left" colspan="3">&nbsp;</td></tr>
-<tr><td align="left" colspan="3"><span class="smcap">Oberon</span>, King of the fairies,</td></tr>
-<tr><td align="center" colspan="3"><i>Mr. James D——</i>.</td></tr>
-<tr><td align="left" colspan="3">&nbsp;</td></tr>
-<tr><td align="left" colspan="3"><span class="smcap">Titania</span>, Queen of the fairies,</td></tr>
-<tr><td align="center" colspan="3"><i>Miss Isabel M——</i>.</td></tr>
-<tr><td align="left" colspan="3">&nbsp;</td></tr>
-<tr><td align="left" colspan="3"><span class="smcap">Puck</span>, or Robin Goodfellow,</td></tr>
-<tr><td align="center" colspan="3"><i>Master Alexander Marvin</i>.</td></tr>
-<tr><td align="left" colspan="3">&nbsp;</td></tr>
-<tr><td align="left"><span class="smcap">Peaseblossom</span>,</td><td align="left" rowspan="4" valign="middle" class="brb">&nbsp;</td><td align="left" rowspan="4" valign="middle">—Fairies,</td></tr>
-<tr><td align="left"><span class="smcap">Cobweb</span>,</td></tr>
-<tr><td align="left"><span class="smcap">Moth</span>,</td></tr>
-<tr><td align="left"><span class="smcap">Mustardseed</span>,</td></tr>
-<tr><td align="center" colspan="3"><i>The Misses Wilson, Bruce, Sim, Conger.</i><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_215" id="Page_215">[215]</a></span></td></tr>
-<tr><td align="left">&nbsp;</td></tr>
-<tr><td align="left" colspan="3">Other fairies attending their King and Queen,</td></tr>
-<tr><td align="center" colspan="3"><i>Misses Kate W——, Fanny T——, Eva M——</i>.</td></tr>
-<tr><td align="left" colspan="3">&nbsp;</td></tr>
-<tr><td align="left" colspan="3">Attendants on Theseus and Hippolyta,</td></tr>
-<tr><td align="center" colspan="3"><i>Masters Goodwin, Bartlett, Carrington and Scott.</i></td></tr>
-</table>
-</div>
-
-
-<p>As Maud’s mother inquired when in the
-seclusion of their own apartments, “Did
-you really like it so very much?”</p>
-
-<p>Maud answered laughing, “More than I
-can express.”</p>
-
-<p>The following morning it was a question,
-“What would be the proper costume for
-breakfast?”</p>
-
-<p>From one of their windows they had a
-partial view of the lake, but from the other
-nothing but tall trees met their eyes. Pines
-were in abundance, but there was an occasional
-hemlock, spruce, birch and maple.</p>
-
-<p>“It is summer. Would you think that
-this white organdy would do?” asked Maud,
-and the frock, apparently only a cloud of
-Valenciennes lace, was held towards her
-mother.</p>
-
-<p>“Do? I am sure I don’t know what is
-considered correct for such a wilderness,
-but you might not be warm enough. I
-fancy it is cold outdoors.”</p>
-
-<p>“I’ll tell you what I’ll wear,” said the
-young lady presently, for she had a wonderful
-conception of color values, and knew<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_216" id="Page_216">[216]</a></span>
-what would look best with her dark eyes,
-and also what would produce the most
-fetching effect, should she be able to induce
-her mother to walk among the trees
-after breakfast. “I am going to put on my
-crimson piqué, bodice and all,” for she had
-several waists that could be worn with the
-same skirt, and as her quick eyes looked
-over the guests at breakfast, she was not
-sorry the decision had been against the
-organdy.</p>
-
-<p>“All night my dreams were of the entertainment,”
-said Maud, as, sitting opposite
-her mother, she tried to pour the cream
-into her coffee. “It is almost too thick to
-stir. Did you ever see such cream?” she
-said.</p>
-
-<p>“I never saw thicker. And this trout is
-delicious. It would be singular indeed if I
-were won to this place. But, Maud, tell me
-about your dream, dear.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, I dreamed of Titania and Oberon,
-Queen and King of the fairies, you know. I
-could see the airy things moving over the
-green. It was Midsummer-Night’s Dream
-truly, for I dreamed of the pretty piece, and
-isn’t this Midsummer?”</p>
-
-<p>“Why, Maud! I fancy you slept well.
-Perhaps you’ll be surprised to learn that I
-too dreamed of our evening’s pleasure.”</p>
-
-<p>“Surprised! Yes, indeed!” and Maud’s
-eyes sought her mother’s. “What part did
-you dream about?”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_217" id="Page_217">[217]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“I think it is the opening of the second
-act, when the fairy replies to Puck,</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
- <div class="poetry">
-<div class="verse">Over hill, over dale,</div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1em;">Thorough bush, thorough brier,</span></div>
-<div class="verse">Over park, over pale,</div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1em;">Thorough flood, thorough fire,</span></div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 2em;">I do wander everywhere.</span></div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p class="unindent">You remember how it goes, don’t you?”</p>
-
-<p>“Perfectly; and didn’t that fairy look
-lovely? I am sure I shall be glad to
-know her. But Puck I am not as sure
-about.”</p>
-
-<p>“Could you pass me the rolls, Maud?”</p>
-
-<p>“Certainly, take that one,” and Maud
-turned the plate so that her mother could
-have a temptingly brown roll.</p>
-
-<p>“And now,” continued her mother, as
-she contentedly broke the roll open, “tell
-me more about your dream.”</p>
-
-<p>“You know towards the close, Oberon
-and Titania entered with their train.”</p>
-
-<p>“Do you mean where Oberon sings,</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
- <div class="poetry">
-<div class="verse">Though the house gives glimmering light,</div>
-<div class="verse">By the dead and drowsy fire,</div>
-<div class="verse">Every elf and fairy sprite,</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p class="unindent">And so on?”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, those are the very words. And
-didn’t Titania have a sweet voice? I hope
-she’ll sing often. I am sure everybody<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_218" id="Page_218">[218]</a></span>
-must enjoy listening to her. I thought this
-beautiful:</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
- <div class="poetry">
-<div class="verse">First rehearse your song by rote,</div>
-<div class="verse">To each word a warbling note.</div>
-<div class="verse">Hand in hand with fairy grace,</div>
-<div class="verse">Will we sing and bless this place.”</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p>As Maud said, “bless this place,” the
-lady who had welcomed Maud and her
-mother the evening before was walking
-past their table, and having overheard the
-words, she stopped.</p>
-
-<p>“Just what I like to hear.” Then mischievously
-looking at Maud’s mother. “But
-I did not expect the woods to have won so
-much enthusiasm already, did you?”</p>
-
-<p>“No, I did not,” and the mother’s lip unbent
-into a sunny smile. “But there is no
-telling what we may both say yet.”</p>
-
-<p>“This fish breakfast has been delicious,
-and besides everybody looks rested and
-cheery.”</p>
-
-<p>“That is just the point; no one can help
-being rested, because midnight-oil is unknown
-here and how can people help being
-cheery, when this bracing air is a tonic;
-And besides we have so many delightful
-sports. There are to be charades, and rollicking
-games, such as Twirl the Platter,
-and Going to Jerusalem, this evening, and
-to-day there are several things on hand.
-One is a driving and riding party. All the
-young people, with two chaperones, are<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_219" id="Page_219">[219]</a></span>
-going over to the next hotel to dinner. By
-the way, do you ride?”</p>
-
-<p>And Maud, whose face was flushed with
-the memory of her many pleasant hours
-on horseback, answered, “I could ride almost
-forever.”</p>
-
-<p>“Then you are the very young lady we
-want,” and turning to Maud’s mother, “I’m
-to be one of the chaperones. I’ll promise
-to bring her home safe. There is a fine saddle-horse
-waiting to be ridden, and——a fine
-young man, who is in despair because every
-one but himself has a riding companion.
-He is a New York lawyer. May I introduce
-him?” were her words, as the trio left the
-breakfast-room together.</p>
-
-<p>The answer must have been “Yes,” because,
-an hour later, one dowager said to another,
-“Did you hear that new girl, that
-airish creature with the golden hair, and
-sleepy-looking dark eyes, who came just
-before supper last evening, has gone off
-horseback riding with the one we called
-‘the dissatisfied young man?’ He seems
-to be perfectly satisfied now. I suppose
-neither of our daughters was good enough
-for him.”</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-<div class="chapter"></div>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_220" id="Page_220">[220]</a></span></p>
-
-
-
-
-<h2>THE FLOWER-TEST.</h2>
-
-
-<p>The postman rapped at my door, and
-presently the trim little maid brought me a
-big square letter on a tray. I knew that
-hand. Nobody but Penelope writes in that
-scraggly style, plain, too, as a pikestaff, and
-easy to read. “Darling Gertrude,” she began,
-“I am about to plead for a visit. It
-seems a little bit of forever since I saw you
-and I want you here in my country house
-where we’ll have time to enjoy one another,
-talk of the past and present tenses to our
-hearts’ content, and perhaps plan a happy
-future.</p>
-
-<p>“Let me tell you whom you’ll meet: Mr.
-and Mrs. Burkhardt,—you remember that
-sweet little girl bride who succeeded so well
-in blinding us—at first; dear old General
-Bolton, and his youngest brother, who paints
-almost as well as he talks; pretty Elsie
-Sterling and my cousin Bob. You see I put
-them together, but so would you if you
-could look out of my window and see them
-now. Bob has just mounted Elsie on White
-Baron, and now as I write the words he’s
-up on Caper and off they go. Well—we’ll
-borrow White Baron and Caper later on,
-you and I, and perhaps as we canter along<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_221" id="Page_221">[221]</a></span>
-side by side we may feel ourselves back
-again,—back—how many years? Never
-mind, we’ll not count. The years have been
-happy to us both, I hope.</p>
-
-<p>“But you’ll come—you must not say <i>no</i>,
-remember. Cordially your friend,</p>
-
-<div class="sig">“Penelope T. Gerard.”</div>
-
-<p>Indeed I would not say “No.” I would
-arrange and rearrange my summer plans to
-meet Penelope once more.</p>
-
-<p>It was scarce three years since I last saw
-her. She was then a bride of but two
-months and I spent three days with her
-just as I was leaving for Germany. During
-the interval our letters were more or less
-frequent, and so in a way we each kept track
-of the other and felt as close friends as we
-had been since our childhood.</p>
-
-<p>So it was with infinite pleasure I wrote an
-acceptance.</p>
-
-<p>“The Maples” is an unpretending rambling
-sort of a house, with piazzas, and “corners,”
-and nooks where one would least
-expect them. There is no rhyme or reason
-to the architecture, and an architect
-would shake his head in sad consternation.
-However, if he were told that three generations
-of Gerards had idled their summers
-happily away within and without its walls,
-and that each owner had added his share to
-the original pile, perhaps the exact architect
-would turn his critical smile to one of content<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_222" id="Page_222">[222]</a></span>
-and count himself fortunate to be allowed
-to enter this abode of happiness.</p>
-
-<p>It was a sunny day when I first drove up
-the long maple-lined driveway and there on
-the lawn, close to the entrance, was Penelope
-making tea and laughing one of her old
-merry laughs as the General stood before her.
-I suppose he was telling her one of his
-funny stories. I don’t know, for of course I
-only saw them a moment before the carriage
-stopped, and once more Penelope and I were
-together.</p>
-
-<p>The General had known us both as girls,
-and soon we were talking over old faces and
-scenes, and it seemed as though we had
-never been parted. The rest of the party
-had gone for a long drive and would not be
-back until seven o’clock. So we three
-talked on and on.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, it does seem so good to be here,
-Pen,” I said, and added, “As I came up the
-driveway, the first thing I heard was your
-laugh. You know how mamma used to like
-to hear you laugh.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, I remember how irrepressible I was.
-But, Trudy, you too would have laughed if
-you’d heard the General hang me.”</p>
-
-<p>“Hang you?”</p>
-
-<p>“Why, yes. Don’t you know the game?”
-Then seeing my bewilderment, she went on.
-“You must learn it. It’s fine for two people.
-Especially when one gets short of subjects
-to talk about.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_223" id="Page_223">[223]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Here General Bolton threw back his head
-and laughed heartily. “Short of subjects to
-talk about! I guess Trudy would as soon
-believe the Atlantic had gone dry as to
-think your nimble tongue was ever still. No,
-indeed! On the contrary, Trudy, she was
-bound she would make me let out a secret,
-and I, old fool, would probably have fallen
-into her trap, only she warned me by—but
-never mind how she warned me, or even
-that will fail me next time. So I hung her.
-Yes, I caught her well.” Then with a
-chuckle. “Tell her how, Pen, you know
-best how, for you know you were <i>hung</i>,
-and well hung.” And again he laughed.</p>
-
-<p>“That’s true. But try me again sometime,
-or rather, I’ll try you and we’ll see
-who does the <i>hanging</i>. No, not now, you
-need not look so eager.”</p>
-
-<p>“Bah, you’re afraid.”</p>
-
-<p>“No, indeed I am not. Just now however
-I mean to take Gertrude and show her
-where her room is. She has been ever so
-patient.”</p>
-
-<p>“But, my dear, please explain first about
-the <i>hanging</i>. It sounds so sanguinary.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, it is. Now listen and I’ll explain,
-and then we’ll go indoors. ‘To hang a
-person with a word,’ is the name of the
-game. You take any word you like in your
-mind and simply mention the number of
-letters it has. The other party has to guess,
-by letters, without making twelve misses.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_224" id="Page_224">[224]</a></span>
-If she fails to guess without twelve wrong
-guesses, she is <i>hung</i> as I was. That doesn’t
-seem very clear to you, I suppose.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, not exactly.”</p>
-
-<p>“I’ll take a word and show you. Now,
-General, I did not mean to give you your
-battle now. But you may have it if you’re
-ready.”</p>
-
-<p>“Steady, fire.”</p>
-
-<p>“All right.” Then she whispered to me
-the word “Eyelet.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, I’ll hang you, General Bolton, with
-a word of six letters.”</p>
-
-<p>“Bah, that’s easy. First, I’ll guess
-L.”</p>
-
-<p>“Right. It has fourth place.” Then she
-explained to me, “You have to tell the
-position of the letter.”</p>
-
-<p>“M.”</p>
-
-<p>“Wrong. That’s one. You help me
-keep count, Trudy. Remember, twelve
-wrong guesses and I’ve hung him.”</p>
-
-<p>“A.”</p>
-
-<p>“Wrong. That makes two.”</p>
-
-<p>“E.”</p>
-
-<p>“Right. First place.”</p>
-
-<p>“I.”</p>
-
-<p>“Wrong. Three.”</p>
-
-<p>“O.”</p>
-
-<p>“Wrong. You see he’s trying the vowels.
-How many does that make?”</p>
-
-<p>“Four.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, you girls need not look so jubilant;<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_225" id="Page_225">[225]</a></span>
-four doesn’t make much. I’ll guess U,
-next.”</p>
-
-<p>“Five,” we both shouted.</p>
-
-<p>“Well, T.”</p>
-
-<p>“Right, and sixth place.”</p>
-
-<p>“An e, an l, and a t. Let me see. Any
-n’s in it?”</p>
-
-<p>“No. That makes six. Oh, we have
-you, General, that is half the number.”</p>
-
-<p>“The battle is not won yet; no, nor lost
-yet. Well, I’ll guess G.”</p>
-
-<p>“Seven.”</p>
-
-<p>He looked down at the grass and
-drummed his fingers on his knee, then said,
-“D.”</p>
-
-<p>“Eight.”</p>
-
-<p>“An e, an l, and a t. That’s a queer
-combination when all the other vowels are
-out. Holloa! Is there another e?”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes. Third place.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, and another l?”</p>
-
-<p>“Nine.”</p>
-
-<p>“I hope this word is in the English language?”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, yes. It is English and it is used
-to-day, but a generation back it was used
-more frequently.”</p>
-
-<p>“A generation back! Bah!” and he
-straightened himself and rising strode back
-and forth with his hands clasped back of
-him. “I have it! That is, I am pretty
-certain. Has a y, hasn’t it?”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes—second place.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_226" id="Page_226">[226]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Eyelet!” he shouted. “Bah, you
-thought you had me. Well, you almost
-did. Those pesky vowels were at fault.”</p>
-
-<p>“Never mind, I’ll hang you yet. I have
-another word in mind. But not to-day.
-Come, Gertrude. You see it all now, I
-guess, and we must hurry in, or Will and
-the others will be back before we are ready
-for dinner. Good-bye for a time, General.
-Look to your guns. I shall be after you
-again.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_227" id="Page_227">[227]</a></span></p>
-
-
-<h3>II.</h3>
-
-<p>Breakfast was more than half over, some
-mornings later, when in came Bob and
-Irving Bolton. A chorus of “Fie, fie,”
-greeted them, and Elsie Sterling shook her
-fingers threateningly as Bob explained,
-“Pen, don’t be hard on a fellow. Irving
-and I talked too late, I suppose, last night.
-At any rate I know I should never have
-turned up this morning only that he yelled
-across to me that lunch was most ready.
-And then he loitered to help me share the
-blame of our lateness. Hey, old fellow?”
-and he looked across at Irving as he slid
-into the vacant place between Elsie and
-Mrs. Burkhardt.</p>
-
-<p>“You are both rascals, both of you,”
-growled the General. “Burkhardt and I
-have been up hours and have planned the
-finest sort of a day for the rest of you ungrateful
-ones. Shall we tell them, Burkhardt?”</p>
-
-<p>Before Mr. Burkhardt had a chance to
-reply, Penelope interposed, “Let me try
-and guess.”</p>
-
-<p>“All right, Mrs. Gerard, but you’ll have
-to try twenty questions or some such game<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_228" id="Page_228">[228]</a></span>
-or you’ll not hit it. It’s a fine scheme.”
-And Ned Burkhardt nodded triumphantly
-while he put a piece of buttered toast on his
-wife’s plate.</p>
-
-<p>“I’ll guess just once, and without the help
-of twenty questions either. It’s a picnic.”</p>
-
-<p>“Bah!” exclaimed the General. “You
-overheard, or somebody told you.”</p>
-
-<p>“Perhaps I did, or perhaps that omnipresent
-‘little bird’ chirped it in my ear. But,
-at any rate, it’s a fine idea. What say the
-rest of you?”</p>
-
-<p>“Just the thing. Fine,” was the reply.</p>
-
-<p>“How shall we go, Will, and where?”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, let’s go to Sylvan Grove. It is only
-ten miles. Let me see. Two of you can
-ride horseback.</p>
-
-<p>“Will you and Irving ride, Gertrude?
-And, Burkhardt, you and madame and Elsie
-and Bob might take the buckboard, and
-we three old fogies—pardon me, General,—will
-follow on with the provisions. Will
-that suit, Penel?”</p>
-
-<p>“All right. And now let’s get ready.
-Can you all start in three quarters of an
-hour?”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, indeed.”</p>
-
-<p>Promptly we all sallied forth, and it was a
-merry party. The air was perfect, and Irving,
-Bolton and I cantered on ahead, and
-finding ourselves far in advance, we turned
-and rode across country for a few miles.</p>
-
-<p>It was a perfect day, and the picnic was a<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_229" id="Page_229">[229]</a></span>
-perfect success. At dinner that night we
-voted it as the best day yet.</p>
-
-<p>“Well, to-morrow is the golf tournament,
-you know,” said Will, and turning to his
-wife, he added, “Didn’t you say there was a
-dinner on too?”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, yes. I nearly forgot. Dear old
-Mrs. Preston asked us all to dinner.” Turning
-towards me she said, “You remember
-at our tea, the day after you came, a white-haired
-lady accompanied by her granddaughter?”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, indeed I do. I think you said she
-lives in that gray stone house we passed
-to-day.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, that is the one. It’s a lovely house
-too—and such china! Why, Mrs. Burkhardt,
-she has a willow set that would make
-your mouth water. Perhaps we’ll see it.”</p>
-
-<p>Then turning swiftly, for dinner was over
-and we were just leaving the room, “Listen,
-all of you, please. To-morrow night
-at Mrs. Preston’s, and next night nowhere.
-It is Gertrude’s last night here and let’s
-spend it all alone,” and having made her
-little speech she slipped her arm around my
-waist and we went out together.</p>
-
-<p>We passed through one of the French
-windows, out on the piazza, and sat there
-late into the night. Snatches of conversation
-came to us again and again, and
-Mrs. Burkhardt’s sweet soprano as she and
-Elsie sang together, while Irving accompanied<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_230" id="Page_230">[230]</a></span>
-on the mandoline. But we, Penelope
-and I, remained alone, each happy in the other.</p>
-
-<p>The last night came, as all “last nights”
-must, and with it, “in sympathy with our
-mood,” was the General’s courteous construction,
-came a heavy, moaning storm.
-Will poked the fire and piled on the logs as
-though a blizzard were raging without.
-Finally, he paused and said, “I guess, Pen,
-dear, you may have your wish. No one
-will disturb our family serenity this night.”</p>
-
-<p>How cosy it seemed and how happy all
-appeared. Elsie and Mrs. Burkhardt, Irving
-and Bob were playing checkers in the next
-room. Ned and Penelope were talking about
-dogs and horses and comparing their relative
-intelligence. The General was looking over
-some foreign photographs, while Will and I
-bestowed our attention on the fire.</p>
-
-<p>“Truly,” spoke General Bolton, “did you
-ever get up early enough to see Covent
-Garden Market in its glory!”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, General, do you mean to infer absolute
-laziness, or do you mean that the gray
-gloom of London would forbid an early
-awakening?”</p>
-
-<p>“Never mind what I inferred. Did you
-ever go to the market—early?”</p>
-
-<p>“Strange as it may seem to you, I did. I
-went one morning to Covent Garden Market,
-and early, about six o’clock, with an English
-girl. It was a wonderful sight.”</p>
-
-<p>“See,” he interrupted, “it was this picture<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_231" id="Page_231">[231]</a></span>
-of a costermonger with the palms and ferns
-that made me ask you.”</p>
-
-<p>“It is very natural—the little donkey,
-the barrow and all. And how very cheap
-the plants and flowers are—why that morning
-I bought for sixpence as many moss
-roses and buds as I could carry.”</p>
-
-<p>“Gertrude, did you ever see that?” And
-Will gave me a printed slip that he had been
-searching for in his pocketbook. It was
-called the Floral Test.</p>
-
-<p>“No, but isn’t it good? Let’s ask the
-others the questions and see who can answer
-the most.”</p>
-
-<p>“Come, all you people,” called Will, and
-he stepped over to the next room. “Aren’t
-you tired of checkers? Gertrude has a new
-game.”</p>
-
-<p>When all were seated around expectantly
-he said: “Now, Gertrude, you ask the questions
-and we’ll reply. It is called,” he explained,
-“the Floral Test. She’ll ask questions
-and we’ll give answers in the names of
-flowers.”</p>
-
-<p>“Tell me the name of a maiden, and the
-color of her hair.”</p>
-
-<p>“Maria-gold,” shouted Irving.</p>
-
-<p>“Good for you, old fellow. How did you
-know?” questioned Bob.</p>
-
-<p>“O here,” and young Bolton tapped his
-forehead significantly.</p>
-
-<p>“What adjective fitted her and what was
-her brother’s name?”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_232" id="Page_232">[232]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>All were silent until Mrs. Burkhardt timidly
-said, “Is it Sweet-William?”</p>
-
-<p>“That’s right. Now try this,—What was
-his favorite sport in winter?”</p>
-
-<p>“That’s easy. Snowball,” and Bob threw
-his handkerchief at Will, who sharply returned
-it.</p>
-
-<p>“Ned, what was his favorite instrument?”</p>
-
-<p>“Is it the trumpet?”</p>
-
-<p>“That is right. Can you tell me, Elsie,
-at what hour he awoke his father by playing
-on it?”</p>
-
-<p>“Four o’clock.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, and what did his father apply to
-him?”</p>
-
-<p>“A golden-rod,” two or three shouted.</p>
-
-<p>“What office did his father occupy in the
-church?”</p>
-
-<p>All seemed puzzled. Finally Elsie said,
-“Was it elder?”</p>
-
-<p>“Right. What was the young man’s
-name, and what did he write it with?”</p>
-
-<p>“That is a poser, Trudy. You’ll have to
-tell them, I guess,” suggested Will.</p>
-
-<p>“Jonquil, don’t you see?”</p>
-
-<p>“Bah!” exclaimed the General, while the
-others laughed.</p>
-
-<p>“Irving, what candy do you usually
-buy?”</p>
-
-<p>“He doesn’t know,” said Will, “but wait
-a moment and I’ll show you some,” and he
-went to a closet and brought back a box of
-buttercups.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_233" id="Page_233">[233]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Well, what did John do when he popped
-the question?”</p>
-
-<p>“Aster,” yelled the General.</p>
-
-<p>“That is correct, General. See if you
-can tell what ghastly trophy he offered
-her.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, that is easy. A bleeding heart.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, what did she say as John knelt
-before her?”</p>
-
-<p>“Why, Johnny-jump-up, of course.”</p>
-
-<p>“That’s right. You are fine at this game,
-General. Can you tell me what minister
-married them?”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, Jack-in-the-Pulpit,” exclaimed Penelope.</p>
-
-<p>“What did she wear in her hair?”</p>
-
-<p>“Bridal-wreath.”</p>
-
-<p>“What flowers bloomed in her cheeks?”</p>
-
-<p>“Roses.”</p>
-
-<p>“What did John say when obliged to
-leave her for a time?”</p>
-
-<p>“Forget-me-not.”</p>
-
-<p>“That is all. It is a fine game, Will.
-Where did you find it?”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, I came across it in a paper, and I
-know Pen likes that sort of thing, so I cut it
-out. But I forgot all about it until you two
-were talking over Covent Garden and the
-early market.”</p>
-
-<p>“I think I can add one to that list of
-questions,” and Penelope arose and, drawing
-me up by the hand, said, “What flower
-should we put in the candle tray at night?”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_234" id="Page_234">[234]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Poppy,” came the quick reply, and Bob
-quoted,</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
- <div class="poetry">
-<div class="verse">The Rock-a-bye lady</div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1em;">From Hush-a-bye street,</span></div>
-<div class="verse">The poppies they hang</div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 1em;">From her head to her feet.</span></div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p>“—— oh, I say, Pen,” he called, as we
-were on the stairs, “what shall we all do
-when Gertrude leaves us?”</p>
-
-<p>“Do you mean that as a Floral Test
-question?”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes.”</p>
-
-<p>“I know what I’ll do, but I don’t know
-any flower or plant to describe it.”</p>
-
-<p>“Why, Penelope, we’ll all balsam.”</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-<div class="chapter"></div>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_235" id="Page_235">[235]</a></span></p>
-
-
-
-
-<h2>HOURS WITH THE POETS.</h2>
-
-
-<p>“Felicia Hemans was an American,
-born ‘down East’ somewhere; I think in the
-same section Nora Perry hails from,” was
-the startling announcement uttered in my
-hearing, by a “sweet girl graduate” of so
-short time ago as June, 1892.</p>
-
-<p>“Pardon contradiction,” I called from my
-end of the library, “but Felicia Hemans
-was an Englishwoman, and her birthplace
-was Liverpool.”</p>
-
-<p>The surprise the above incident created
-caused my own thought to revert to the
-honored and beloved poets who have so
-lately left us, as well as to the mighty
-revered army, from Chaucer down, who
-have more or less an abiding-place in our
-hearts.</p>
-
-<p>And then followed another thought,—would
-it not be a wise use of time for some
-of us to study the lives and works of these
-poets, the minor as well as the more prominent
-ones, and so save ourselves from
-similar ludicrous blunders as the one above
-given?</p>
-
-<p>And particularly do I appeal to the young<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_236" id="Page_236">[236]</a></span>
-girls just out; but even the busy schoolgirl
-would have the opportunity if she would
-only systematically arrange her work.
-Afternoon classes might be formed, or evening
-ones if preferred; the latter would
-have the advantages, as then the big brothers
-might come. Simple refreshments, too,
-would not jar on harmony, but rather tend
-to sociability. These could be provided by
-the hostess, for the girls should take turns
-in having the class meet at each house. It
-would also be found to be a benefit to have
-a president and secretary for such a class,
-or, if an old person could be gotten, popular
-and wise enough to take charge, that would
-prove still more satisfactory.</p>
-
-<p>It is quite the fashion now to be a member
-of a dancing class, why not be a member of
-a poets’ class, and so take care of your head
-as well as your heels? Indeed, classes are
-the “order of the day,” for language, music,
-riding, cooking, wood-carving, needlework,
-indeed everything, and the young girls or
-boys who may read this sketch certainly
-want to be into things as well as their
-fellows.</p>
-
-<p>In these hours with the poets, take a
-different poet for each time the class meets.
-Before the close of one meeting decide on
-who will be the next one taken up. For
-example, will it be Keats, Saxe, Bayard
-Taylor, or Jean Ingelow? That settled,
-name who will be the one to give a biographical<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_237" id="Page_237">[237]</a></span>
-sketch of the poet. This may be
-in the form of an original paper, or read
-directly from an encyclopedia. Also name
-two or more members to read or recite poems
-from the poet under consideration. Discussion
-and criticism should be freely allowed,
-and unanswerable questions should
-be always answered at the next meeting before
-entering on the new poet. It would
-save time to have the hostess answer the
-questions left from the week before, as she
-could have numerous books at hand, and of
-necessity would be present.</p>
-
-<p>Do not say this is too difficult a task.
-Nothing is too difficult for those who
-try.</p>
-
-<p>And do not think such study and hours
-are unnecessary. If you do, find out how
-many of your classmates can at once answer
-whom Ben Jonson adopted as his poetical
-son? He was a pastoral lyrist, and left behind
-him thirteen hundred poems. He was
-a bachelor, though he lived to be eighty-four
-years of age. He was born at Cheapside,
-London, in 1591, and died in 1674, at
-Dean Prior, which living was presented to
-him, for at times he was very poor. His
-name was Robert Herrick.</p>
-
-<p>Or does my reader know that Thomas
-Gray was a close student of Dryden, or that
-the author of the first important body of
-English sonnets was the romantic hero, Sir
-Philip Sidney, and that he died when but<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_238" id="Page_238">[238]</a></span>
-thirty-two years of age, having been conspicuous
-at the court of Elizabeth, was a
-soldier of great promise, a leading statesman,
-and has a prominent place in history?</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-<div class="chapter"></div>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_239" id="Page_239">[239]</a></span></p>
-
-
-
-
-<h2>“THANK YOU!”</h2>
-
-
-<p>“I sent her a basket of fruit for Christmas.
-The basket was of the finest Chinese straw,
-and decorated with handsome pale green
-satin ribbon; and the fruit, Bartlett pears,
-mandarins, and white grapes; but she has
-not acknowledged it by either verbal or
-written thanks.”</p>
-
-<p>“Perhaps she never received it,” was the
-reply.</p>
-
-<p>“I know that she did, for my daughter
-called one day and recognized the basket,
-which stood on the table in the hall through
-which she passed.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, but you know she is a very busy
-woman.”</p>
-
-<p>“That is no excuse. People may be ever
-so busy, but they should not forget decent
-courtesy. Indeed, my experience has been
-that the busy people are, oftener than otherwise,
-the most polite people. My theory is,
-they do not allow themselves to rust in any
-direction; duty should be done, and is done.
-If an individual cannot take time to thank a
-friend for a Christmas gift, next year that
-friend may not take time to give one. I<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_240" id="Page_240">[240]</a></span>
-am sure it is not the question of time; it is
-the question of knowledge or carelessness.
-There are people who really don’t know
-enough to be polite; and others know, but
-are too indifferent to take the trouble, forgetting
-that their conduct reflects most disagreeably
-upon themselves. One would
-think a kind heart might dictate, if common-sense
-did not. But I suppose some
-people have neither common-sense nor kindness
-of heart.”</p>
-
-<p>Overhearing the above conversation, the
-listener was reminded of a similar instance
-lately experienced in her own life. A letter
-had been written, which had honorably adjusted
-a money complication that concerned
-the gentleman to whom she wrote and a society
-which he represented, but did not concern
-or reflect upon the writer in the smallest
-degree excepting for the goodwill she
-bore her friend, and yet for this same letter
-she did not receive one word of thanks—not
-even the acknowledgment of its ever having
-been received. That it <i>was</i> received
-was later proved by a printed report that it
-would have been impossible to set in order
-without it.</p>
-
-<p>The examples given are by no means rare
-and peculiar, but may be duplicated over
-and over by every intelligent person. And
-in this age of letters, when printed matter
-was never so reasonable, and when teachers
-and schools may be really had “without<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_241" id="Page_241">[241]</a></span>
-money and without price,” when lectures on
-all topics are inexpensively if not, indeed,
-freely given, where is the excuse for knowledge
-not to be the power of all? It would
-almost seem as if even those indifferently
-educated could not help but have learned
-to say “thank you,” or to acknowledge by
-pen or voice any accommodation, help, or
-present.</p>
-
-<p>Blood is sure to tell, and with Emerson
-we say that “man is physically as well as
-metaphysically a thing of shreds and
-patches, borrowed unequally from good
-and bad ancestors.” To those of gentle
-blood, rudeness would be impossible. If
-there are partial lapses of manner with those
-looked upon as the refined, the question is
-asked, “Where does she get that trait?”
-and possibly the answer may be, “Her
-great-grandmother.” For thus are the sins
-visited upon the children of even the third
-and fourth generations. The deportment of
-the real gentleman or woman can never be
-unpleasantly criticised. They could not be
-ungracious, no matter how hard they should
-try. If there is ever a question about how
-far politeness should extend, err on the side
-of too much rather than that of too little.
-Have too much manner rather than not
-enough. Be too profuse in thanks rather
-than too scant and meagre.</p>
-
-<p>When a gift has been received or a courtesy
-of any kind shown you, at once acknowledge<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_242" id="Page_242">[242]</a></span>
-it, unless you are too ill so to do,
-or a positively important matter prevents.
-If it is impossible to write to the one you are
-indebted to that day, do it the next. But
-as it is so easy for most of us to have good
-intentions, do not put off for to-morrow
-what should be done to-day.</p>
-
-<p>The note should not be long, but heartily
-and pleasantly worded. Some people might
-reflect, “I would not tell a falsehood, and
-how can I say I like a thing if I do not?” Or,
-as happened lately, two boxes of wild flowers
-were sent me from California by two little
-boys, with a note in one of the boxes containing
-the words, “Which flowers got to
-you best, Pierre’s or mine?” and I was
-obliged to at once put both boxes in the fire.
-Should I write of the sweetness of the blossoms
-and the purity and beauty of their coloring?
-By no means. But I would not
-wound the childish hearts by telling of the
-condition of the flowers at the time they
-were received. Remember the thought
-that prompted the gift. Dwell on that
-altogether if you will. Send a loving message
-to the donors, and they will never
-dream you did not like their offering in the
-one case or were obliged to burn it in the
-other.</p>
-
-<p>After all, remembrance is the sweetest
-of all earthly gifts. When the dear ones with
-whom we journey are no longer here, we
-will miss their gentle ministry. May not<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_243" id="Page_243">[243]</a></span>
-any one of us then know the bitterness of
-remorse, but rather let us hasten to send
-abundant, hearty thanks to those who have
-taken time to think and care for us!</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-<div class="chapter"></div>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_244" id="Page_244">[244]</a></span></p>
-
-
-
-
-<h2>A STORY WITHIN A STORY</h2>
-
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
- <div class="poetry">
-<div class="verse">It was the time when lilies blow,</div>
-<div class="verse">And clouds are highest up in air,</div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p class="unindent">that four young people were vivaciously
-talking on the front piazza at Aunt Mary’s.</p>
-
-<p>Aunt Mary was everybody’s friend, but
-particularly beloved by the nephews and
-nieces, of whom this story tells. And her
-home, “just the jolliest kind of a place to
-visit,” Jo said, as he described beforehand
-the expected good times his sister Madeline
-with their cousins, Madge and Ernest, were
-to have in the week’s vacation given them
-for recuperation after the half-yearly examination.</p>
-
-<p>Aunt Mary’s house was in New Jersey;
-of course, it was on a farm, for whoever
-would think of looking for such fun and
-frolic anywhere else? And as all the cousins
-came from city homes, and Jo and his
-sister from a small flat of a large apartment
-house, the freedom of space which the
-country had given, added to the bracing air
-and sunny, cheerful atmosphere, was a delightful
-contrast. But no one would have
-thought, though, that Madeline was seventeen<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_245" id="Page_245">[245]</a></span>
-years of age, or that Madge was called
-“Miss Propriety” at home, for they would
-race over the farm, playing the wildest of
-games “like a couple of tomboys,” their
-brothers said. But Aunt Mary let them do
-exactly as they pleased, and would always
-sigh when she would talk of their shut-in
-city life, and point to their red cheeks with
-great pride, which she assured them came
-from living with her. And the boys, too,
-had seemed wonderfully benefited by their
-running, racing, riding, ball and tennis playing.
-Even the hallooing “got plenty of
-fresh air in their lungs,” Ernest said, which,
-with other things too many to mention, had
-been done in this brief holiday.</p>
-
-<p>To-morrow they must start homeward;
-and just because they were exhausted with
-one and another game, they are, at the
-commencement of our story, resting and
-talking on Aunt Mary’s front piazza.</p>
-
-<p>Ernest is rubbing his right arm meanwhile,
-for he says, “It has pained me dreadfully
-ever since that last catch at the ball.”</p>
-
-<p>And Aunt Mary has just joined them,
-carrying with her a big tin waiter on which
-is a large molasses cake, so fresh that it is yet
-hot from the oven, and a four-quart pitcher
-of milk, which Bessie, the brown-eyed Alderney,
-had given at the morning milking
-hour. At sight of their aunt thus laden,
-three cheers were laughingly and loudly
-given, for if there is one way quicker than<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_246" id="Page_246">[246]</a></span>
-another to young people’s hearts, perhaps
-it is by the way of hot molasses cake and
-ice-cold fresh milk, as rich as many city
-folks have their cream.</p>
-
-<p>Jo, who was eighteen years old on his
-last birthday, is considered the young man
-of the party. He has always been a gentleman,
-and he at once rushed to the sitting-room
-for his aunt’s favorite rocking-chair.
-As Ernest has already disposed of the tray
-by putting it on a spruce-bark covered table
-which stands for all sorts of convenient purposes
-on the piazza, Aunt Mary is comfortably
-placed in her easy-chair before she realizes
-that Jo had gone for it. “Oh, what
-delicious cake!” “How kind you are!”
-“I must have another glass of that milk.”
-“Isn’t this lots better than being in school?”
-etc., were the pleasing comments and ejaculations
-which any stranger might have
-heard passing on the other side of the road
-from the house, or, indeed, a quarter of a
-mile beyond it.</p>
-
-<p>After awhile, however, the eating and
-drinking were over, and “What shall we
-do now?” was the question. “I’m tired
-out, for one,” said Ernest, and “I for another,”
-continued Madge; “still, these are
-our last hours and we must do something;
-we cannot afford to lose a moment. Aunt
-Mary, you tell us what to do.”</p>
-
-<p>“Will you promise to do what I tell
-you?”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_247" id="Page_247">[247]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“We will,” answered Madeline. “Of
-course we will,” continued Ernest; “a likely
-thing we could say no, now, of all times,
-after the way this cake and milk have disappeared.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, it’s agreed, then,” said Aunt Mary.
-“I want you to entertain me awhile by
-telling a story.”</p>
-
-<p>“A story! How? We don’t exactly
-understand, do we?” asked Jo, looking at
-one and another perplexed face.</p>
-
-<p>“The story,” answered Aunt Mary, “must
-be altogether, ‘made up,’ as Madge would
-say. It must be divided in four chapters or
-parts, as nearly equal in length as is possible.
-Jo can begin it, and, after talking, say
-for two minutes, Madge must follow, then
-Ernest and Madeline will close.”</p>
-
-<p>These words were followed with whistles
-from the boys, and “Oh, my!” from the
-girls, to all of which Aunt Mary said,
-“You promised, and of course you will do
-it. And when the story is told, we will all
-drive over to Bear’s Gulch, and that will
-take the remainder of the afternoon.”</p>
-
-<p>These words were followed by a halt and
-sighs. “But it would be a burning shame,”
-said Madeline, “not to please Aunt Mary;
-besides, of course, we can do it. We can
-do anything, if we try.”</p>
-
-<p>“So say we all of us; so say we all,”
-sang Ernest.</p>
-
-<p>And Aunt Mary laughingly replied, “The<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_248" id="Page_248">[248]</a></span>
-sooner the story is started, the sooner it is
-through, and the sooner it is through, the
-sooner we have the drive.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, as I’m the starter, here goes!”
-said Jo.</p>
-
-<p>“And,” interrupted his aunt, “when
-your time is up I’ll call Madge’s name, and
-so on. Don’t let us have any breaks. Tell
-me a story just as smoothly as if you were
-reading it from a book. Now, Jo.”</p>
-
-<p>“My title is, ‘The Adventures of an Irish
-Setter.’ When Ned Armstrong was so small a
-boy that he yet wore knickerbockers, he received
-a short visit from his cousin William
-Adams. He, too, was a little boy and was
-often called ‘Sweet William,’ on account
-of his sunny disposition, for, notwithstanding
-he was sole heir to great wealth, being
-the only child of rich parents, rich enough
-to count their wealth by many millions
-of dollars,—he was neither selfish, exacting,
-nor in any way disagreeable, thereby an
-example to some grown-up people we have
-met. When William came on this visit, he
-brought with him a large, well-trained dog.
-He was a magnificent fellow, and Ned, his
-cousin, was as amazed as he was pleased to
-find that the dog was a present to himself
-from William’s father, his Uncle Ned, after
-whom he was named. This uncle had long
-known he must sometime part with Moselle;
-he had been his own from the time
-Moselle was a puppy but two months old.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_249" id="Page_249">[249]</a></span>
-The reason for the separation of master and
-dog was the giving up of housekeeping for
-life in a hotel, as Aunt Cornelia, Uncle Ned’s
-wife, was now too much of an invalid to continue
-caring for a house, even with the assistance
-of a housekeeper, of whom she had tried
-many, and dogs are among the ‘not allowed’
-in hotels. So, Uncle Ned, remembering his
-little nephew in the country, and knowing
-how he would prize and kindly treat his old
-pet and friend, sent Moselle by his son
-William to him. This gift made Ned, however,
-nearly crazy with delight, and the old
-gardener often feared the results to his
-flower beds after the races which Ned and
-Moselle would take over them. Indeed the
-dog was not to blame if he forgot many of
-his well-trained ways, country life with
-the little boy was so ungoverned by comparison
-with what it had been with his staid,
-but kind old master.</p>
-
-<p>“One day, five months after Moselle had
-changed his home, Ned was missing. No
-one knew where the child had gone. He
-did not have a regular nurse; but an old
-colored servant called Tamar had been in
-the family many years, and she, with other
-duties, was supposed to keep an eye on
-this child. But Tamar had been negligent
-this time. Ned was missing. The big
-garden was searched everywhere, thinking
-possibly he had fallen asleep under some
-of the rose or berry bushes, but Ned was not<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_250" id="Page_250">[250]</a></span>
-in the garden. Strangely enough, as the
-boy and dog were counted inseparable,
-Moselle was all right and contentedly sunning
-himself on a pansy bed, which was a
-favorite place of his, though often scolded
-and chased away for thus flattening the
-beautiful flowers——”</p>
-
-<p>“Madge, it is your time.”</p>
-
-<p>“As Ned was not found in the garden,
-the next place to look was all over the house,
-while the cry of ‘Ned! Ned!’ was heard
-in every room and from several windows,
-for as one after another looked they would
-throw up a window-sash, thinking Ned
-must be somewhere outside in the grounds
-and would surely hear them call, and they
-would hear his voice in answer, even if they
-did not see him. But it was all in vain.
-Ned could neither be seen nor heard, and
-his mother and sister Mary, a girl of twelve
-years old, who were the only ones of the
-family then at home, finally cried with fright
-and anxiety. But their fright was of short
-duration, for, before an hour had passed,
-Ned was back perfectly safe, without scratch
-or injury, and having the rested dewy look
-to his eyes which all children have who
-have lately woke from sleep.</p>
-
-<p>“It was Isaac, the stableman, who found
-him. No one ever could really explain
-why Moselle was not with him at the time,
-but the child had wandered alone into the stable,
-and the man passing in and out had not<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_251" id="Page_251">[251]</a></span>
-noticed him, who, probably tired with play,
-had fallen asleep on the hay. While thus
-asleep, Isaac had closed the stable door and
-fastened it, preparatory to a three miles’ drive
-to the flour mill. On his return with the
-meal, the clatter connected with the moving
-of the stable door and getting the horses
-back had wakened the child, who came hurriedly
-out, rubbing his eyes as he ran,
-and calling at the top of his lungs for Moselle,
-not knowing others had as loudly been calling
-for him. But Moselle did not answer.
-There was no running, jumping and wagging
-of the tail from his dog-friend, for Moselle
-was now the missing one. In the
-gladness of Ned’s being found, neither Mrs.
-Armstrong, nor Mary, nor, indeed, any of
-the servants, had given the dog a thought,
-and it was not until Ned refused to be comforted
-that one of the help slowly said,
-‘There was a poor old soldier here this
-morning, just at the time Isaac came home
-with the meal. I thought, perhaps, Isaac
-had given him a lift up. He asked for a
-cup of coffee, but I had none made, and
-didn’t want to take the trouble to make any,
-so I gave him a couple of slices of bread
-with apple-sauce between. I reckon he’s
-made way with the dog, the mean, contemptible
-wretch!’</p>
-
-<p>“And he had. Moselle was already miles
-away from the house of little Ned Armstrong,
-and his companion was the same<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_252" id="Page_252">[252]</a></span>
-poorly-clad half-sick looking soldier that
-the housemaid had given the apple-sauce
-sandwich to that morning. The dog was
-prevented from running home by a strong
-cord fastened around his neck at one end
-and the other end firmly clutched by the
-man’s hand, and both dog and man had
-had several helps over the road, as their
-rested-looking condition proved. That
-night, in the city of Wilmington, North
-Carolina, the soldier sold the dog for twenty-three
-dollars to a handsome young army
-officer, at present stationed at Old Point
-Comfort, but who had a three days’ leave of
-absence to visit a sick relative at Wilmington.
-The dog and his new master had
-already started for ‘Old Point’ when the
-officer suddenly remembered—”</p>
-
-<p>“Ernest, your time now.”</p>
-
-<p>“That he had forgotten to ask the dog’s
-name, and, as he could not take time to
-hunt the man up from whom he had bought
-the dog, he decided to christen him Duke.</p>
-
-<p>“It was the month of March, and the
-Hygeia Hotel was a gay scene of life and
-beauty. Among the guests was a charming
-young woman, talented and rich, but
-also very lame. She could not walk without
-the aid of a crutch; but, notwithstanding
-this detraction, she fascinated everybody
-by her lovely manner and cheerful,
-sunny disposition. The gentleman who
-had bought Moselle, now called Duke,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_253" id="Page_253">[253]</a></span>
-daily dined at the Hygeia, and in a particularly
-fortunate time was presented to the
-lame lady. He was, therefore, the envy
-of all the unmarried army officers who,
-with every one else, would delight in thinking
-of her as their friend. The young lady
-admired Duke very much, and often petted
-and caressed him, and the dog seemed
-proud and pleased to be in her company.
-However, the time came for the lame lady
-to return to her home in New York, and
-the dog was left alone with his master,
-though I might add, not alone, for everybody
-living at the ‘Point’ seemed to know
-Duke and would always praise his beauty.
-One old gentleman offered two hundred
-dollars for him once, but it was refused, his
-owner saying, ‘I will never sell Duke,
-though some day I may be tempted to give
-him away.’ Duke was taught many tricks
-while at the Fortress, among others, to
-carry letters. These he would hold in his
-mouth, but would neither tear them with
-his teeth, nor wet them with his tongue.
-He was also taught to ‘say his prayers,’
-which he always did kneeling on a wooden
-chair, with his head resting with closed
-eyes on the back. When ‘Amen’ was said
-this was the signal to jump over the chair-back
-and shake himself as if pleased to
-have prayer-time over. One day, as the
-mail was being distributed, Duke, as was
-his wont, was standing near, and one of the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_254" id="Page_254">[254]</a></span>
-officers putting a letter in the dog’s mouth,
-said: ‘Take that to your master. It’s from
-his friend, the lame lady.’ This the officer
-meant for a joke, but it was really true, and,
-as the letter concerned Duke, we will insert
-it here:</p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p>“‘<span class="smcap">Dear Mr. G——</span>:</p>
-
-<p>“‘According to promise, I write
-you the result of the operation, which I am
-sure you will be glad to learn is a complete
-success. My physicians say if I will have
-patience for another month I will then walk
-as well as anybody. Please give Duke an
-extra pat on my account, and whenever you
-feel constrained to part with him, remember</p>
-
-<div class="sig"><span style="margin-right: 4em;">“‘Your friend</span><br />“‘<span class="smcap">Pauline Jerome</span>.’</div></div>
-
-<p>“That settles it!” exclaimed Duke’s
-master. ‘I learned last night I was soon
-to be sent to California, and I at once
-decided my good dog and I must separate.
-And now that he can have so kind a mistress,
-and I have this opportunity to win
-the gratitude of my lovely friend, what a
-fool I would be to hesitate longer. On my
-way to California, I will arrange to pass
-through New York City, and will then personally
-give my dog to Miss Jerome.’”</p>
-
-<p>“Madeline, will you finish the story?”</p>
-
-<p>“Six months have now passed since Duke
-exchanged his home at Fortress Monroe<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_255" id="Page_255">[255]</a></span>
-for the luxurious apartments of his beautiful
-mistress. The dog is constantly tended
-with the greatest care, groomed as tenderly
-as if made of human flesh. He sleeps in
-my lady’s room and seems truly aristocratic
-with his lordly bearing. His baby-blue
-satin ribbon bow, knotted into the solid
-gold collar, which bears his name and
-address, a Christmas gift from his mistress,
-causes him to appear what indeed he has
-become—almost spoiled with good fortune.</p>
-
-<p>“But what a change a few short hours
-can make! That night there was a cry of
-‘Fire!’ My! the alarm and panic it raised!
-for the fire was not noticed until there was
-so much flame and smoke that it was with
-the utmost difficulty the inmates of the
-house escaped with their lives. Nothing
-else was saved. Miss Jerome calling to a
-fireman, said: ‘Take care of my dog, and
-I will pay you well.’ The man, catching
-the dog harshly by the collar, fairly dragged
-him out of the burning building, for Duke
-seemed dazed with smoke and fright. But,
-on reaching the street, the dog was entirely
-beyond control, and, with wonderful strength
-freed himself from the man’s grasp, strong
-as it was, and dashed down the street. Miss
-Jerome offered at different times large rewards
-for his return; but it was useless,
-Duke and his mistress were never again to
-meet, he was as lost to her as if he had
-never existed. Several months passed, after<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_256" id="Page_256">[256]</a></span>
-the fire, and the dog once more found
-friends, a home, and his old name, Moselle.
-Peculiar events happen in life, and few more
-so than the following. Mr. and Mrs. Adams
-of whom this story first told, had gone to
-the South of France, hoping to recover the
-health of Mrs. Adams, on whose account it
-will be remembered the valued dog had to
-be parted with. They were accompanied
-by Mr. and Mrs. Armstrong and their children,
-Ned and May. The older people of
-this party were one morning talking on the
-lawn connected with the Hôtel de Grace,
-when Ned and May suddenly burst upon
-them accompanied by a large dog, who was
-jumping and tearing around as if wild with
-joy. Seeing Mr. Adams, he left the children,
-and, jumping on his lap, laid his head
-on his shoulder and moaned and actually
-seemed to weep with gladness. ‘This is
-Moselle, Moselle!’ shouted Ned; ‘we saw
-him with an old fiddler out here on the road.
-I thought he looked like my dear old dog,
-though he is so thin and starved looking,
-and I called “Moselle,” and you should
-have seen him run. Those long legs of
-his fairly raced to reach me. Indeed, he
-knocked me down. He was too happy to
-behave, wasn’t you, Moselle?’ and Ned
-tenderly smoothed his beautiful head, which
-he yet kept on his old master’s shoulder, as
-though they must never be separated again,
-while his tender brown eyes seemed to speak<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_257" id="Page_257">[257]</a></span>
-of affectionate content. The family never
-again parted with Moselle until he died,
-which sad event occurred towards the close
-of the same year. The dog’s exposures and
-privations after the fire, during his varied
-life, seemed to have weakened and injured
-him to such an extent that, though tender
-care was constantly lavished, it came too
-late. All that Mr. Adams ever learned of
-Moselle’s history, he heard from the fiddler,
-who had bought him from an old woman,
-who said he belonged to her son, and that
-they had had nothing but bad luck since the
-dog was theirs, and she would be glad to
-get rid of him at any price. The fiddler
-thought the son had stolen the dog, and, as
-he was himself having bad fortune, he determined
-to leave America and return to his
-own country, and had brought the dog over
-the sea, thinking in that way if there was
-any wrong dealing connected with the dog
-he would never be discovered. ‘But,’ said
-the old fiddler, gravely shaking his head,
-‘I’ve always heard “wrong will out,” and
-I’m thankful to dispose of him for so liberal
-a compensation as you have so kindly made
-me.’ With these words, the fiddler folded
-his money over, thrust it in his pocket and
-walked away.”</p>
-
-<p>“Thank you for such an entertaining
-story,” said Aunt Mary; “and now we will
-have our promised drive.”</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-<div class="chapter"></div>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_258" id="Page_258">[258]</a></span></p>
-
-
-
-
-<h2>ORRIN THE BOOTBLACK.</h2>
-
-
-<p>“Shine, shine, shine!” the cry was as
-earnest as it was pitiful. I rose from my
-seat in the cabin of the Fulton Ferry boat,
-for I was crossing from Brooklyn to New
-York at the time, and found the boy; one
-glance into his honest blue eyes did the
-rest.</p>
-
-<p>I at once gave him my boots to blacken,
-regardless of the opinion of my man Dennis,
-that he had put on them an extra polish
-that morning, and, while the almost baby
-hand continued to shine them into as dazzling
-a glare as blackened boots could
-reach, I asked him his name, and, giving
-him my card, told him to call on me that
-evening at seven o’clock.</p>
-
-<p>“Mr. Adams, you surely do not mean me
-to understand that your protégé, who to-night
-delivered the valedictory address in
-this honored college, and the bootblack are
-one and the same?”</p>
-
-<p>“I do.”</p>
-
-<p>The above conversation was between the
-President of the college and the senior member
-of the Board of Trustees.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes; he is the same, and yet not the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_259" id="Page_259">[259]</a></span>
-same, because then he was such a sad little
-fellow, and now he is full of jokes and wholesome
-pranks, a merry wit that gladdens my
-old days, and almost makes a boy of me
-again. At one time, though, I thought he
-would never laugh; it was such an apology
-for a smile that I first saw cross his prematurely
-wizened face. But how long ago it
-now seems! Let me see,” thoughtfully
-counting one, two, three on his fingers,
-“why, it must be twelve years since then.
-How time flies!”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, time always does fly, when we
-are busy and happy. But are you aware
-that your Orrin is one of our youngest men?
-He gave his age as twenty-two!”</p>
-
-<p>“Quite correct.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, I am confounded at your information.
-I am as curious as I am interested.
-Would you mind some time telling me the
-rest of the boy’s story?”</p>
-
-<p>“Not at all; why not spend to-morrow
-evening with me? You know we sail Saturday
-for the continent, and after that our
-movements are uncertain. Orrin has worked
-hard, and I have promised him this treat,
-and, though he does not know it, I am
-contemplating leaving him at Oxford for
-a year or two. By the way, I would like
-your opinion as to that. But one thing is
-sure—if he stays in England, I stay too. I
-could not put the ocean between us. You
-cannot imagine how my heart holds that<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_260" id="Page_260">[260]</a></span>
-boy; so, if you really want to hear my
-chap’s story, you would better come to-morrow
-night.”</p>
-
-<p>“I will come.”</p>
-
-<p>It was evening, and, when the two men
-were comfortably seated in Mr. Adams’
-library, the following was told.</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Adams prefaced the recital with the
-words: “I will photograph Orrin as he first
-appeared in my home, and then, as nearly
-as my memory can recall our conversation,
-I will give it. Twelve years ago, about
-seven o’clock in the evening, a maid told
-me that a small poorly-clad lad, with a box
-under his arm, was asking to see me. He
-had entered by the lower door. I directed
-her to bring him to me, and, strangely
-enough, in my comfortable lounging-chair,
-with the evening paper for companion, I
-had entirely forgotten the engagement I had
-made, but the girl’s words instantly recalled
-all, and, a few moments later, I was addressing
-him. His manner was neither shy
-nor bold. He appeared neither surprised
-nor bewildered. I did not note the confused
-air, which I could reasonably expect. He
-met my gaze with the honest, frank look
-that I first noticed, but he seemed sad, even
-painfully. He was such a small boy. He
-evidently was what is so rarely found—a
-gentleman. I almost exclaimed as he stood
-in the doorway, for I noticed the way he
-held his cap; Beau Brummell in his most<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_261" id="Page_261">[261]</a></span>
-happy days could not have done better, and
-the bow with which he answered my ‘good
-evening,’ as well as the response to my asking
-him to take a chair, made me say to
-myself, ‘Adams, you must look out, or this
-little bootblack will leave you leagues rearward
-in the manner question!’ His hair
-was dark, very glossy, and slightly curly.
-His face and hands almost shone with cleanliness.
-I especially noticed his nails, and,
-knowing his business, was surprised to find
-that they, also, were quite clean. His
-height was decidedly small for his age (he
-did not really seem to grow much until he
-was about seventeen years old, and then
-how he shot up! he is just six feet tall
-now); his clothes were not patched, but
-threadbare and ragged. The material was
-fine. His trousers only came to his knees,
-and both shoes and stockings were visibly
-the worse for wear. He was not a pretty
-boy, but a manly-looking little fellow. His
-complexion was fair, but pallid; indeed,
-the boy wore a starved, pinched look. His
-jacket, which was buttoned with brass buttons
-to the neck, hung on him, as if he had
-grown thinner since it was made. So much
-for my photograph. Now for our conversation,
-which will give you a better idea of
-the boy, than if only using my own words.</p>
-
-<p>“‘Good evening, my little man.’</p>
-
-<p>“‘Good evening, sir.’</p>
-
-<p>“‘You blackened my boots so well this<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_262" id="Page_262">[262]</a></span>
-morning, I thought I would like to talk with
-you about your business to-night.’</p>
-
-<p>“‘Thank you, sir.’</p>
-
-<p>“‘How long have you been a bootblack?’</p>
-
-<p>“‘Seven weeks.’</p>
-
-<p>“‘Have you made much money?’</p>
-
-<p>“‘I make more now than at first, sir.’</p>
-
-<p>“‘How much is the most you have made
-a week?’</p>
-
-<p>“‘Last week, sir, I made ninety-five
-cents.’</p>
-
-<p>“‘How much is the least you ever
-made?’</p>
-
-<p>“‘Fifteen, sir; that was my first week,
-when I was new in the business.’</p>
-
-<p>“‘You live with your parents, I suppose?’</p>
-
-<p>“‘No, sir.’</p>
-
-<p>“‘Don’t live with your parents? Whom
-do you live with?’</p>
-
-<p>“‘With myself.’</p>
-
-<p>“‘You, a little midget like you, live by
-yourself! Where do you sleep?’</p>
-
-<p>“‘Wherever I can find a place.’</p>
-
-<p>“‘Where did you sleep last night?’</p>
-
-<p>“‘You won’t tell, sir, if I tell you?’</p>
-
-<p>“‘No.’</p>
-
-<p>“‘Well, I’ve slept for three nights, now,
-in a covered wagon. It has been left outside,
-and, some way, no one has ever seen
-me crawl into it. Please don’t tell any one,
-sir. I really don’t hurt the wagon.’</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_263" id="Page_263">[263]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“‘But why don’t you go home? Do
-your parents drink?’</p>
-
-<p>“‘I have no home, sir; my parents are
-dead; they are both in heaven.’ And then
-the little hands hastily undid the few top
-buttons of his jacket, and untied a black
-shoe lace which served as a chain. Then,
-stepping nervously towards me, he said;
-‘Would you like to see mamma’s picture?’</p>
-
-<p>“I tell you what, sir, this action, united
-to the boy’s words, unmanned me. ‘John
-Adams,’ I asked myself, ‘you’ll befriend
-this boy?’ And John Adams answered, ‘I
-will.’</p>
-
-<p>“The picture was painted on porcelain,
-a medallion resting on dark blue velvet;
-the whole was framed in a band of narrow
-gold. The woman was a blonde, delicate
-looking, but very beautiful. She had an intellectual
-face, and seemed of good birth.
-In age about twenty-five years.</p>
-
-<p>“‘Has your mother been dead long?’ I
-next asked.</p>
-
-<p>“‘She died when I was born, and I am
-ten years old. Papa gave me her picture,
-and I always wear it. I would starve, sir,
-but I would never part from it.’ I am sure
-the boy has it on now, but I would not like
-to ask him to show it to you. He is sensitive,
-and I would not risk hurting him.”</p>
-
-<p>“No, indeed, I would not have you, if
-you were ever so willing. And what more,
-Mr. Adams? It is well I did not know of<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_264" id="Page_264">[264]</a></span>
-this while he was in college; I am afraid I
-should have spoiled him.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, I asked him if he had brothers or
-sisters. His reply was—</p>
-
-<p>“‘I had one brother; he died a year ago.’</p>
-
-<p>“‘How long since your father died?’</p>
-
-<p>“‘Eight weeks, sir.’</p>
-
-<p>“‘And you started at the boot-blacking
-business one week later?’</p>
-
-<p>“‘Yes, sir.’</p>
-
-<p>“‘What was your father’s business?’</p>
-
-<p>“‘When he was in business, he was a
-stockbroker.’</p>
-
-<p>“‘A stockbroker!’ I exclaimed, although
-I was positive before, judging from his
-mother’s picture, that he was born above
-his present position. ‘And you say there
-was a time when your father was not in
-business. How long ago was that?’</p>
-
-<p>“‘The last two years of his life, after he
-became blind.’</p>
-
-<p>“‘Tell me all about it, my good boy.’</p>
-
-<p>“‘My father, sir, must have made a great
-deal of money; we lived in such a handsome
-house.’</p>
-
-<p>“‘As handsome as this?’</p>
-
-<p>“Looking around before he replied,—</p>
-
-<p>“‘Oh, yes, sir.’</p>
-
-<p>“‘You say your mother was dead. Who,
-then, kept house for you?’</p>
-
-<p>“‘Mrs. Prentiss, our housekeeper. I had
-a nurse first, Nurse Ann, and when I got
-to be a big boy, I had a governess. She<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_265" id="Page_265">[265]</a></span>
-taught me to read, write, and all I know.
-I have never been to school. We had several
-servants, and my father kept horses.
-It was the house in which mamma died,
-and everything, papa said, must be as she
-kept house. But, one day, I know not how
-it happened, my father lost a great deal of
-money, and a lot of strange people came to
-the house, and almost all of our beautiful
-things were sold. All the servants left but
-one, and my governess. Papa and I lived
-then in a few rooms. I used to hear papa
-talk about his eyes, at that time, and one
-day he went to see a doctor about them.
-When he came back he told me: ‘My son,
-I am going to be blind,’ and then explained
-to me exactly what that meant. He told
-me that the reason he would be blind was
-because he had used too much tobacco.
-My father smoked a great many cigars
-every day, and sometimes a pipe. He
-chewed tobacco too. I felt frightened when
-I heard all of this, and I remember I cried
-and papa comforted me. He afterwards
-asked me to repeat these words after him.
-‘My papa was blind. His optic nerves
-were hurt because he used too much tobacco.
-I will never smoke or chew.’ My
-papa had me repeat these words until I knew
-them perfectly, and then I said them once
-every day to him until he died. I say them
-every day to myself now. My papa became
-blind very soon after we left our home,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_266" id="Page_266">[266]</a></span>
-and about six months before he died he was
-sick most of the time. My governess left
-one day, and then I had no more lessons.
-And almost every day our things would be
-sold, until, when papa died, we had most
-nothing left. About a week after he was
-buried, some men came to our rooms, and
-then our girl left, and the men told me I
-must go too. I could not live there any
-more. They gave me my clothes, and one
-of the men gave me a dollar. I cried so
-hard that another man said he would take
-me home with him, and I could stay two
-or three nights at his house until I could get
-some work and make money for myself.
-That was why I became a bootblack.
-This man told me it was a good business,
-and, because I was so little and did not
-know what to do, the man and his wife made
-me a present of my outfit and told me
-to watch other bootblacks and cry out:
-“Shine, shine,” and so get business. The
-man gave me his boots to black while I
-stopped at the house and that taught me the
-way, for I never had blackened boots before.
-I stayed with these kind people for
-one week, and since then I have taken care
-of myself.’</p>
-
-<p>“‘Have you no relations?’</p>
-
-<p>“‘None I have ever seen. The day before
-papa died, he told me I was soon to be
-all alone in the world, that I had no relatives,
-and then he said: “Your relatives are<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_267" id="Page_267">[267]</a></span>
-all dead, my son, or dead to you.” That is
-all I know, sir.’</p>
-
-<p>“My heart ached for the child as he finished,
-and I thought, let the consequence be
-what it would, he should not leave my house
-that night. I asked him his name.</p>
-
-<p>“‘Orrin Thorndyke,’ was the reply.</p>
-
-<p>“I told him he was to remain overnight
-with me, and that to-morrow I would investigate
-his story. This he readily did. He
-seemed to be satisfied to do exactly as he
-was told; he had evidently not yet gotten
-away from the manner of obeying his father.
-I think I told you he was prematurely old;
-his strange life had made him so. That
-night I scarcely slept, so full of plans was I
-for the future. As you know, I have always
-been a bachelor with plenty of money and
-no relatives who will ever need help through
-me. Before morning I decided that, if on
-investigation I found the bootblack’s story
-correct, I would at once adopt him and do
-for him as I would for an only son. This I
-have conscientiously tried to do, and, coming
-in and out of this house as the friend
-you are, I trust you think I have done
-right.”</p>
-
-<p>“You certainly have.”</p>
-
-<p>“I have noticed your admiration for my
-boy, and I have been very glad of it; and
-how well I remember the first time you saw
-him! You said I was to be congratulated
-in having for my protégé such a manly little<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_268" id="Page_268">[268]</a></span>
-fellow, and then you added, ‘Blood is sure,
-Adams, and I give up judging forever after,
-if good blood is not in this boy’s veins.’
-Of course, when the child became mine, I
-wanted him to bear my name, but you
-never knew before that the Orrin Thorndyke
-part was his own. Some way, I could not
-ask him to part with it altogether, and so I
-had mine simply added.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, what a man you are; it takes time
-to know you, Adams. And at last, I have
-found out why you so suddenly gave up
-smoking.”</p>
-
-<p>“That is a fact. How could I smoke
-with that child’s story running not only in
-my ears, but through my heart? But what
-do you think of Orrin smoking three cigars
-every day!”</p>
-
-<p>“Surely, you are joking!”</p>
-
-<p>“No; I will tell you how he does it.
-When he was fourteen years of age, I gave
-him a monthly allowance, because I wished
-him to early learn the management of
-money. One day, shortly after, he came to
-me with the question, would I permit him
-to set aside the value of three five-cent
-cigars a day, and when the amount would
-reach five dollars he desired to put it in the
-bank and so open a smoking account. He
-also said he would regularly add to this
-amount as he could accumulate five dollars,
-and that he would not withdraw the money,
-but allow it to increase both principal and<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_269" id="Page_269">[269]</a></span>
-interest until he was thirty years of age, at
-which time he and I could decide what
-would be done with it. This I readily agreed
-to do. And now that he has been ‘smoking,’
-as he puts it, three five-cent cigars
-every day for eight years, the amount already
-in the bank, at four per cent. interest,
-is not a small one. Why, in the first year,
-without interest, he saved nearly fifty-five
-dollars!”</p>
-
-<p>“If only I had tried that scheme when I
-was fourteen years old, I would be a rich
-man now,” replied the President; “however,
-it is not yet too late to start the plan
-with my grandchildren.”</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-<div class="chapter"></div>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_270" id="Page_270">[270]</a></span></p>
-
-
-
-
-<h2>BREAKFAST-TABLE DECORATION.</h2>
-
-
-<p>“Mabel!”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, mamma!”</p>
-
-<p>“Come to breakfast, dearie.” The call
-was given through the wide lattice which
-opened on the garden. And at once the
-little girl obeyed the summons.</p>
-
-<p>And what a charming picture was given
-when the child presented herself in the half-open
-doorway, with her big blue eyes,
-the blue of the sky overhead, cheeks that
-rivalled the peach blossom’s rich redness,
-and lips wide parted, with the merry laugh
-that rippled over and over the upturned face;
-for at that moment she was bubbling beyond
-control with mischief and sparkle, partly on
-account of the buoyancy of the early morning
-atmosphere, but mostly because of the raid
-she had made on the morning-glory vines,
-as her laden hands and arms could testify.</p>
-
-<p>“I haven’t struck the right combination
-yet,” were her mother’s words, at the same
-time touching a majolica dish of flowers that
-served as ornament for the breakfast-table.</p>
-
-<p>“Well, <i>I have!</i> An idea has just sprung on
-me, seized me, as it were! Stand still where
-you are, little sister, until Tom comes back<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_271" id="Page_271">[271]</a></span>
-again,” and then away the boy flew, in his
-clumsy energy tripping over an ottoman
-that was always at Mabel’s place at table,
-because she was not yet tall enough to put
-her feet on the floor.</p>
-
-<p>It seemed but a second when he returned
-with a cut-glass bowl in his hands, filled
-within one-third of the top with fresh, cold
-water; and with an air of triumph he removed
-the majolica dish, depositing the bowl
-in its stead.</p>
-
-<p>Then, going to the little girl, who had
-stood motionless in obedience to her big
-brother’s command, and with the words,
-“Let Tom have some of your pretty
-flowers,” he took first one and then another.
-The color values, as she held the morning-glories,
-appealed to him, there was such richness
-of reds, purples, lavenders and white,
-with their many intermediate shades, which
-blended softly with the green leaves, vines
-and tendrils. When he had taken enough
-to fill, not crowd the bowl, there were many
-exclamations of satisfaction, for all was
-harmony. The white tablecloth was a fitting
-background to the variety of color, and
-the delicate, graceful flowers gave such a
-pleasant welcome at this first meal of the new
-day.</p>
-
-<p>Morning-glories should be oftener used
-for the breakfast-table. Try what you can
-do with them, boys and girls, and thus give
-a pleasant surprise to your mother. Another<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_272" id="Page_272">[272]</a></span>
-pretty table decoration would be to plant
-woodland vines, and also ferns, oxalis, and
-pretty wild grasses in an ornamental piece
-of earthenware, one that would add beauty
-to the dinner-table.</p>
-
-<p>Take such a piece to the country with you,
-and remember to fill it with forest mould before
-you put in the woodland plants; it will
-be most pleasing, and prove a joy all winter
-if you will properly water it; that is, keep it
-wet, not soggy.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-<div class="chapter"></div>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_273" id="Page_273">[273]</a></span></p>
-
-
-
-
-<h2>HOW THEY PLANTED THE NASTURTIUMS.</h2>
-
-
-<p>Such a clamor of voices reached grandma’s
-ears that her first thought was that the children
-must have the garden, at the very least,
-half filled with their schoolmates. But when
-the old lady rose from her big armchair to
-take a sharp look around from the window,
-she was amazed to learn that all the confusion
-was made by her two happy, healthy
-grandchildren Margaret and Marshall, and
-they were as busy as could be, planting and
-fussing over nasturtium plants.</p>
-
-<p>“See us, grandma,” were the pleasant if
-imperative words when they saw their
-grandmother with her head stretched out as
-far as possible, looking first one way and
-then another.</p>
-
-<p>“See you? Well, I should say I did, and
-what are you doing with that old umbrella
-frame, Marshall?” was the questioning response.</p>
-
-<p>“Getting ready for our nasturtiums,” and
-the boy tossed his head laughingly towards
-a large quantity of the golden brown blossoms,
-digging energetically all the while,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_274" id="Page_274">[274]</a></span>
-though, as if moments were more precious
-than he could tell.</p>
-
-<p>As grandma was anxious to learn all about
-the planting, first Marshall and then Margaret
-told her just what they were about to
-do. The gardener at the Jenkins place explained
-what he did. “And I never saw
-nasturtiums look as pretty before,” said
-Margaret, with a sedate shake of her head.
-“Besides, it is an altogether new idea, not
-the old sort of a thing that everybody knows.
-It commences by planting an umbrella
-frame, putting the handle deep enough down
-not to break off with the first strong wind,
-or with the weight of vines, either, in case
-they should grow a trifle heavier on one
-side than the other, though, of course, this
-we will try to prevent. The umbrella should
-not be put in a corner, but in an open bed,
-where people can walk all around it. This
-frame of ours has eight sticks, and at each
-one we will plant a root. And we are going
-to plant two at the handle, one on
-either side, and not close enough to crowd
-each other. As the vines grow, they will
-be trained up the handle and along the sticks,
-making the effect of a diminutive tent, and
-while this old frame is rather an ungainly
-sight at present, in a few weeks the bed will
-be simply gorgeous.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, they are so pretty!” Margaret continued,
-lightly and fondly touching the
-bright flowers, “such a variety of shades,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_275" id="Page_275">[275]</a></span>
-yellow, orange, even to a deep brown, and
-the vine is willing to wind any way we will;
-it is naturally graceful, with just enough
-foliage and not too much. Why, the old
-frame will be the prettiest thing in all the
-country around.”</p>
-
-<p>“I only hope our neighbors will not
-watch and try the same thing for themselves,”
-was Marshall’s interjection.</p>
-
-<p>“They probably will not before next
-summer,” was grandma’s assuring comment,
-“and then your nasturtium umbrella would
-be one year old.”</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-<div class="chapter"></div>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_276" id="Page_276">[276]</a></span></p>
-
-
-
-
-<h2>A GARDEN PARTY.</h2>
-
-
-<p>Dinners, receptions, and concerts have
-been attended through the winter until
-everybody is tired of the old routine; but entertainment
-which is associated with trees,
-flowers, gorgeous sunsets, out-of-door life,
-touches the heart and makes of every such
-occasion a real joy.</p>
-
-<p>How shall we give a <i>fête champêtre?</i></p>
-
-<p>A lawn is a necessity, and should the
-trees not prove sufficiently exclusive, surround
-the grounds with canvas. The canvas
-may be concealed with boughs of
-green, running vines, flags, banners, or
-anything that will lessen its ugliness. The
-entire grounds must be decorated. Japanese
-lanterns might be used freely; several
-hundreds of them will be required, as they
-should be liberally scattered everywhere—not
-only in the grounds, on the trees or
-canvas serving as fence, but on the piazzas
-of the house.</p>
-
-<p>A good orchestra should be hidden behind
-a clump of balsam or other bushy
-trees. The leader should be untiring in his
-efforts to give enough and desirable music.
-If ballads are sung, the orchestra leader is<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_277" id="Page_277">[277]</a></span>
-responsible for the accompaniment, and he
-is equally responsible for the dances, should
-such be given. The air should be filled
-with music, but to the pleasure and not the
-annoyance of guests.</p>
-
-<p>Conversation and music are always important
-factors of entertainment; but to
-these an extravaganza may be added, or a
-play—for example, the whole or part of <i>As
-You Like It</i>, or <i>A Midsummer Night’s Dream</i>.</p>
-
-<p>Should <i>As You Like It</i> be given, screen a
-section of the lawn to represent the Duke’s
-palace. A conversation-room may readily
-be arranged. Remove one or more screens
-and see a room, the ceiling of which would
-be the sky; the side walls folding screens,
-which may be adjusted to any shape and
-size; the floor would be the grass covered
-with rugs. On these rugs stand a few
-chairs, a couch, and a small table. With
-such surroundings, altogether at home would
-Celia seem, while she would say:</p>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
- <div class="poetry">
-<div class="verse">“Why, cousin; why Rosalind;—</div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">Cupid have mercy!—Not a word?”</span></div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p>The many songs, especially “Under the
-Greenwood tree” and “What shall He have
-that killed the Deer?” would prove very
-appropriate in the forest of Arden environment,
-and the trees would be quite in place
-for the love-verses of Orlando.</p>
-
-<p>Or the guests might be served with a literary<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_278" id="Page_278">[278]</a></span>
-salad. Paste or draw pictures on cards
-to illustrate the title of a book, and give one
-to each person. Whoever shall make a
-correct guess without assistance within fifteen
-minutes may be presented with a wreath
-of laurel. This may be worn on the head or
-carried on the arm.</p>
-
-<p>Sometimes a <i>fête champêtre</i> is given for
-sweet charity. It then assumes a different
-phase, as booths, chalets, or tents are erected,
-within which saleable articles are offered.
-An effective fête might be given in athletic
-grounds, which should be noticeably gay
-with streamers of bunting and little and
-big flags. At such a fête a large orchestra
-should play the entire afternoon.</p>
-
-<p>It would be very attractive if those in
-charge of the chalets would represent milkmaids,
-as this allows picturesque apparel.
-The young ladies might go bareheaded, or
-wear a gay handkerchief coquettishly knotted
-under their braids or curls, or cover
-their heads altogether by donning the new
-lawn sunbonnet, which is such a dainty
-feature of this summer’s outing.</p>
-
-<p>The chalets should be small lean-tos, their
-roofs tilting towards the back and resting on
-four poles, one at each corner. These chalets
-should be festively trimmed, and contain
-such products as milk, cream, cheese, and
-eggs. As these are all necessities in housekeeping,
-the financial result should be quite
-large.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_279" id="Page_279">[279]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>Gowns and hats, flounces and ribbons,
-form a conspicuous part of a <i>fête champêtre</i>.
-Sheer grenadines, nets, and gauzes, clouds
-of Valenciennes lace, beflowered organdies,
-any of the effective summer costumes, the
-more fetching the combination the more
-satisfactory the attire. The color contrasts
-are allowed to a greater extreme than for
-street apparel, and brilliant colors produce
-a smart effect on the lawn; and yet the
-dainty white, yellow, pink, or blue fabrics
-may be always afterwards worn to advantage,
-they are so fresh and youthful.</p>
-
-<p>The smart costume requires the broad-brimmed
-hat coquettishly rolled, and massed
-with lilacs, morning-glories, sweet-pease,
-roses, or carnations, and the often added
-long ribbon streamers. But the flower
-toque, and the parasol of white mousseline
-de soie trimmed with flowers and a flounce of
-lace, and the pretty or quaint fan, aid the
-charming gown in producing an artistic
-effect.</p>
-
-<p>The guests arrive in pony carriages, high
-carts, or victorias, and the closed brougham,
-like an old friend, is always admissible.
-The host and the hostess seem especially
-cordial, standing, as they do, under the
-broad branches of a tall tree. Indeed, stern
-Madam Propriety would deem such warmth
-of welcome scarcely permissible under a
-lighted chandelier. But if, as it has been
-known to happen, the day of the fête should<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_280" id="Page_280">[280]</a></span>
-also be the day of the worst storm of the
-entire season, the guests are received, if possible,
-on the piazza, and all aid in making
-merry and helping the hostess to such an
-extent that people forget that a <i>fête champêtre</i>
-was ever considered, and that it was
-not meant to be a house party from the
-beginning. Of course no one should allude
-to the weather; that would be decidedly
-out of form, and be very unkind to the
-hostess, who certainly cannot stop the
-storm.</p>
-
-<p>In such a shaping of events refreshments
-are served in-doors, if possible using the
-same little tables intended for the lawn, the
-cloths, which are edged about with ferns
-and field-flowers in variety, added to the
-pretty china and cut glass used in serving
-the menu, lend the charm of beauty.</p>
-
-<p>The menu for such a function may be the
-same as that given at an evening reception,
-or it may be the simple refreshment provided
-for an afternoon tea, with an added
-salad or ice. But as an afternoon spent in
-the open air gives good appetite, liberal refreshment
-will be in order.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-<div class="chapter"></div>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_281" id="Page_281">[281]</a></span></p>
-
-
-
-
-<h2>THE KING’S CHILDREN.</h2>
-
-
-<p>“Pearly! Pearly!”</p>
-
-<p>It was a woman’s shrill voice that fiercely
-shrieked the name out into the morning
-air.</p>
-
-<p>We were homeward bound from the Old
-Red Spring in Saratoga, when we were arrested
-by her screams. The sun shone
-brightly, the robins and other song birds
-were trilling out their sweetest melodies, the
-air was heavily scented with white clover
-blossoms and sweetbrier. It was a rarely
-beautiful July morning. All the world to
-us was melody, save the jar made by this
-thin, haggard, unkempt woman. In her
-effort to be heard she travelled along the
-road in the direction she thought Pearly
-must have gone, crushing the daisies and
-buttercups down before her.</p>
-
-<p>Two Sabbaths before we had sat at the
-communion table, and then felt a kinship to
-all, that our brothers and sisters were not
-only those of our very own by ties of blood,
-but were close to us the round world over.
-The Sabbath before, as the clergyman said,
-“freely ye have received, freely give,” we<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_282" id="Page_282">[282]</a></span>
-thought more of the giving of ourselves than
-of our money, more of letting others have
-a share of the good gifts that had been our
-lot, joy, music, loving-kindness generally,
-than of offering our filthy lucre. Indeed, it
-seemed a great descent, for we had been
-taken up on the moment by our pastor’s
-tender words, and now must remember
-Vanity Fair and the necessity for money in
-this worldly world. And so thinking, this
-woman with the wild, disagreeable voice,
-stopped us; and should we not do something
-to help her, was the question put to
-ourselves.</p>
-
-<p>She was one of the resident Saratogians.
-Cross, possibly, because she was tired; haggard,
-because she had no time for rest. To
-her the Spring waters were as a myth, and
-the dry, bracing air little considered in her
-work-a-day existence. We, therefore, turning
-in the direction in which this woman
-went, commenced our search for the little
-girl, for such we decided she was, but all in
-vain. Whether Pearly, familiar to the harsh
-voice and recognizing extra work or disagreeable
-duty as a result of coming to the
-front, had hidden behind the large clumps
-of elderberry bushes which grew thickly
-around, or had run off to the woods for
-protection, we know not; we only know that
-we had to leave the woman to conclude her
-search alone. But the words, “Pearly!
-Pearly!” now and again caught our ear,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_283" id="Page_283">[283]</a></span>
-though indistinctly, as the distance widened
-between us, and later we lost the sound altogether.
-Then it was that another Pearly
-came into our thought.</p>
-
-<p>She had been baptized Margaret; but the
-old-fashioned long name had been shortened
-during her babyhood to the beautiful name,
-“Pearl.” She has always been loving and
-lovable, and always seemed consecrated,
-even from her cradle. Many of the wise
-people have often gravely said of her, “That
-child can never live to grow up. She is too
-good.” But she has lived to grow up, and,
-nothing happening, in a year or two more
-she will be graduated from one of our most
-respected women’s colleges. She, even as
-a little child, never had to be punished.
-“Pearl, that is wrong; you should not act
-or speak that way,” was the most serious
-chiding she ever needed to receive; for
-when told she had done wrong, she would
-immediately say, “I will try never to do
-that again.” And she invariably would
-keep her promise.</p>
-
-<p>As a schoolgirl she is a general favorite,
-being popular enough to receive the unanimous
-vote for class president, for Pearl is a
-sunny, bright, sympathetic girl. The truly
-good are always the truly happy. Her
-religion is of the character to attract, not to
-repel. And possibly there are nowhere to
-be found keener or more severe critics than
-schoolgirls are of one another. The long-faced<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_284" id="Page_284">[284]</a></span>
-piety, as it is sometimes called, would
-receive from them only ridicule and contempt.
-The abandon of youth is not slow
-in exposing what they consider trustless and
-wrong.</p>
-
-<p>But my story would be too long to tell
-many incidents in the life of Pearl; to tell
-the many ways she has helped all with
-whom her short life of eighteen years has
-brought her in contact; to tell of her sympathetic
-words, helpful handclasp, feet
-swift to run on deeds of kindness, voice
-raised in song, thus aiding others in the
-schoolroom, the prayer-meeting or the
-home. Indeed, Pearl was constantly forming
-new ties, thus binding the hearts of all
-who met her to herself.</p>
-
-<p>The incident of which I would particularly
-write is her work as a King’s Daughter.
-She was one of the earliest to join this organization,
-and the first band she formed
-was to pay for the education of a young
-girl in the same school as herself. This
-young girl was the only child of a rich
-father, but it was the old story—a dishonest
-partner used the firm’s money for speculating
-purposes, and in an evil hour all was
-gone; not only money, but reputation also,
-and Elsie, the only child, must now leave
-school, it seemed, forever. Then it was
-Pearl came to the rescue; and first binding
-her ten to secrecy, because it would wound
-Elsie to ever know, it was arranged with<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_285" id="Page_285">[285]</a></span>
-the President and officers of the school that
-this band should pay for Elsie’s schooling;
-and she will graduate with Pearl, all unconscious
-of the one to whom she is indebted.</p>
-
-<p>Elsie’s father was notified by the school
-President that his daughter was too much
-beloved not to have an opportunity to
-finish her education. If he was ever able
-to refund the money, all right, if not, it was
-still all right; and this is all Elsie or her
-father know.</p>
-
-<p>Since then Pearl has started nine other
-bands, each doing noble work for Christ and
-humanity. With only one of these is she
-herself connected. It every year supports
-ten poor, aged women, who otherwise
-would be obliged to go to the almshouse.
-By the help of this King’s Daughters’ Band
-these women remain in their own little
-homes, passing the hours as their desires
-dictate, and not feeling the pain which
-Will Carleton so vividly describes in his
-poem, “Over the Hills to the Poorhouse.”
-No wonder that these poor old women
-frequently ask God’s blessing on these young
-girls, for they are so comfortable and happy
-as they thus quietly wait for the summons
-to the other home whose builder and maker
-is God. And no wonder that Pearl wears
-a happy face, for the face indicates the
-heart within. The good she has done, and
-may yet do, will never be known here, nor<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_286" id="Page_286">[286]</a></span>
-is it necessary. Sufficient for Pearl will be
-the words which we hope will also be ours
-some day, “Enter thou into the joy of thy
-Lord.”</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-<div class="chapter"></div>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_287" id="Page_287">[287]</a></span></p>
-
-
-
-
-<h2>FOR THE BOYS.</h2>
-
-
-<p>Why should not the boys be as busy and
-helpful as the girls?</p>
-
-<p>Why should not the boys form their “Try
-Bands,” “Working Circles” and “King’s
-Sons’ Societies?”</p>
-
-<p>There is no reason. Will not, therefore,
-the willing, manly boys who read this enlist
-their friends to help at least one of their
-heathen brothers to a Christian education?
-It is work that will give abundant reward.</p>
-
-<p>American boys know how much care is
-taken for their education. Not only are their
-teachers, but their mothers, fathers, brothers
-sisters and other relatives, their constant
-instructors. The greatest culture and opportunity
-surround them; valuable libraries
-are ever at their disposal. There are numberless
-free schools, art rooms and museums.
-Beside the private academies, institutes, and
-colleges, there are Young Men’s Christian
-Association rooms, Christian Endeavor
-Societies, churches and Sunday-schools, all
-open and giving hearty welcome. Not so
-are the privileges of the boys in India,
-China and Japan. For though the Bible
-and our missionaries have done a great deal<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_288" id="Page_288">[288]</a></span>
-to help the heathen boy, his surroundings
-are dark indeed, in contrast with those of
-children in Christian lands. Indeed, it is
-rare that a heathen boy is not a castaway
-by his family when he confesses Christ.
-Instead of relatives being a help to his life,
-they are among his greatest sorrows.</p>
-
-<p>Boys ought to be willing to give other
-boys a chance, especially when they stand
-alone. If ten boys would form a band, they
-could easily collect thirty dollars a year, and
-thirty dollars would pay all the yearly expenses
-of a boy in a mission school or
-academy. This academy prepares boys for
-the theological seminary, and the seminary
-fits them for the ministry. Indeed, when in
-the academy, boys often go out to talk and
-sing to those who do not know of Christ.
-They feel sure that their heathen friends are
-missing so much in not knowing Jesus, that
-they cannot wait until they have completed
-their studies; but as soon as they know
-about Jesus themselves they are impatient
-to tell others. They can talk to their friends
-with greater effect than missionaries from
-this country, because they understand their
-customs and ways. Besides, the terrible
-heat in India does not affect them as it does
-people who go from this country. Very
-often our missionaries and their families have
-to return to America on account of their
-health.</p>
-
-<p>Some of the boys in India are very bright.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_289" id="Page_289">[289]</a></span>
-I will tell you of one who is about fifteen
-years of age, and is a student in the Arcot
-Academy, India. His name is Joseph, son
-of the catechist Israel; his mother’s name
-is Rachel. You will notice they are all
-Bible names. This family were once
-heathen, but now all know and love Christ,
-and are happy in working for Him. I lately
-had the pleasure of reading a letter written
-and composed by Joseph, without any aid
-from his instructors. I wish it were possible
-for my boy readers to see his penmanship;
-it seemed nearly as perfect as copperplate.
-Each letter was very distinct and prettily
-shaded. Every word was spelled correctly,
-and while his composition had not the exact
-style we would use, it was very direct and
-intelligible. I doubt if many American
-boys of Joseph’s age could do better with a
-French or German letter, or in writing in
-any other language than their own. Thinking
-you might be interested in hearing from
-Joseph, particularly as he tells of what he
-does on the Sabbath, and of his school life,
-I will quote directly from his letter:</p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<div class="right">
-“<span class="smcap">Madras Presidency</span>, Ranipet, India.
-</div>
-
-<div class="unindent">“<span class="smcap">Most Respected and Kind Madam</span>:</div>
-
-<p>“My superiors, teachers and fellow-students
-are doing well up to this time by the
-grace of our Almighty, hoping the same for
-you....</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_290" id="Page_290">[290]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“I solicit you, dear madam, pray for me
-that I may obey my superiors; I don’t like
-to have the name of our Lord Jesus Christ
-in vain. But I want to publish His name.</p>
-
-<p>“Every Sunday we all go over the
-country and preach about the Gospel.
-Many of the heathen become Christians.</p>
-
-<p>“There are eight bands in the school.
-When we are going to preach, each band
-will take three or four lyrics, some tracts, a
-cymbal, and a jalar or tambourine. When
-we are singing many men and women and
-children will come to hear us.</p>
-
-<p>“After our preaching is over we take account
-of the men, women and children who
-come to hear our preaching. Most of them
-will ask questions, and we will answer them.
-Many of them will abuse the name of our
-Lord Jesus Christ. Though they abused
-Him, we won’t leave these men, since they
-don’t understand what Christ has done for
-the world. We have meeting every Friday
-evening, and in that meeting we will give
-our reports of the men who heard the Word
-of Christ.”</p></div>
-
-<p>Referring to his studies, he writes:</p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p>“Now there are four classes, viz., matriculation
-class, the fifth class, the lower secondary
-class, and the lower fourth class.
-There are five teachers, including our manager.
-Each class changes its lessons after<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_291" id="Page_291">[291]</a></span>
-one hour. Our manager teaches general
-English for the four classes, and also
-takes English history for the fifth class, and
-science, physics and chemistry for the sixth
-class. He shows many good examples and
-gives us good games. He is very kind toward
-us. We have many sorts of games.
-Tennis and football and cricket and gymnasium
-exercises. Our manager teaches us
-cricket every evening.”</p></div>
-
-<p>As this boy is writing to the one who
-supports him, he closes in the following
-manner:</p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p>“I thank the Lord for having given me a
-supporter. I render my warm and delightful
-obeisance to respected and dear madam.
-I remain your most obedient</p>
-
-<div class="right">“<span class="smcap">Ponnor Isaac Joseph</span>.”</div></div>
-
-<p>After reading this letter, which is not a
-fancy sketch, picture in your mind Joseph,
-his surroundings, a young Hindoo boy,
-whose dark-skinned face glows enthusiastically
-with his love for Christ and with his
-ardent desire to tell others of his love, writing
-in a strange tongue to a lady whom he
-has never seen. He has her photograph, and
-has received letters from her, but her voice
-and manner are only conjectures in his
-mind. He is writing to this lady, who has
-been the means of his salvation, of freeing<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_292" id="Page_292">[292]</a></span>
-him from his yoke borne by his countrymen.
-Try to picture this, and then see if in your
-own heart there is not a strong desire to free
-more than one boy in that dark land. In
-freeing one, you free others: do not forget
-that.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-<div class="chapter"></div>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_293" id="Page_293">[293]</a></span></p>
-
-
-
-
-<h2>“I WISH I WERE A GENERAL.”</h2>
-
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
- <div class="poetry">
-<div class="verse">“If wishes were horses,</div>
-<div class="verse"><span style="margin-left: 0.5em;">Beggars might ride.”</span></div>
-</div>
-</div>
-
-<p>“Have you ever heard that, Jo?”</p>
-
-<p>“<i>Heard</i> it, what kind of a bringing up has
-a fellow had, do you think? You know well
-enough that ever since I was in knickerbockers,
-that immortal rhyme has been
-drilled into me. I’m sick and tired of sermonizing,
-and all I have to say is, if you
-don’t wish for something grand, something
-beyond you, you never will amount to
-anything.”</p>
-
-<p>“That is true, Jo, but wishing without
-action will not accomplish much. I’ve
-heard you make at least twenty wishes this
-morning. One, ‘I wish I was rich!’ just
-as though that were anything new; all boys
-wish that. Then you wished you were
-somebody great, somebody famous, like
-Cæsar or the Czar of Russia, or the President
-of the United States. Then you wished
-your father could only let you have a college
-education so that you might be a
-lawyer. And then, to go on to smaller
-matters, you wished it was Christmas, so<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_294" id="Page_294">[294]</a></span>
-that you might have vacation. And lastly,
-you wished you were a fine bicycle rider, so
-that you might win the prize in the coming
-race. I tell you, old fellow, I long ago
-learned such a wholesome lesson on the
-wishing point, that it made me over new,
-so to speak.”</p>
-
-<p>“How so, John? now I am interested,
-for I thought you had been perfect from
-your youth up.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, to begin with the beginning and
-make an out-and-out confession, I’ll have to
-introduce you to my Uncle Charles. I wish
-you knew General Journay; I know you
-would like him even if he is an odd-looking
-man; he was once very handsome. He is
-too sensible to think he is handsome now,
-though, for there is no denying that he’s fat.
-He says it is constitutional, and maybe it
-is. I notice he is very uncomfortable, short
-of breath, you know; gets a red face in
-climbing up the stairs to the elevated road,
-and all that, but he’s jolly and good, and
-says he wants me to be a manly man, and
-I am going to try my best to please him.
-You know I am not as rich in relations as
-you are, for my parents died when I was
-a baby, and I never had either brothers or
-sisters; perhaps that’s one reason I think so
-much of you, Jo. Well, to go on with my
-story, when I was about twelve years old I
-went to visit for a week at my Uncle Charles’
-home. He was delighted to have me with<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_295" id="Page_295">[295]</a></span>
-him, and I never tired of his companionship,
-or of looking at his soldier’s uniform, his
-sword and his medals. One day I said to
-him, ‘Oh, Uncle, I wish I were a General,’
-and he replied, ‘There is no reason why
-you cannot be one, my boy, if the right
-material is only in you.’”</p>
-
-<p>“‘What do you mean by right material,
-Uncle?’ I inquired.</p>
-
-<p>“‘Why, humility, obedience, courage,
-honesty, truthfulness.’</p>
-
-<p>“‘I did not know that soldiers were ever
-humble.’</p>
-
-<p>“‘You must be humble enough to enter
-the lowest ranks, obedient enough to follow
-orders, courageous enough to face any
-emergency, honest enough to submit to
-pain rather than to steal, and truthful enough
-never to soil your lips or conscience with
-a lie.’</p>
-
-<p>“Then my uncle told me of his own
-boyhood, of his poverty, his hindrances, his
-temptations; and I saw that the rank of
-General did not come by wishing, but by
-the greatest endurance, study, and hard
-work. I tell you what, Jo, as I listened to
-his story I felt so ashamed, and so small, I
-thought I would like to crawl away in a
-hole, anywhere almost, if I could only hide,
-for you know my uncle is such a noble,
-grand man. Then, too, my uncle told me
-of our great inventors, officers, rulers, whom
-the world is delighted to honor, and I saw<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_296" id="Page_296">[296]</a></span>
-that wishing had but little to do with their
-achievements and successes. I saw I had
-to buckle on my own armor and go to
-work.</p>
-
-<p>“That night I could scarcely sleep; I
-kept thinking how insignificant uncle must
-think me, for I knew I had often wished
-for this, that and the other thing in his
-presence, and so when I did sleep I
-dreamed that I was in the woods, and I
-thought that all the bushes and trees were
-waving, and one big branch seemed like a
-long, bare arm beckoning to me. I felt an
-awesome, queer, uncanny feeling, and I
-was sure I was losing my way. I saw one
-and another path, but which one to take I
-knew not, when suddenly I heard a laugh;
-this frightened me so much that I jumped;
-then a voice said, ‘You little goosey-gander,
-what a brave soldier you would make, to be
-sure, afraid of a little laugh;’ and then I
-heard ha! ha! ha! and what seemed to
-me to be the most uproarious laughter, the
-shout of a hundred fairies. Soon a tiny old
-woman approached me saying, ‘I am a
-fairy queen. Ask for whatever you may
-wish while you are in my domain?’</p>
-
-<p>“At once I exclaimed: ‘I wish to be the
-oldest General living.’ And there I was, a
-general in very truth, but so old I could
-scarcely see, so deaf I could scarcely
-hear; and I was dressed in a costume
-similar to my uncle’s. My hands were<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_297" id="Page_297">[297]</a></span>
-wrinkled, a long beard hung over my breast,
-but it was as white as snow. My mouth
-felt so queer that I lifted my hand to discover
-the reason, and alas! my teeth were
-all gone. I tried to walk, but I was so stiff
-I could scarcely place one foot before the
-other. ‘Oh, what a fool I have been,’ I
-thought. ‘If only I were a boy again? Oh,
-Uncle Charles, Uncle Charles!’ I screamed.</p>
-
-<p>“‘Why, my boy, what is the matter, you
-were groaning and moaning so in your
-sleep, I thought something must be wrong?’
-were his words.</p>
-
-<p>“Wasn’t I grateful, though, to find it was
-only a dream. It seemed too good to be
-true, to learn that I was really a boy again,
-that life was before, and not behind, me.
-I tell you, Jo, I could scarcely wait for day
-to come, to get at positive work. And since
-that horrible nightmare, which taught me
-the silliness of wishing, I have been a
-changed boy, and I do not think I will ever
-fall into that purposeless talk again. But
-you don’t like sermons, excuse me, Jo.”</p>
-
-<p>“You are a good fellow, John; I should
-not be worthy of friendship such as yours,
-if I did not benefit by what you have told
-me. I will try to follow your example.
-What do you say to our both being manly
-men?”</p>
-
-<p>“Those words have the right ring.” And
-so saying the two friends walked off arm
-in arm.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-<div class="chapter"></div>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_298" id="Page_298">[298]</a></span></p>
-
-
-
-
-<h2>A HEBREW CHRISTIAN.</h2>
-
-
-<p>Sydney Arnheim was a Jew. I say was,
-because he has thrown off the yoke of the
-Jewish faith, and this little story will tell
-you how it all came about.</p>
-
-<p>Sydney is an only child; his parents are
-rich; his father, a famous Wall Street broker,
-is a power among his kind; his mother also
-belongs to a wealthy Hebrew family, and
-her refined taste and education show clearly
-in her surroundings. Anything that appeals
-to her exquisite judgment is purchased, so
-that Sydney’s home shows everywhere the
-touch of elegance, as well as the fitness of
-perfection. Sydney’s own room bears the
-print of her careful taste, and yet prominent
-among the rich hangings and delicate furnishing
-you see a Winchester rifle, a trout
-pole, also a buck’s antlers, a blue crane, a
-kingfisher, and several other well-known
-birds, all so skilfully prepared by the taxidermist
-that you could scarcely be blamed
-if you thought them yet alive. Yes, Sydney
-is a regular boy, and loves to keep trophies
-of his sport in sight, as well as his gun and
-trout pole. He says at times, “It makes it
-seem as if I’m in the Adirondack woods<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_299" id="Page_299">[299]</a></span>
-whenever I look at them, and simply lifting
-my rod recalls some experiences with papa
-in the boat with our guide, or else wading
-the streams with my tutor and drawing out
-big fish.” So Sydney’s mother, knowing the
-comfort these recollections bring, allows her
-son to place his sporting equipments just
-where and as he pleases. Thus the room
-has an odd, menagerie style of appearance.
-And thus the home of this Israelitish family
-everywhere tells of comfort and luxury.</p>
-
-<p>Sydney, from his babyhood, was carefully
-trained in the customs and belief of his
-people. His mother, so frequently his companion,
-constantly talked about the greatness
-of his lineage, and told him of the patriarchs,
-legislators, warriors, singers and
-prophets which were among the Hebrew
-people. She also told him of Abraham and
-Moses, and of the covenant with Abraham
-at Jehovah-jireh, “In thy seed shall all the
-nations of the earth be blessed,” and also
-what the Lord said to Jacob at Bethel, “The
-land whereon thou liest, to thee will I give
-it, and to thy seed.” And she daily urged
-her son to walk in the footsteps and keep
-the covenants of his people, and always to
-serve the Lord God of Israel. The rabbi
-also would frequently visit their home, and
-Sydney was accustomed to talk to him, as
-well as to receive the old man’s instruction
-and blessing. Sydney loved to hear from
-him the stories of Moses, Aaron and Joshua;<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_300" id="Page_300">[300]</a></span>
-of the Tishbite and his servant Elisha; of
-Solomon and the temple; of the son of
-Jesse, David, the sweet singer, and of the
-promise of the Messiah to come.</p>
-
-<p>And so it was when Sydney had attained
-his seventeenth year that when asked what
-he would most like for his birthday-gift he
-replied, “The education that will fit me the
-most thoroughly to preach, not alone to my
-people, but to win many erring ones, believers
-in the ‘false Christ’ to turn to the
-true faith.” He was at this time, therefore,
-and for seven anxious, wearisome months
-afterwards, the <i>Jewest</i> of all Jews, a devoted
-follower of Moses, but not of the Lamb.</p>
-
-<p>About the time of the birthday above alluded
-to, there came for a visit of three
-months a cousin of Sydney, a little girl about
-three years his junior. She, young as she
-was, however, was a Christian, and had the
-Easter previous publicly confessed Christ,
-and united with the same church her parents
-had long attended.</p>
-
-<p>The question might readily be asked,
-“Since she was Sydney’s cousin, how was
-it that she was not also a believer in the
-Hebrew faith?” The reason is this. Her
-mother was Sydney’s father’s sister, and
-when very young, only seventeen years of
-age, had surprised and grieved her family by
-stating she was about to marry a gentleman
-who was not of her religion. Many words
-regarding the matter were exchanged at<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_301" id="Page_301">[301]</a></span>
-the time, but they were useless in preventing
-the marriage, and a year later she saddened
-her parents yet more by renouncing
-her Hebrew faith, and connecting herself
-with the church of her husband. He was
-a most exemplary gentleman, however, and,
-notwithstanding his religion, his wife’s people
-could not fail to have a most profound
-respect for him. So, in time, the families
-visited back and forth, but the topic of religion
-was never introduced. Sydney’s father
-would sometimes sigh wearily, when talking
-of his sister, and say his hope was that
-she would yet return to the belief of her
-forefathers, and that in time all must be
-well.</p>
-
-<p>So now the little Edith was to spend
-many weeks with her Jewish relations, but
-she had been told to be careful about her
-attendance at church, and ever watchful of
-her conduct, indeed to act in every way as
-the child of the dear Christ whom she loved
-so well. Her mother, however, before consigning
-her to her brother’s care, simply
-said to her, “I will pray for you, dear, that
-your faith fail not,” and “Have no fear,
-mamma,” was the sweet reply. “Jesus
-will be with me in Uncle Nathan’s home, as
-well as in my own. Perhaps He will even
-have work for me to do there. You know Dr.
-M—— last Sabbath morning talked to us on
-the subject of missions, and said there were
-many kinds, and while we should pray and<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_302" id="Page_302">[302]</a></span>
-work for the foreign and domestic fields, we
-must also remember those of our own household,
-indeed, all everywhere, who do not love
-the Saviour.” So Edith’s mother had no
-fear for her child, and into the uncle’s home
-there came a blessing, the measure of which
-cannot be counted by any earthly rule or
-computation, for who can measure the joy
-of even one soul turned to the Saviour?</p>
-
-<p>Edith and Sydney were now great friends,
-for while they had known each other always,
-the constant companionship led to the
-warmest friendship, and they were therefore
-as good comrades as a boy and girl cousin
-could well be. Neither religion nor any
-topic bearing on it was ever discussed before
-Edith. She never attended their church,
-nor they hers. When the Sabbath came she
-would always be accompanied to the church
-door, and when the service was out some
-member of the family would be found without
-waiting to walk home with her, and
-during her entire visit neither by word or
-action was she allowed to feel she stood
-apart from her Jewish relations, and therefore
-the time passed all too rapidly onward.
-She remembered her promise to her mother,
-and most earnestly she prayed to God to
-direct and help her. She also prayed for
-her uncle and aunt, imploring the Father in
-heaven to lead them into the light; but
-particularly she prayed for her cousin Sydney.
-They were such comrades, so nearly<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_303" id="Page_303">[303]</a></span>
-of an age, and yet she felt there was a great
-gulf fixed, and therefore she constantly plead
-that he might learn of the Christ, the Saviour.</p>
-
-<p>One day, just after a most fervent prayer
-for Sydney, her cousin approached her unobserved
-while she was reading from the
-New Testament. He exclaimed, on seeing
-the title, “Why, Edith, I never had a copy
-of that book in my hands. I should like to
-read yours sometime, if you don’t mind.”</p>
-
-<p>“Mind! why no, Sydney. Take it along
-with you now.”</p>
-
-<p>And he did. When her cousin left, Edith
-prayed as she never had before, beseeching
-the Father to let the scales drop from his
-eyes and show unto him the Christ. And
-God did open the boy’s eyes. He did not
-read through a glass darkly, but with clearest
-vision. The brightest light fell on the
-divine Word, the light which later led to his
-giving up his old Hebrew faith, and his acceptance
-of Jesus.</p>
-
-<p>All did not come at once. At the first reading
-he was troubled, anxious, but not satisfied.
-He had many old questions to settle;
-he had much pride to put aside; he spent
-many hours, and at times away into the
-night in prayer. But peace at last came,
-the peace which he feels will endure until
-the day when he will see the King in His
-beauty.</p>
-
-<p>And now Sydney longs for the conversion<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_304" id="Page_304">[304]</a></span>
-of his parents, and of all of his people.
-His wish is to preach Christ, and so
-do all in his power to lead his brethren, the
-Jews, unto the everlasting joy of the New
-Jerusalem.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-<div class="chapter"></div>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_305" id="Page_305">[305]</a></span></p>
-
-
-
-
-<h2>THE BABY’S LESSON.</h2>
-
-
-<p>It was blossom-time, and in the quiet of
-the early May morning the church bells
-rung out their loving call. “Come, come,
-come!” they seemed to say, and, accepting
-the invitation, we shortly found ourselves
-sitting, with other strangers, in the Episcopal
-church of a favorite resort.</p>
-
-<p>It was during the Scripture lesson that a
-little maiden of about four years of age
-quietly walked up the long aisle, looking to
-right and left, scanning the faces in every
-pew, until she had reached the chancel.
-The clergyman’s voice was no doubt
-familiar to her, for she showed no timidity.
-Not seeing the one she sought, she turned
-and tripped down the aisle again. But on
-nearing the door she put out her hands and
-extended her arms in a pleading baby fashion,
-as if to say, “I do not want to go
-away. I cannot find my papa or mamma,
-but will not some one lift me up? I came
-to church to stay.” And a kind-hearted
-man, seeing the gesture, took up the baby
-beside him.</p>
-
-<p>The little one reverently entered into the
-worship of the hour. As prayer followed
-prayer, the blue eyes closed tight, and the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_306" id="Page_306">[306]</a></span>
-wavy golden hair fell forward over the bent
-head. At the time of singing she rose with
-others, and her voice carolled out the tune,
-though her words were those of her own
-devising. One little hand tightly clasped
-a penny, and as the collection-plate was
-passed she eagerly dropped in her contribution.</p>
-
-<p>It was time to go home, and as nearly all
-present were strangers, many watched to
-see what the baby girl would do. A mother
-by my side said to her, “I have a little girl
-at home, about as big as you. I would not
-want her to be lost, and if you will tell me
-where you live I will take you home.” Then
-a quiet dignity seemed to possess the wee
-maiden, as with courteous action she pointed
-to a large white house about one hundred
-feet away. Lifting the blue eyes to the
-lady’s face, she replied, “I live there. I
-love to come to church, and I thought I
-should find papa; he always goes, but”—gravely
-shaking her curls—“I couldn’t find
-him this morning. But I can go home by
-my own self.” And then, child fashion, she
-ran on, as though to satisfy us that she knew
-the way.</p>
-
-<p>Walking under the apple boughs back to
-the hotel, we thought of the sermon this
-child’s presence had preached. And the
-question came, Why do not all parents so
-train their little ones that they love God’s
-house? This little girl had given the congregation<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_307" id="Page_307">[307]</a></span>
-a lesson which should make a
-children’s day of every Sabbath the year
-around. The Bible says, “Their angels do
-always behold the face of the Father,” and
-“Unless ye become as a little child, ye cannot
-enter the kingdom.”</p>
-
-<p>Where young children sit side by side
-with their parents in church, and so learn to
-“remember the Sabbath day,” they will
-early wish to consecrate their lives to Christ.
-They will not enter heaven “so as by fire,”
-but “as kings crowned,” for they will not
-wait to work for the Master until the time
-when the “grinders shall cease because they
-are few, and those that look out of the windows
-be darkened,” but will use the hours
-of every day as in God’s sight, and in the
-companionship of Him who is invisible.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-<div class="chapter"></div>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_308" id="Page_308">[308]</a></span></p>
-
-
-
-
-<h2>PARLOR FORTUNE-TELLING.</h2>
-
-
-<p>Nothing so much lends enchantment to the
-hours or wings them to merry flight as fortune-telling.
-And particularly fascinating is
-the art of foretelling the future through the
-medium of palm-reading. When a bright
-girl who has the faculty of revealing character
-and prophesying the future by inspecting
-the hand is in a drawing-room, the
-hostess need not fear for the pleasure of her
-guests, for the fair magician will take care
-of beaux and belles alike, leading them on
-to happy marriages and boundless wealth
-(for no real fortune-teller ever forgets matrimony
-and money). Nor will the young
-people alone be anxious to learn what is
-written in the palms of their hands, for more
-or less superstition lingers with us all. And
-what if there has been a small error regarding
-character-reading, or a trifling discrepancy
-relative to past events, one happy
-guess will cause all such mistakes to be
-forgotten: and besides, the necessity for
-verification is seldom urgent. Palmistry is
-not altogether pastime, any more than divination
-is altogether jugglery, for no hand is
-exactly like another hand; the intersection
-of the lines, the stars, the mounts, the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_309" id="Page_309">[309]</a></span>
-texture, really do supply a guide to the
-character of the owner. And if, added to
-the knowledge of hand-reading, you are a
-student of the face—and every one is more
-or less a physiognomist—you will arrive at
-fairly correct conclusions.</p>
-
-<p>Palmistry is linked with astrology: the
-first finger belongs to Jupiter, the middle to
-Saturn, the third to the Sun, the small finger
-to Mercury; Venus is in the thick part below
-the thumb, the plain of Mars is directly
-under the mount of Mercury, the moon controls
-all beneath the kingdom of Mars. This
-link between the planets and the hand was
-arbitrary; astronomers distributed deities
-among the planets, and the planets were
-supposed to partake of the nature of the gods
-and to influence life.</p>
-
-<p>Palmistry also depends on analogy and
-symbolism. Every mark on the hand has
-some mystical meaning. A star denotes
-success, barred lines indicate obstacles;
-where several parallel lines are formed instead
-of one, they show a variety of pursuits,
-instead of force only in one direction.
-If lines are long, gently curved, and red,
-they indicate a gentle disposition; if you
-have a special talent, there will surely be a
-perpendicular line from the base of the hand
-toward the fingers; this line is sometimes
-doubled. Long tapering fingers indicate
-high mental qualities, a love of the arts, a
-thirst for knowledge, and strength of memory,<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_310" id="Page_310">[310]</a></span>
-while the contrary shows a tendency
-to rapid progress at first, only to be followed
-by failure in all intellectual undertakings.
-People with short fingers are apt to be impulsive,
-if they are very short, they indicate
-lack of tact. Long-fingered people go into
-detail, and are punctiliously careful about
-trifles. Twisted fingers with short nails
-show tyranny and a worrying temperament.
-If the fingers fit closely together, their owner
-is apt to be avaricious; if smooth, they indicate
-indiscretion and talkativeness. But if
-twisted and showing spaces between, the
-person is sympathetic and generous. Sensitiveness
-is shown by the small fleshy protuberances,
-which stand out from the curved
-surface of the finger-tips. If your fingers
-are broad, you will love things for their
-practical uses; your taste will be for industries,
-mechanics, commerce. If your finger-tips
-are square, you will be fond of literature,
-logic, language, you will be inclined
-to theorize, and you will have respect for
-authority. The joints of the fingers have an
-importance, so they too must be carefully
-examined. Indeed, no one part of the hand
-can be taken alone; a joint or a line or a
-mount may so change the meaning of what
-you have already observed, as to greatly
-modify your conclusions. Conic fingers
-show a love for the beautiful, the ideal and
-romantic, but the well-developed joints may
-add moral force, as also does a large thumb.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_311" id="Page_311">[311]</a></span>
-Hands that are always white, regardless of
-temperature, tell of selfishness and conceit,
-lack of sympathy for the sorrows of others.
-Soft hands tell of a lazy, lethargic temperament;
-hard hands show a love of exercise
-and labor. Soft hands indicate tenderness
-rather than fidelity, while hard hands indicate
-true love, but not much tenderness or
-passion. Smoothness of the hands shows
-delicacy of mind. A wrinkled hand, if soft,
-shows sensitiveness; if hard, irritability.
-Pale lines in a hand show a phlegmatic disposition,
-in a man amounting to effeminacy.</p>
-
-<p>Each mount is of as much import as are
-the indications found on the fingers. On
-the mount of Jupiter you will learn of honor,
-ambition, religion. If it is very large it
-shows tyranny and ostentation; if small,
-idleness, egoism, vulgarity. A cross found
-on this mount will tell of a happy marriage;
-if a star is found as well, the marriage will
-be wealthy and satisfactory to the highest
-degree. A spot on this mount shows ignominy
-and dishonor.</p>
-
-<p>The mount of Saturn, which is at the base
-of the second finger, tells of caution, credulousness,
-timidity. If very large, the individual
-will be melancholy, quiet, and morbid.
-A solitary line on this mount indicates bad
-fortune.</p>
-
-<p>The mount of the Sun, when prominent,
-insures success, genius, pride, eloquence.
-If the mount is extremely large, wealth<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_312" id="Page_312">[312]</a></span>
-extravagance, luxury. A single line on this
-mount means glory.</p>
-
-<p>Below the little finger on the outside of
-the hand we look for the mount of Mercury,
-and there learn of invention, speculation,
-agility. Excess of this mount indicates
-cunning, treachery, and falsehood.</p>
-
-<p>Below this mount we find Mars, which if
-very prominent, shows the owner to be
-brusque and violent; if it is small, look out
-for cowardice and meanness.</p>
-
-<p>The mount of the Moon, which is found
-lower still, denotes a love of the mysterious;
-those possessing this mount to a high degree
-are also inclined to revery, as well as to
-idleness. They are likewise capricious,
-changeful, and irritable. In hard hands you
-will also read discontent and fanaticism.</p>
-
-<p>The most important of all the lines on the
-hand is the line of life. If long, clear, and
-straight, it shows long life and good character;
-if pale and broad, the indications are
-ill health and a weak disposition; if thick
-and red, the owner is apt to be violent to
-brutality; if varying in thickness, this will
-show a fitful and high temper.</p>
-
-<p>The greatest caution must be used by any
-reader of the hand, and before even a pretension
-is made to judge character or to
-foretell the future, much careful study of the
-many books on this subject should be given.
-The student must learn from different authorities,
-as well as by thoughtful study and<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_313" id="Page_313">[313]</a></span>
-comparison for himself. Many rules must
-be applied, and there are many conflicting
-forces to harmonize. The hand is of the
-utmost importance in human economy.
-Aristotle denominated it “the organ of the
-organs.” After the murder of Cicero at
-Caieta, not only his head but also his hands
-were exhibited in the Roman Forum. The
-homologies have been traced between the
-human hand and the paws of the brute creation,
-and it has been proved that to man
-alone was the perfect hand given, exquisite
-in beauty as well as paramount in usefulness.</p>
-
-<p>Palmistry is an old science. As early as
-the year 1504 there was a book published in
-the city of London on <i>The Art of Foretelling
-the Future Events by Inspection of the Hand</i>.
-It has been asserted that Homer wrote on
-the lines of the hand. Probably most people
-are familiar with the verse assigned by
-the superstitions as Scriptural warrant for
-indulging in this popular art: Job xxxvii.
-7, “He sealeth the hand of every man, that
-all may know his work.”</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-<div class="chapter"></div>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_314" id="Page_314">[314]</a></span></p>
-
-
-
-
-<h2>CHURCH COURTESY.</h2>
-
-
-<p>It was only a smile as the Hymn-book
-and Psalter were offered; it did not cost
-the young man anything, but it gave us, the
-recipients of his courtesy, pleasant satisfaction.
-We did not feel as if the books were
-grudgingly given, but rather that a sympathetic
-bond had united us, that we would
-like to know this cordial generous young
-fellow, and thought if this were a sample
-of the people in that church, we would like
-to make it our home. The entire service
-was so heightened by the incident that we
-scarcely missed our old familiar surroundings,
-and really had almost forgotten that
-we were strangers, so one with us the people
-appeared; and when the preacher later
-gave for his text the words, “The greatest of
-these is Love,” it seemed only natural that
-this should have been the thought selected.</p>
-
-<p>By contrast, we felt severely the difference
-which the following Sabbath brought. It
-was again the early service, and we sat
-strangers in another city church. The opening
-hymn, which was not a familiar one,
-was announced, and an old man sitting in a
-pew behind gave us his book. Two young
-men occupying the seat with him each had
-a hymn-book with notes, but instead of<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_315" id="Page_315">[315]</a></span>
-looking on the same book, so having one to
-spare, they each selfishly kept their own,
-neither offering one to the old gentleman
-who, I later learned, had gone without for
-our sake, nor giving a book to two ladies
-who were in the pew with me, and were
-strangers like ourselves. As a result, we all
-felt uncomfortable; the clergyman’s sermon,
-excellent though it was, did not meet with
-proper response. Our thoughts were divided,
-the atmosphere was unpleasant, we
-claimed that the church seemed very cheerless,
-that even the lighting of it was not satisfactory,
-and, indeed, we were so unhappy
-by the ungracious action of the two young
-men back of us that we were glad when the
-benediction was pronounced, and we could,
-borrowing an illustration from the time of
-the Apostles, shake the dust off our feet, and
-turn toward home.</p>
-
-<p>The question is sometimes asked, Why
-are there so many vacant pews in our
-churches? And the blame is laid on the
-hard-working minister. Well, his shoulders
-are broad and accustomed to carrying burdens.
-All the sorrows and annoyances of
-the people become a part of his daily load.
-But stop. Let us put the answer to this
-question where it belongs, not on the minister,
-but nine-tenths of the time on the congregation.
-“Be not forgetful to entertain
-strangers,” are the words of the Bible, and
-we cannot go to a better book for advice.<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_316" id="Page_316">[316]</a></span>
-“Be courteous,” are also two words found
-there.</p>
-
-<p>A young man, not a church-goer, once
-said to me, “I wandered into Dr. L.’s church
-the other morning, and I was shown into
-one of the very best pews. Later the family
-came, and they gave me every attention.
-When the service was over, the gentleman
-who sat at the head of the pew allowed his
-family to pass out, and waited for me.
-Then offering his hand, said he was very
-glad I had been put in his pew, and he
-hoped I would come to church again very
-soon, every Sunday if I would, and then he
-added, ‘Young man, don’t ask an usher for
-a seat, come right in here with me any time.’</p>
-
-<p>“Now,” continued this young gentleman,
-“that’s what I call business. I enjoyed
-the service that morning, was not made
-to feel as if I was an offscourer, but as if I
-was welcome. I’ll go again soon; that’s
-the right kind of a church. The singing
-was beautiful, and I’m fond of music; the
-sermon, too, touched the right place, but I
-think what had more to do with it than anything
-else, was that courteous family and
-the hearty hand-shake afterwards.”</p>
-
-<p>We, neither of us, can weigh the influence
-we have on our neighbor. Perhaps it is
-better for our own peace we cannot. But
-we must remember a smile may save a soul.
-“Inasmuch as ye have done it unto one of
-the least of these, ye have done it unto me.”</p>
-
-<hr class="chap" />
-<div class="chapter"></div>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_317" id="Page_317">[317]</a></span></p>
-
-
-
-
-<h2>A BRAVE BOY.</h2>
-
-
-<p>“How shall our class raise one hundred
-dollars for the benefit of the church-debt
-fund?” was a question recently put to eight
-young girls by their Sunday-school teacher.</p>
-
-<p>“Have a fair in the early fall; we will
-work for it all summer,” was the first answer.</p>
-
-<p>“No; that might interfere with the ladies’
-fair, which comes during December. It is
-to be a mammoth one this year, and we
-must not anticipate the event nor risk retarding
-its prosperity, but rather do our part to
-push it forward.”</p>
-
-<p>“Suppose, then, we have a cake sale,”
-was the suggestion by the eldest one of the
-party. That was at once vetoed, as more
-properly belonging to our mothers and
-grandmothers.</p>
-
-<p>“I tell you what, girls!” ejaculated Jessie,
-“let us make candy; get all the orders
-we can and supply our customers. We can
-make lots of money that way.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, if we can get the customers,”
-added Hattie, “<i>I</i> thought maybe we could
-get up an entertainment, and so I brought a
-book containing a colloquy in three parts,
-which will just take in all of us. There are
-eight characters, so it would fit exactly.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_318" id="Page_318">[318]</a></span></p>
-
-<p>“Good for you, Hattie,” was the quick
-reply, and the bright eyes and excited manner
-of each of the scholars showed that such
-enthusiasm could not fall to result in success.</p>
-
-<p>Later a satisfactory programme was arranged,
-consisting of music, recitations,
-tableaux and the above-mentioned colloquy.
-The entertainment was to be given in the
-parlors of one of the scholars, and the tickets
-for young and old were to be offered for the
-sum of twenty-five cents each.</p>
-
-<p>My! how the girls worked, not alone in
-the necessary preparation for their part of
-the programme, but in the sale of tickets,
-which were disposed of rapidly.</p>
-
-<p>At last the much-looked-for night had
-come, and never did stars seem more brilliant,
-or moonlight more beautiful. Such a
-crowd! Long before the time for showing
-the tableaux, which were to open the entertainment,
-the parlors and halls and even
-the stairs were full. A man was stationed
-at the door to receive the tickets and any
-money which might be offered.</p>
-
-<p>But was it any wonder that little Theodore
-Vandervoort, who is connected with one of
-the younger classes of the Sunday-school,
-found himself surrounded by so many bigger
-and older people, that he was not seen? or
-that the money he had expected to give at
-the door should not be taken?</p>
-
-<p>What a temptation this now presented!<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_319" id="Page_319">[319]</a></span>
-His father and mother would never know.
-The twenty-five cents would buy a great
-deal of candy, or the new ball he wanted so
-much, or a box of figs, or several bananas,
-of which he was very fond. But no, Theodore
-was an honest boy and would therefore
-scorn to use money which was not his own.
-This twenty-five cents had been given to
-him to pay for the entertainment he was now
-enjoying, and he would not expend it for
-any other purpose. So the following morning,
-before he entered school, he paid his
-debt, personally going to the house of the
-teacher who had charge of the entertainment
-and, with a few words of explanation,
-leaving the money.</p>
-
-<p>And so Theodore Vandervoort proved
-himself a hero, an example to many an older
-boy, as well as to many fathers and mothers.</p>
-
-<p>Even in a small boy we see the future
-man, and if God wills that Theodore Vandervoort
-shall grow to manhood, we are not
-afraid to predict great things of him, to
-prophesy that he will be a man above reproach,
-a king among his fellows.</p>
-
-<p>May the boys who read this story beware
-of falling into temptation, or doing the first
-dishonest act; but rather let them be brave,
-noble and upright, as was little Theodore,
-and so receive not only peace of conscience
-in the present life, but the joy which is
-eternal.</p>
-
-<p>As for the entertainment, it met with the<span class="pagenum"><a name="Page_320" id="Page_320">[320]</a></span>
-success that generally attends zeal and hard
-work, and so overflowing was the treasury
-that the girls scarcely needed the added
-twenty-five cents. Yet honest Theodore,
-in taking his first opportunity to get out of
-debt, which is out of danger also, had set
-for all who read these words an excellent
-example.</p>
-
-<hr class="full" />
-<div class="tnote"><div class="center">
-<b>Transcriber’s Notes:</b></div>
-
-<p>Obvious punctuation errors repaired. Varied hyphenation retained.</p>
-
-<p>Page 18, “carboard” changed to “cardboard” (a square of cardboard)</p>
-
-<p>Page 23, “varities” changed to “varieties” (think what varieties of)</p>
-
-<p>Pages 25, 149 “where-ever” split over two lines was changed to
-“wherever” (Girl runs wherever) (may put them wherever)</p>
-
-<p>Page 57, “though” changed to “through” (through which he has)</p>
-
-<p>Page 57, “andthis” changed to “and this” (and this game should)</p>
-
-<p>Page 91, “fete” changed to “fête” (the popular <i>fête</i>)</p>
-
-<p>Page 96, “matinee” changed to “matinée” (occasional matinée performance)</p>
-
-<p>Page 97, “mad” changed to “made” (be made of white)</p>
-
-<p>Page 162, “fastents” changed to “fastens” (instantly fastens itself)</p>
-
-<p>Page 184, “couse” changed to “course” (course, the pansy-leaf)</p>
-
-<p>Page 189, “maccaroni” changed to “macaroni” (but not macaroni)</p>
-
-<p>Page 194, “urdona” changed to “urdon” (own esog urdon)</p>
-
-<p>Page 194, “Mda” changed to “Nda” (Nda lilst i okwn)</p>
-
-<p>Page 194, “aec dn” changed to “aecdn” (Het iteesvf aecdn)</p>
-
-<p>Page 194, “f’tfrdnei” changed to “fetfrdnei” (Os fetfrdnei rmof)</p>
-
-<p>Page 196, “eyes” changed to “hair” (hair was so brown)</p>
-
-<p>Page 199, “tlp” changed to “tip” (tip of nose)</p>
-
-<p>Page 199, “smilar” changed to “similar” (similar to example)</p>
-
-<p>Page 200, “wth” changed to “with” (with pots, pans, dishes)</p>
-
-<p>Page 235, “similiar” changed to “similar” (similar ludicrous blunders)</p>
-
-<p>Page 240, split across two lines, “forget-getting” changed to “forgetting”
-(the trouble, forgetting)</p>
-
-<p>Page 249, “the” changed to “this” (negligent
-this time)</p>
-
-<p>Page 255, “immates” changed to “inmates” (difficulty the inmates of)</p>
-
-<p>Page 316, paragraph break introduced after the line ending, “with me anytime”
-as the quotation pattern seemed to suggest it.</p>
-
-<p>Page 319, “eharge” changed to “charge” (charge of the entertainment)</p>
-</div>
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-<pre>
-
-
-
-
-
-End of the Project Gutenberg EBook of Fun for the Household, by Emma J. Gray
-
-*** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK FUN FOR THE HOUSEHOLD ***
-
-***** This file should be named 51540-h.htm or 51540-h.zip *****
-This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
- http://www.gutenberg.org/5/1/5/4/51540/
-
-Produced by Chris Curnow, Emmy and the Online Distributed
-Proofreading Team at http://www.pgdp.net (This file was
-produced from images generously made available by The
-Internet Archive)
-
-Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions will
-be renamed.
-
-Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
-law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
-so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United
-States without permission and without paying copyright
-royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
-of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm
-concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
-and may not be used if you charge for the eBooks, unless you receive
-specific permission. If you do not charge anything for copies of this
-eBook, complying with the rules is very easy. You may use this eBook
-for nearly any purpose such as creation of derivative works, reports,
-performances and research. They may be modified and printed and given
-away--you may do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks
-not protected by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the
-trademark license, especially commercial redistribution.
-
-START: FULL LICENSE
-
-THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
-PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
-
-To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
-Project Gutenberg-tm License available with this file or online at
-www.gutenberg.org/license.
-
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
-destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your
-possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
-Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
-by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the
-person or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph
-1.E.8.
-
-1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this
-agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the
-Foundation" or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
-of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual
-works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
-States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
-United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
-claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
-displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
-all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
-that you will support the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting
-free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm
-works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
-Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with the work. You can easily
-comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
-same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg-tm License when
-you share it without charge with others.
-
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
-in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
-check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
-agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
-distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
-other Project Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no
-representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
-country outside the United States.
-
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
-immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear
-prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work
-on which the phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the
-phrase "Project Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed,
-performed, viewed, copied or distributed:
-
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
- most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no
- restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it
- under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this
- eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the
- United States, you'll have to check the laws of the country where you
- are located before using this ebook.
-
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is
-derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
-contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
-copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
-the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
-redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
-either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
-obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
-additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
-will be linked to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works
-posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
-beginning of this work.
-
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
-
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm License.
-
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
-any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
-to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format
-other than "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official
-version posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site
-(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
-to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
-of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original "Plain
-Vanilla ASCII" or other form. Any alternate format must include the
-full Project Gutenberg-tm License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-provided that
-
-* You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
- to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he has
- agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
- within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
- legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
- payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
- Section 4, "Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation."
-
-* You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
- License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
- copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
- all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg-tm
- works.
-
-* You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
- any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
- receipt of the work.
-
-* You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
-
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work or group of works on different terms than
-are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
-from both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and The
-Project Gutenberg Trademark LLC, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark. Contact the Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
-
-1.F.
-
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
-Gutenberg-tm collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
-contain "Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
-or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
-intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
-other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
-cannot be read by your equipment.
-
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
-of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
-with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
-with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
-lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
-or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
-opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
-the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
-without further opportunities to fix the problem.
-
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS', WITH NO
-OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
-LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
-damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
-violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
-agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
-limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
-unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
-remaining provisions.
-
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in
-accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
-production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
-including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
-the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
-or any Project Gutenberg-tm work, (b) alteration, modification, or
-additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any
-Defect you cause.
-
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
-computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
-exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
-from people in all walks of life.
-
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future
-generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
-Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at
-www.gutenberg.org
-
-
-
-Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
-
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
-U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
-
-The Foundation's principal office is in Fairbanks, Alaska, with the
-mailing address: PO Box 750175, Fairbanks, AK 99775, but its
-volunteers and employees are scattered throughout numerous
-locations. Its business office is located at 809 North 1500 West, Salt
-Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up to
-date contact information can be found at the Foundation's web site and
-official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
-
-For additional contact information:
-
- Dr. Gregory B. Newby
- Chief Executive and Director
- gbnewby@pglaf.org
-
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
-spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
-DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular
-state visit www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-
-Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
-donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works.
-
-Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm concept of a library of electronic works that could be
-freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
-distributed Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of
-volunteer support.
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
-the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
-necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
-edition.
-
-Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search
-facility: www.gutenberg.org
-
-This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
-
-
-
-</pre>
-
-</body>
-</html>
diff --git a/old/51540-h/images/cover.jpg b/old/51540-h/images/cover.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 2128883..0000000
--- a/old/51540-h/images/cover.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/51540-h/images/emblem.jpg b/old/51540-h/images/emblem.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 6306f10..0000000
--- a/old/51540-h/images/emblem.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/51540-h/images/i_title.jpg b/old/51540-h/images/i_title.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 1ed34a2..0000000
--- a/old/51540-h/images/i_title.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ